Selected quad for the lemma: lord_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
lord_n call_v day_n supper_n 10,399 5 10.1829 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A22474 The badges of Christianity. Or, A treatise of the sacraments fully declared out of the word of God Wherein the truth it selfe is proued, the doctrine of the reformed churches maintained, and the errors of the churches of Rome are euidently conuinced: by pervsing wherof the discreet reader may easily perceiue, the weak and vnstable grounds of the Roman religion, and the iust causes of our lawfull separation. Diuided into three bookes: 1. Of the sacraments in generall. 2. Of Baptisme. 3. Of the Lords Supper. Hereunto is annexed a corollarie or necessary aduertisement, shewing the intention of this present worke, opening the differences among vs about the question of the supper, discouering the idolatry and diuisions of the popish clergy, ... By William Attersoll, minister of the Word of God. Attersoll, William, d. 1640.; Attersoll, William, d. 1640. Principles of Christian religion. aut 1606 (1606) STC 889; ESTC S115827 366,439 472

There are 96 snippets containing the selected quad. | View lemmatised text

hath brought vs into his Church by baptisme and made vs as it were of his houshold seruants then as a good father of the family he feedeth vs spiritually with the flesh of his sonne applying vnto vs the merit of his death and passion This sacrament of the body and blood of Christ is declared in the scripture by diuerse names to deliuer the nature thereof vnto vs. Sometimes it is called the communion as 1 Cor 10. The cup of blessing which we blesse is it not the communion of the blood of Christ The bread which wee breake is it not the communion of the body of Christ Sometimes it is called the Lords supper as 1 Cor. 11 20. When ye come together into one place this is not to eate the Lords supper Thirdly sometimes it is called the breaking of bread as Act. 2. 42. They continued in the Apostles doctrine and fellowship and breaking of bread and prayers and Chap. 20 7. The first day of the weeke the disciples being come together to breake bread Paule preached vnto them ready to depart on the morrow Fourthly sometimes it is called the table of the Lord as we see 1 Cor. 10 21. Ye cannot drinke the cup of the Lord and the cup of diuels ye cannot be partakers of the Lords table and of the table of deuils Moreouer we shall nothing offend if we cal it the testament or will of Christ This cup is the new testament in my blood this do as oft as ye drinke it in remembrance of me and our sauiour thus speaketh Math. 26 This is my blood of the new testament that is shed for many for the remission of sinnes These are the chiefe and principal names giuen to this Sacrament in the Scriptures I am not ignorant that the ancient fathers and times succeeding haue giuen vnto it other names and not vnfitly but my purpose being not so much to alle age the councels or doctors of the church as to instruct the simple and vnlearned I wil content my selfe with expounding such termes and titles as are penned in the word of God and pointed out by the spirit of God Now then let vs render the reasons of such names as this Sacrament is entituled withall It is called the communion because we haue a communion fellowship with Christ and he with vs both which are sealed vp the in this Sacrament It is called the Lords supper both because it was instituted by the Lord Iesus at is last supper which circumstance of time the church hath changed because therin is offered to vs a spiritual banket in which the faithful are spiritually fed and nourished It is called the breaking of bread both because this is a necessary action vsed of Christ not to be omitted and because it representeth the crucifieng of christ and tormenting of his body so that we should neuer be present at this significant ceremony but wee must call to remembrance the sorrowes and sufferings of CHRIST now if Christ were thus tormented for vs surely wee ought greatly to bee griped and grieued for our owne sinnes which was also shewed by the sower herbes of the Passeouer Exod. 12 8. It is called the table of the Lord because he doth feede vs at it as this we know is the end and vse of Tables in our houses to set our meates and drinkes vpon them prepared for our nourishment and this is the scope and end of the Lords table onely heere lyeth a plaine and maine difference our Tables serue for bodily nourishment but the Lordes is prepared for the spirituall nourishment of our soules Lastly it may be called the testament or will of Christ because it setteth forth vnto vs asolemne couenant betweene God and vs touching forgiuenesse of sinnes and eternall life which couenant is racified established by the death of the son of god so that heerin we find all things belonging to a full and perfect testament as we shall see after ward Out of these seuerall names and titles thus interpreted arise most aptly and fitly sundry vses which in order as they haue beene propounded wee will consider The first title is the Communion from whence wee deduct these necessary conclusions First of all is the Sacrament of the body and blood of Christ called a communion And so called of our communicating together Then hereby all the faithfull openly testifie that they be all one body coupled together in Christ Iesus we professe him and all his benefits we receiue him we enioy him we reioyce in him God the father doth giue him the holy-ghost doth assure him faith doth receiue him by this hand we are ioyned to him and haue spirituall fellowship with him Wherefore al beleeuers are made one by Christ and this is not an vnion in imagination but in truth and in deed neither by transsusion of the properties of the God-head or manhood into vs but by one and the same spirit dwelling in christ and in all the members of Christ as 1 Cor. 6 He that 〈◊〉 to the Lord is one spirit And the Apostle Iohn testifieth that Christ dwelleth in vs and we in christ by the spirit He that keepeth his commaundements dwelleth in him and he in him and heereby we know that he abideth in vs euen by the spirit which he hath giuen vs so that the spirits of iust and perfect men in heauen and all beleeuers vpon the earth how farre socuer sundred in place hauing one and the same spirit of christ dwelling in them are al one in Christ their head God hath giuen his owne sonne vnto vs freely and fully our faith receiueth CHRIST by beleeuing him and all his gratious benefits to be ours as Ioh. 1 12 As many as receiued him to them he gaue prerogatiue to be the soxnes of God euen to them that beleeue in his name Thus we see we are one with Christ and christ with vs. Secondly as this sacrament being a communion admonisheth that we are all one in Christ so it teaeheth that it is to be receiued of many together in the church not of one alone and therefore it ouerthroweth the priuate Masses of the church of Rome where one partaketh all and the rest of the Church nothing at all There is a flat opposition betweene these two so that the communion cannot be a priuate Masse and priuate masse cannot be a communion That which is ordained and prepared for many deliuered vnto many and receiued of many cannot stand with the Masse where the priest prepareth for himselfe not for the people hee speaketh to himselfe not to the church hee receiueth himselfe alone not with his bretheren all which are directly contrary to the Apostles rule Tary one for another Lastly if it be a communion it teacheth that this is a sacrament of vnity and concord and wee are there by put in mind to avoid discord and dislention For christ neuer communicateth himselfe to
discontented Who would not thinke hee had wrong and iniury done vnto him Wherefore let vs take heed least by with-holding and withdrawing our selues wee prouoke gods wrath and indignation When he calleth are ye not ashamed to say ye will not come When he saith Eate of my meate and drinke the wine that I haue drawne wilt thou desperately and dispitefully answere thou wilt not eate thou wilt not drinke thou wilt not doe it Or wilt thou saye thou 〈◊〉 a greeuous sinner thou 〈◊〉 vnworthye I would aske thee when thou wilt be worthy Wilt thou lye still in thy sinne as a man in a deepe pit and neuer striue to come forth Why doest thou not returne to God and amend thy waies Why doest thou continue in thy hordnesse and heart that cannot repent and so heapest vppe as a treasure to thy selfe wrath against the daye of wrath and of the declaration of the iust iudgement of God Moreouer if thou bee vnfit and vnworthy to receiue this supper thou art vnworthy to pray thou art vnworthy to heare vnlesse thou pray as a parrat and heare as an hypocrite Consider therefore seriously and weigh earnestlye with your selues how little such fond fained and friuolous excuses shall preuaile with God When Moyses called Corah and his company to come vppe vnto the Lord they answered presumpteously We will not come When the King in the Gospell had inuited his ghuests they began all with one minde to excuse themselues and some refused saying I cannot come So in these daies of sinne albeit the supper be prepared the ghuests called and the table couered many men make light account of it and what with some that reply carelesly we cannot come and what with others that answer desperately we will not come the feast is vnfurnished God is dishonored the people are vnprepared and all the exercises of religion are lightly and slightly regarded I say vnto you that none of these men which were bidden shall tast of his Supper Againe another sort are as prophane as these which stand by as gazers and lookers on vpon them that do communicate yet communicate not themselues What is this else then a further contempt of God Truely it is great vnthankfulnes to depart away for these depart away from the Lords table they depart from their bretheren they depart from the heauenly 〈◊〉 of their soules but their fault is much greater when they stand by in contempt and wil not be partakers of this Communion What can this bee else but to haue the minister of christ in derision It is saide to all that are present Take ye eate ye drinke ye doe this in remembrance of mee With what face then with what countenance or rather conscience can ye heare these words sound in your eares and not bee touched Let vs therefore bee drawne and perswaded to this duty by the benefit that redoundeth to the worthy receiuers and fruitefull partakers thereof and on the other side feare to offend by staying and standing 〈◊〉 while the faithfull are partakers of this sacrament of the Lords supper Chap 3. Of the first outward part of the Lords Supper HItherto we haue shewed what the Lordes supper is and how to apply it to our instruction now we are to consider in this Sacrament two things his 〈◊〉 and his vses as we haue shewed in the former bookes The parts are partly outwarde and partly inwarde The outward part is one thing the inward parte is another thing the outward is taken in at the mouth the inward by the inward man the outward is turned into the nourishment of the body the inward worketh in vs to eternall life the outward is taken by some to their destruction but the inward alwaies to saluation This appeareth euidently by the wordes of the Apostle deliuering to the church what hee had receiued of the Lord and declaring howe the same night he was betrayed He tooke bread and when he had giuen thankes he brake it and said Take ye eate ye this is my body which is broken for you this do ye in remembrance of me After the same manner also He tooke the cup when he had 〈◊〉 saying This cup is the new testament in my blood this do as oft as ye drinke it in remembrance of me In these wordes wee see both the outward partes propounded and the number of them defined and determined For heere are foure outward parts handled to wit the minister the wordes of institution the 〈◊〉 and Wine and the Communicants The first minister thereof was Christ the wordes of institution are This is my body giuen for you this is the cuppe of the new testament in my blood the signes are bread and Wine the first communicants were the Apostles So then the Ministers must doe that which CHRIST did and the people that which the Disciples did the actions of CHRIST are directions to the Minister the actions of the Apostles are directions to the people Let vs then see the actions of Christ. He tooke bread he blessed he brake the bread he poured out the Wine he distributed and deliuered them both Wherefore the actions and workes of the minister are foure-fould First to take the bread and wine into his hands after the example of christ who did it to shewe that himselfe willingly giueth himselfe for his church which serueth to strengthen our faith and perswasion of his loue toward vs in whose imitation the minister dothit to represent the action of God the father giuing his son vnto vs for our full redemption The second action is blessing and giuing of thankes that is by prayer by thankes giuing and by rehearsal of the promises of God together with the institution of christ actually to separate the bread and wine so taken from their common vse to an holy vse Whereby we are giuen to vnderstand that the outward creatures are reuerently to be vsed calling vpon the name of God and crauing his assistance to vse his ordinance as we ought to do and that we should ioyfully praise God for the gratious worke of our redemption by Christ. The third action is breaking the bread pouring out the wine which are necessary rites to be obserued hauing respect and and relation to the vnspeakable torments of christ for vs who was pierced crucified and made a curse for vs vpon the Crosse as the prophet teacheth He was wounded for our transgressions he was broken for our iniquities the chastisement of our peace was vpon him and with his stripes we are healed Wherefore these Sacramental rites of breaking pouring out are no to be reiected omitted being vsed by christ practised by his Apostles and retained by the churches Not as in the church of Rome where they breake not to distribute to the people neither poure out the Wine to giue vnto them So then we see that whole bread is not to be deliuered but that the bread is to be broken
the Apostle 1 cor 11. reproouing the abuses crept into this Sacrament and labouring to reduce it to the first institution exhorteth the Corinthians to tarry one for another and if any be hungry that he cannot tarrie he must before hand 〈◊〉 at home that so he may better wait for the rest of the congregation Now he would neuer haue giuen counsell and commandement if it had bin vnlawfull or vngodly to take some little repast and short refreshing before in regarde of the present infirmity and weakenes of the body Lastly he teacheth in another place That the kingdome of heauen is not meat nor drinke but righteousnes and peace and ioy in the holy-ghost To conclude as hee willeth that he which eateth despise not him that eateth not and he which eateth not condemne not him that eateth so must it be in this indifferent practise he that can take it let him take it but let not him that receiueth fasting iudge him that fasteth not and let not him which fasteth not condemne him that receiueth fasting he standeth or falleth to his owne maister Who art thou then that iudgest an other mans seruant Let euery one be perswaded in his owne mind and looke to the warrant of his own worke Let vs follow those things which concerne peace and where with one may edisie another If any list to bee contentious we haue no such custome neither the 〈◊〉 of God And thus much of the communicants of this sacrament and likewise of the rest of the outward parts of the Lords supper Chap. 7 Of the words of 〈◊〉 in the sacrament of the Lords supper ALthough we haue spoken before sufficiently of consecration what it is and how it is wrought to satisfie all such as are sober minded and simple Louers of the truth yet be cause special points are heere to be obserued and that the aduersaries turn the true consecration into a taine magicall incantation to worke a miraculous or rather a monstrous transubstantiation it shall not be amisse to assure and handle this point againe that therby the truth of God may be cleered the ignorant instructed the aduersaties satisfied and consequently their mouthes stopped Consecration is a change or conuerting of the outward elementes into another vse by obseruing the whole institution of Christ which giueth it his effect We confesse a turning and changing not of one substance into another not by abolishing of natures not by close pronouncing of certaine wordes but in the vse and in respect of vs and in regard of the promise of God 〈◊〉 he water which floweth out of the rock in the wildernesse signified the same to the fathers which the Wine 〈◊〉 to vs in the supper Notwithstanding it was a common watering to the beasts of the fielde and to the people of God the cattell dranke thereof as well as the people and therefore there could be made no change there in but in respect of men to whom God gaue his gratious promise which teacheth vs to account of the outward signes otherwise then of common meats and common drinks The stones hammered in the quarrey the timber hewed in the forrest the gold tryed in the furnace were common stuff before they were layd in the building of the Temple and so made holy and sanctified to God and man The sayings and sentences of the heathenish poets were prophane before they had passed through the pen of God and were taken vp by the holy ghost So wee teach of the bread and wine before the institution of christ is vsed and obserued they are common but afterward they are holy We confesse and 〈◊〉 not but say plainely there is a change in the sacramentes the elements which before were ordinary meates now become spiritual in respect of the vse before they serued only to feede the belly now they serue to seale vp the nourishment of our soules The discussing of this question together with the foundation of this consecration and sanctification of the creatures is taken out of 1 Tim. 4. 4. Euery creature of God is good and nothing ought to be refused if it be receiued with thanks giuing for it is sanctified by the word of God and prayer These are the two meanes the word and prayer whereby the elementes are changed though not transubstantiated yet they haue a dignity and preheminence which they had not before they are no more common bread common Wine common meate but a Sacrament of Christes body a warrant of Gods promises an holy Mystery and seale of the couenant between God and vs. The first meanes of this consecration and setting a part of the creatures to our vse is by the word of God If we haue the euident and expresse word to warrant our vse of the creatures of God we may vse them for our necessity and comfort if we haue no word to beare out the practise they are not sanctified vnto vs. The tree of knowledge of good and euil was not sanctified vnto Adam though it were good in it selfe as all creatures are because he had a word of commaundement not to eate of it Of the tree of the knowledge of good and euill thou shalt not eate of it for in the day that thou eatest thereof thou shalt dye the death After the fall and after the flood all creatures were not sanctified some were accounted vncleane all might not be eaten all might not be offered as vnder the law among the beastes onely they were cleane that did chew the cud and diuide the hoofe and among the fishes of the Sea onely such as had skales and finnes were called cleane the rest were vncleane vnto them because the word did not allow but restraine the vse of them So likewise for this Sacrament of the Lords Supper not euery creature is sanctified not a 〈◊〉 not any flesh not any fish not oyle but onely bread and Wine These two are consecrated all the rest are cancelled by the word The second meanes whereby the creatures are sanctified is by prayer For albeit that God by the comming of his sonne into the world hath sanctified all meates and drinkes that nothing of it selfe is vncleane but to him that counteth it vncleane yet something must necessarily be done on our partes otherwise that which is holy we may prophane and that which is good we may turne into euill and therefore the apostle addeth praier which is both a thanksgiuing to the Lord that he hath sanctified and prepared them for vs and likewise a petition that they may bee healthfull for vs and we thankefull for them whereby our foode our apparell and all the succours of this life are sanctified to his glory and our comfort These be the two meanes of consecration if these or any of them be wanting there can be no true consecration If then in the time of the law they should haue eaten swines flesh which indeed part the 〈◊〉 but
a Sacrament THe outward parts of a Sacrament are such things as vnder a certain similitude likenes do represent and signifie heauenly things to assure vs they are as truely present and offred vs as we beholde with our cies and receiue with our hands the earthly things giuen vnto vs. The outward parts of a Sacrament are in number foure First the Minister Secondly the word of institution Thirdly the element Fourthly the receiuer All these and euery one of them are needfull to the being and nature of a Sacrament take them away or any of them and you take away the substance and bring in a nullity of the Sacrament If ther be no minister no word no element no receiuer there is no Sacrament If there be wanting either minister to deliuer it or word to 〈◊〉 it or element to represent it or receiuer to take it we cannot assure our selues to haue any sacrament of God but rather a tradition and inuention of our owne First then there is required a Minister lawfully called chosen and ordained hauing at the least the approbation and alowance of the church to pronounce the words of institution and to deliuer the outward signs to the receiuers They are not makers of the Sacrament but ministers not autors but administators not deuisors but deliuerers Earthly princes haue their letters patents their great seals keepers of the same if another shal set to the seal that is not appointed the keeper thereof is it not made an heinons crime worthy of heauy punishment So the Lord is a mightye Prince king of kings and Lord of Lords he hath appointed his seales to seale vp his promises of forgiuenes of sinnes and eternal life and he hath ordained his Officers as it were keepers of his great seals God publisheth saluation and pardon to all beleeuers by his word as by his letters pattents and he addeth baptisme and the Lords Supper as two broad seales for greater assurance and confirmation and appointeth the Ministers to be keepers thereof Whosoeuer therfore shall presume to 〈◊〉 to any of these seals without warrant without a caling without a function and direction from God himselfe being no officer no Minister no keeper of them prophaneth these seales and setteth to a counterfet stampe For as no man may preach except he be sent so no man may administer the Sacrament except he be called This is it the Apostle teacheth No man taketh this honor vnto himself but he that is called of God as was Aron and Christ tooke not to himselfe this honor to be made the high Priest but he that 〈◊〉 vnto him thou art my sonne this day begat I thee gaue it to him Now to minister the sacraments is an honour in the Church which none can take to himselfe at his owne pleasure but God must giue it They should haue in their owne consciences a witnesse of Gods calling them to this office and honour Wherefore the sacred functions ordained of God must not be prophaned by voluntary officers and vsurped offices no man must take vpon him without a lawful calling to teach hese holy misteries Of these the Lord complaineh I haue not sent these prophets yet they ranne I haue not spoken to them and yet they prophesied Thus these intruders did thrust their sickle into other mens corne The reasons why the ministers and no others are to intermedle with the Sacraments are very apparant First because euery part and member of the church hath his especiall office and his proper guifts to execute his 〈◊〉 we see in a campe the Souldiers in Warre haue their standing-place in sight of their captaine who hath chosen them to be Warriors so in the Church 〈◊〉 euery one keepe his seuerall calling in the presence of God who hath in wisdome and mercy called him thereunto We see in the natural dispositiō of the body euery member hath his speciall vse the eye to see the hand to handle the foote to walke the eare to heare and if one member should incroch vpon the office of another it must needes tend to the destruction of the body We see in the gouernment of an house and famely the husband and wife the father and sonne the master and seruant know and acknowledge their places to rule to obey to commaund to be commaunded without intruding themselues and incroching vpon the function as it were vpon the free-hold of an other If we would ascend a step higher we obserue in the affaires of state and matters of the cōmon-wealth euery man doth keepe within his owne listes and limits and no man dare presume to charge any man or enterprise any thing in the princes name and authority without a sufficient warrant from the prince himselfe so may no man take vpon him any functions in the church vnlesse hee haue a commission and commaundement from the Lord. For as the prince appointeth by what officers he will be serued so is it in the offices and officers of the Church God hath placed and ordained the Apostle to plant the Euangelist to second and assist the prophet to prophesie the pastor to feede and hath set euery one in his proper place and standing as i were in his watch-tower out of which he must not wander and depart Let euery man abide in the same vocation wherein he was called and afterward Let euery man wherein he was called therein abide with God Whosoeuer therefore medleth without a lawfull vocation as it were violently inuadeth another mans possession and cannot do it without the check and controlment of Christ Iesu who is the captaine of his own host the head of his own body the Lord of his own house and the great king of his owne church Againe Christ the prophet and teacher of his church and the prince of pastors hath committed the office of administration of the Sacraments to those alone to whom he hath committed the dispensation of his word and preaching of the Gospell therefore if any other 〈◊〉 set to the seale it is no true seale but a counterfait stamp The truth of this appeareth Indeede I haptize with water that is I that am apointed a techer in the church to make ready a people prepard for the Lord. And Paule being conuerted and called to preach to beare the name of God to the gentiles did without further word warrant or commaundement minister the Sacraments Now then as we haue seene the truth of the doctrine let vs consider the vses thereof First is the minister of the substance of the Sacrament and a principall part of Christs institution Then he must consider it is his duty being authorised from God and by his church to sanctifie the outward elementes and administer the same to deliuer the outward signes and offer them to the receiuers His workes therefore are to put a part and consecrate the signes to an holy vse to open and
and Sapphira his wife being in the number of Disciples wer no doubt baptized of the Apostles and had also receiued ofttimes the Lordes supper yet they continued in their wickednes lyinge and hypocrisie the sacrament did not take away their wickednes nor giue them a iustifying and sauing faithe which purifieth the hart by repentance and woorketh newe obedience in the soule The like we haue said of Simon the sorcerer who albeit he were baptized yet remained in the gall of bitternes and in the bond of iniquity Wherefore the Apostle teacheth that the worde profited not because it was not mingled with faith in those that heard it If the signes be receiued without faith they hurt not that Gods giftes and ordinances hurt of themselues but not being receiued aright they hurt through our sin and default As the worde not receiued by faith is an empty sound without force so the sacrament is an vnprofitable and a naked shew without substance Wherefore the Sacraments in regard of the vnbeleeuers and vngodly are no Sacraments to them because to them they are not seales of the righteousnesse of faith True it is they remaine Sacraments in respect of God who offereth his owne sonne but they lose their strength and force toward the vnfaithfull that do abuse and contemne them as the Apostle expresly teacheth Circumcision verilyts profitable if thou keepe the law but if thou be a transgressor of the law thy circumcision is become vncircumcision the same Apostle speaketh of such as vsed the Lords Supper without true godlinesse and due preparation saith This is not to eate the Lords Supper denying that to be which was not done as it ought to be Wherefore seeing the right vse of the Sacraments is when such as are truely conuerted vse them aright we learne diuerse instructions that flow follow from hence First that the reprobate though God offer the whole Sacrament to them doe receiue the signes alone without the things signified they haue the bare title without the thing the vanishing shadow without the body the outward letter without the spirit the empty box without the oyntment and the creature without the creator They are washed with the element of water but not with the grace of regeneration They eate the bread and drink the wine but they are not partakers of the body and blood of Christ Iesus to saluation They eate the bread of the Lord but they eate not the bread and the Lord because the signe without the right and holy vse thereof is not an auailable Sacrament to the receiuer of it Wee see therefore the wicked partake not CHRIST although they partake the signes of Christ as they that found his clothes but missed his body Secondly we see heereby that the elect ordained to eternall life but not yet called and conuerted to the Lord to the obedience of his will though they come often to the sacraments yet do in like manner receiue the bare signes without the things signified because as yet they want faith and repentance What then Do they nothing differ from the reprobates In this they differ not for the present time from the reprobate Not with standing that receiuing of the Sacrament which for the time present was vnfruitfull and vnprofitable shall after in them haue his good effect as the corne that lieth long couered in the earth at the length doth come vp and florish For the Sacrament receiued before a mans conuersion is afterward to the beleeuer and penitent sinner ratified and so becommeth profitable wherby the vse of the Sacrament which before was vtterly voide and vnlawfull doth then become lawfull and comfortable as we see in the word heard without fruit faith by an vnbeleeuer is made a word of saluation afterward when he is conuerted Lastly the elect already conuerted and sanctified by the spirit of God do to their profit comfort and saluation receiue both the signe and the thing signified together yet so as that for their vnworthy receiuing thereof which hapneth through their manifold infirmities and often relapses into sin they are subiect to temporall punishments for the destruction of the flesh that the spirit may be saued in the day of the Lord Iesus For this cause many are licke and weak among you and many sleeps for if we would iudge our selues we should not be iudged of the Lord. Where the Apostle teacheth that God brought a iudgement vpon his owne house and punished this church with weakenes sicknesse and death it selfe for their vnreuerent vnworthy and disordered receiuing of the Lords Supper Although many among them no doubt were elected and all of them professed the Gospel of the kingdome yet god visited their want of preparation reuerence with diuerse diseases and great mortality according to the threatning annexed to the law If ye will not obey me nor do all these comcaundements if ye shall dispise mine ordinances or your soule abhor my lawes then wil I do this vnto you I wil appoint ouer youfearfulnes a consumption and the burning ague to consume the eies and to make the heart heauy And if ye walke stubbornly against me and will not obey me I wil then bring seauen times moe plagues vpon you according to your sinnes Wherefore when we haue receiued grace to beleeue and haue tasted the first-fruites of the spirit to the comfort of our soules we must not be puffed vp in our knowledge we must not grow secure but stir vp the giftes of God in vs when they begin to wax faint let vs seek to preuent his iudgments before they com which we may do by iudging our selus by making inquiry into our own waies and by searching the reines of our hartes with purpose to condemne all ignorance error security and vngodlinesse and as it were to take punishment of our selues then this would follow thereupon we should not be iudged and punished of the Lord. This then is the remedy to avoid the sin of vnworthy receiuing A man thus visited with sicknes weakenesse and diuerse kinds of diseases and smitten with the stroke of Gods own hand cannot possibly be restored by any creature in heauen or earth yet behold the Lord hath not left vs without meanes to remoue them and take them away to wit by taking away the cause that we may remoue the effects The cause of these punishmentes is taken away by iudging our selues Now a man in iudging of himselfe must performe foure things 1. he must examine himselfe of his sinnes 2. he must confesse them and himselfe to be guilty as the poore prisoner that standeth at the bar No denying of the fact no defending of the fault no hiding of the offence no iustifieng of our person can procure our pardon the way to haue for giuenes is to acknowledge our own wickednes 3. he must condemn himselfe and giue sentence against himself without partiality 4. he must plead pardon for
and first finder and founder of this number ofseuen Augustine when he speaketh of Sacraments in the strict and proper signification taketh them for holy signes and seales not only signifieng but representing and exhibiting spiritual graces commaunded by christ succeeding in the roome of the Iewish two ordinary Sacraments and offering Christ to all faithful receiuers reckneth them as we do Haec sunt Ecclesiae gemina sacramenta 1. These be two sacraments of the church And in one other place Christ and his Apostles haue deleuered vnto vs a few sacraments in stead of many as Baptisme and the Lords supper So S. Ambrose intreating purposely of the Sacraments speaketh but of two as the reformed churches hold at this day Innocentius the third speaking also of them onely maketh mention of those two which we receiue not of the rest which we refuse Yea Thomas of Aquine the chiefe doctour of the papistes holdeth heerein the truth teaching that the forme of Bapt. and of the Lords supper is found in the Scripture but not of the other pretended sacraments and namely of extreame vnction To conclude cardinall Bessarion confesseth this Haec duo sola sacramenta in Euangelijs manifestè tradita legimus that is we read that these two onely sacraments were deliuered vs manifestly and plainly in the Gospell Now let vs come to the vses of this diuision In that Christ hath appointed so few sacraments in number hereby appeareth the great loue of God toward vs he hath not laid a burden vpon vs which neither we nor our fathers were able to beare but charged vs with two sacramentes onely whereas he might haue deliuered other moe vnto vs. The Ceremoniall law was a very heauy burden pressing downe the fathers of the olde Testament and keeping them in great bondage now the yoke is broken and we are deliuered As we see the like mercy of God in teaching a short for me of prayer as a perpetuall direction to the church and in deliuering the ten commaundements diuided into two tables so he hath not troubled vs with many sacraments whereby also our nature prone to Idolatry is respected and the grace of the new testament is wonderfully amplyfied We see how superstition grosse Idolatry haue preuailed in the church of Rome and infected with deadly poison one of the Sacramentes how much greater danger were it if moe sacraments had beene commaunded and commended vnto vs. Againe heereby we may perceiue and conceiue the difference betweene the old and new testament between the Sacramentes vnder the law and these vnder the Gospell betweene those giuen to the Iewes and these retained among Christians For ours are few in number theirs were many in number the Arke circumcision the Passeouer Manna the cloud the sea the rock many purifications oblations which are not easie to be numbred But the Gospell acknowledgeth onely two as two twins of the same father Hee reunto wee may adde not vnprofitably other material differences to be acknowledged They 〈◊〉 in time ours shew forth our communion with Christ already come and so are more firme and durable as those which are not to be chāged to the end of the world Ye shew the Lords death til he come Their Sacraments were ordained onely vntill the comming of Christ because they shewed and pointed out Christ to come so that the worke of grace was more obscure to them Again they differ in variety of Sacramentall signes and rites as the cutting of the foreskin the lambe of the Passeouer iournying through the sea sauing by the Arke drinking of the rock lifting vp the brasent Serpent raining downe of Manna washing of their body they had calues sheep Gotes doues bread wine Oyle and such like we haue onely water in Baptisme and bread and wine in the Lords Supper Thus the signes do greatly vary Fourthly they differ in easinesse For the Ceremonies committed to the people of the Iewes were hard combersome painefull to the slesh and some of them were administred with effusion sheding of blood partly of man and partly of beastes Of man as in circumcision of beasts as in the paschall lam be and in the sacrifices But our Sacramentes though Sacramentes of Christs blood shed for vs yet of themselues be voide of blood Fiftly they differ in measure of signification For our Sacramentes haue a more plentifull and full representation of grace offered and stir vp a greater measure of saith then the Sacramentes of the old Testament which were more darke and obscure the Lord reseruing a fuller measure of knowledge vnto the blessed times of the Gospe'l For as the exhibiting of Christ Iesus in the flesh and fulnesse of time and as it were in the old age of the world is of more efficacy to moue vs then the expectation of him to come so we haue better helpes and an holy aduantage to raise and rouse vp our faith to a greater assurance of grace and mercy by how much the accomplishment is more then the promise and the fulfilling greater then the foretelling Lastly they differ in respect of the people to whom they were giuen and for whom they were ordained ours belong to all people dispersed ouer the face of the whole earth that are ingrafted into the church wheras theirs wer tied to one Nation to one people to one place to the posterity of Abraham Notwithstanding these differences which are in signes and circumstances touching the chiefe thing euen the matter and substance of the Sacramentes they are equall hauing the same end and the same signification and being of one esficacy as also the word of the prophets and Apostles is One and the same God is author of them One and the same mediator betweene God and man euen the man Iesus Christ is represented in both being the lambe slaine from the foundation of the worlde They signifie and shew forth the same communion of Christ by which all the clect are saued and seale vp saluation and remission of sinnes to all that do receiue them by faith For they were giuen to bee signes and seales of grace and of the promises of God to distinguish the faithfull from all other sectes and religions in the world and that they should be receiued with profit onely of the faithfull In these and such like things the Sacramentes of the Iewish and Christian church are not vnequall although in the outward signes and circumstances they be diuers yet in the substance and in the thing signified there is no difference Thirdly we are bound to beleeue his promises and to haue strong consolation seeing he hath giuen vs 2. signes If we had onely had one signe as a seale of the mercies of God in Christ it had beene a great sinne not to haue beleeued the promise and not to haue rested therein as in a thing vnchangable For he is not as man that he should ly or deceiue his onely promise is
the faith beeing the eyes and hands of the soule Wherefore Cardinall Caietan not so grosse as many among them confesseth that these wordes proue not matrimony to be a Sacra Further it is euident to al that consider the circumstance of the text that the Apostle not forth marriage in this place as a similitude to represent the neere coniunction between christ and his church but 〈◊〉 he bringeth forth the exceeding and eminent loue of christ as a 〈◊〉 to declare and enforce what should be the loue of the husband toward the wife For the mayne point of exhortation is set downe verse 25. Husbands loue your wiues This is argued and enforced by the example of Christ As Christ loued the church and gaue himselfe for it Againe The man is the head of the woman as Christ is the head of the church And afterward He that loueth his wife loueth himselfe for no man euer yet hated his owne flesh but nourisheth and cherisheth it euen as the Lord doth the church By all these things it is plaine and manifest that if they wil needes in this place dreame of a sacrament consisting of a signe and thing signisied Christ and the church must be the signe representation and consecrated mistery to represent man and his wife and their mutuall loue each to other and not marriage a consecrated sign of him Last of al I would know of them whether so often as the old translator vseth the word sacrament they wil haue it taken strictly properly and particularly for the Sacraments of their church I thinke if they be sober minded and well aduised they dare not say so for then godlines shal be a sacrament Gods wil shall be a sacrament The calling of the Gentiles shal be a Sacrament Yea iniquity shal be a Sacrament For in al these places the word Sacrament is vsed as wel as in this place to the Ephesians by the old Interpretor sometimes in the good part and sometimes in the euil to whom notwithstanding they cleaue and must cleaue vnder paine of the censur and curse of the councell of Trent Chap. 20. That orders are no Sccrament BY orders we must vnderstand the offices and ministry of the church as also Peter Lumbard doth We confesse when Christ led captiuity captiue he gaue giftes vnto men and ordained Some to be Apostles some prophets some Euangelists and some pastors and teachers for the repairing of the saint for the worke of the ministry and for the edification of the bodie of Christ. By these he declareth his will vnto vs he gathereth togither his scattered sheep and publisheth the glad tydings of saluation as Ier. 7. I haue sent vnto you all my seruants the Prophets rising up earlie euerie date And christ our sauiour saith Luc 10. He that heareth you heareth me and he that despiseth you aespiseth me and he that despiseth me despiseth him that sent me And the Apostle Paule 2. Cor 5 teacheth God was in Christ and reconciled the world to himselfe not imputing their sins vnto them and hath committed to vs the word of reconciliation Now then are we Ambassadors for Christ as though God did beseech you through vs we pray you in Christs stead to be reconciled to God This we hold this we beleeue this we teach touching the degrees orders and offices of the ministry of the gospell But the popish orders of the Popish churches they say are seuen whereof some are greater and higher offices some are lower lesser and inferiour The greater are three the office of Priest-hood to offer vp the sacrifice of the bodye and blood of Christ vpon the Altar of Deaconship to assist the priests in all things which are done in the Sacramentes to bring in the oblations to set them vpon the Altar to couer it with cloathes to beare the crosse and to read the Gospell and Epistle to the people of the subdeacons to bringe the chalice and patten to bring the cruet with water and the towell to the Altar and to pour out water to wash their hands These are their higher Offices aboue the rest as the higher trees among the lower shrubs The lesser orders are foure in number First of dore-keepers these receiue the keyes of the church doore to open the same Secondly of readers to reade the Bible to the people Thirdly of Exorcistes to call vppon the name of the Lorde ouer such as haue vncleane spirites adiuring and coniuring them to come out in the name of god which power of commaunding euill spirites is ceased in the Church Lastly A Colythes to prepare and carry torches and tapers when the Gospell is read to the people or the sacrifice is to be offered These seuen popish orders or rather plaine disorders and consusions we cannot receiue into the number of Sacraments of the Church For 〈◊〉 orders are so fruitefull that this bird hath hatched seauen young ones This Sacrament is so rich so rank so riotous that it hath ingendered and brought forth seauen petty and pretty sacraments and therefore these being numbred and patched vp to the sormer we should haue 13. Sacraments A goodly brood of a gallant egge For if euery one of these orders of doore-keepers readers exorsistes Acolithes subdeacons deacons and priests be Sacraments we should multiply the number of Sacramentes according to the number of these orders and so indeede of seauen we should haue 13. Sacraments which were a very disorderly order or if you list to cal it an orderly disorder And so Peter Lumbard maister of the Sentences calleth not orders a Sacrament as speaking of one but Sacraments as speaking of many saying Orders are called Sacraments because in receiuing of them grace is conferred which is represented by those things that are there performed Neither can they say they al make but one sacrament sceing they are distinct offices one from another diuerse in offices in institution in calling in ordinatiō in ceremonies and in forme of consecration so that they may by as good right and as great reason make baptisme and the Lords supper one sacrament as all these orders so diuerse and distinct the one from the other Secondly sacraments haue their institution from christ orders haue not their institution from Christ to be Sacraments of the church therefore orders are no sacraments Nay as they are retained vsed in the church of Rome they are no ordinances or institutions of christ at all For touching the osfices of priest-hood to offer vp the body of Christ for the quick and dead of deacons to serue these Baals priests at their Idolatrous alters of subdeacōs of readers and of the rest they are not found in scripture neither were ordained by the apostles neither were they receiued into the church for many yeares after Christ and his Apostles The new Testament as it doth acknowledge no other sacrificer and sacrifice but Christ so it admitteth no priests no priest-hood but
the father of the sonne and of the Holy ghost the inward clensing of the sonle by the blood of Christ is represented This description of baptisme is to be opened and farther expounded vnto vs wherein fiue pointes are to be considered of vs. First it is called the first Sacrament both in respect of the other Sacrament of the Lords supper and because when the nations were conuerted to the saith and beleeued in the name of Christ they were immediatly baptized as we see the practise of the church Act. 2. 4. and Chap. 10. 47. and Ch 8 12. Where after embracing the faith we see the partaking of baptisme and the sealing vp of their conuersion Againe it is said there must be an outward washing of the body with water because the Apostle declareth therby the nature of a sacrament of baptism Eph 5. Calling it the washing of water through the Word and it hath a iust proportion or relation to the spirituall washing of our newe birth Tit. 3 5. being also called the baptisme of repentance and amendment of life for remission of sins Dipping into the water is not necessary to the being of a sacrament sprinkling of water is not necessary to the being of a Sacrament but wetting and washing with water is necessary to the being of a Sacrament Now whether the whole body should be washed or the face only and whether it should be done once or thrice is not greatly materiall but left indifferent to the church to decree and determine what shal be thought fittest to be receiued and practised Thirdly it is added in the former description that baptisme is once onely to be administred For as in naturall generation man is once onely borne so it is in spirituall regeneration And as circumcision was once only receiued in the flesh whereby the fore-skin was circumcised so is Baptisme once onely to be administred not oftentimes to be repeated Wherefore the Apostle Eph. 4. saith There is one baptisme one faith Againe Christ willed the Apostles to minister Baptisme not Baptismes Lastly in baptisme the death of Christ is represented and he died but once so that as his death was not to be repeated no more is baptisme to be reiterated Fourthly the forme and manner of doing is said to be Into the name of the father and of the sonne and of the Holy-ghost Wherby is ment that we haue fellowship with God in three persons as a wife hath with her husband who passeth into her husbands name to be subiect to him to obey him to acknowledge and call vpon him to worship no other god but the true Iehoua This therfore is not to be vnderstood onely of vsing the name of the Trinity in baptizing but by it also is ment that the persons baptized are receiued into the grace and fellowship of God to become his people and to be pertakers of his couenant to their spirituall comfort Lastly in the description before remembred it is affirmed that the outward washing of the body Representeth the inward clensing of the soule by the blood of Iesus Christ. This appeareth expresly Gal. 3. All that are baptized into Christ haue put on Christ. And Titus 3. 5. 6. According to his mercy he saued vs by the washing of the new birth and the renewing of the Holy-ghost which he shed on vs aboundaintly through Iesus Christ our sauiour So also the same Apostle We are 〈◊〉 with him by baptisme into his death These testimonies out of the word of truth do euidently teach that this is the principall scope and end of Baptisme to assure our consciences by externall washing of the inward clensing of our soules by the blood of Christ for remission of sins This being the discription of baptisme let vs see what good vses may be made therof and euery part in order as they haue beene laid before vs. And first touching the first point mentioned before in the description that Baptisme is the first Sacrament This teacheth that such as are gained to the faith children of such as are in the profession are immediately to he baptized So was the Eunuch when he was instructed so was Paule when he was conuerted so were the Iewes when they repented And indeede this is a true saying that men cannot be incorporate into any religion whether it be true or false vnlesse they be combined together by some communion and fellowship of visible Sacraments Again Is baptisme the first Sacrament of the new Testament Then it followeth that he which is not baptized is not to be admitted to the Lords table he that hath not receiued the first Sacrament is not to bee made partaker of the second As in the old testament circumcision was the Sacrament of entrance and admission and none was admitted to eate the Passouer but such as wer circumcised as we see Exod. so none hath this right and priuiledge to come to the supper of the Lord vnlesse first they be entred and the doore opened to them by baptisme For a man must be knowne to belong to our family and houshold before he presume to eat of the childrens bread that belongeth not to strangers Touching the vse of the 2. point to wit that there must be washing with waters we learne that washing with water is of the necessity of baptisme Indeed ther may be a washing without baptisme but ther can be no baptisme without washing The washing of water through the word So that this washing is necessary because of the fit similitude that is between it and our regeneration or new-birth The water is apt to clense vs leaueth no silah behind so is our iustification 〈◊〉 sanctification repressented by the blood of christ as shal be cōsidered Therfore such as vsed sand or blood or such like matter not fit for washing did not indeed baptize but horribly prophane the Sacra of baptisme The third point in the description is that baptisme is once onely to be administred which affordeth vnto vs these three vses First it sheweth a difference between it and the Lords supper The Apostle Paule speaking of the supper of the Lord saith As oft as ye shal eat this bread and drinke of this cup and Christ our sauiour Do this as oft as ye drink it in remembrance of me therfore it must be often receiued of the church But baptisme once ministred is not againe to be repeated As we are once onely borne into the world but after our birth are dayly nourished so we are but once baptized but there is continuall vse of the Lords supper where at we are fed to eternall life Secondly this teacheth that all rebaptizing is vnlawful as we see by the examples of the Apostles who baptized not the beleeuers and members of the church the second time For Act. 2. it is noted that such as beleeued the gospel continued in the apostles doctrine in fellowship in breaking of bread prayer but not
of washing away sins were found in the element of water Baptisme therfore is not the washing away of sins onely the bloud of Christ clenseth vs from al sin 1. Iohn 1 7. Againe this declareth the perpetuall vse of it in the church seeing it hath this effect to assure remission and forgiuenes of sins vnto this let vs bring our children of this let vs make them partakers from this let vs by no means keepe them and in this let vs continually renew our couenant with God Chap 2. That the parts of Baptisme are partly outward and partly inward Hitherto wee haue shewed how baptisme is taken and what it is In baptism we are to consider 2 things his parts and his vses For as in the former book when we spake of the Sacraments in generall hauing shewed what a Sacrament is we discended to his parts and vses wherein the perfect knowledge thereof consisteth so wee wiil obserue the same in handling the doctrine of the sacraments in particular The parts of baptisme are first to be opened the vses are to be reserued to their proper place The parts are 2. the outward and the inward parts This appeareth 1 Pet 3 Where of the baptisme that now is answereth that figure which is not a putting away of the filth of the flesh but a confident demanding which a good conscience maketh to God and saueth vs by the resurrection of Iesus Christ. Where the A postle teacheth that sinne cannot be washed awaye by that outwarde water but by Christs inward working which the outward baptisme doth shaddow In like manner Mar. 1. Truth it is I haue baptized you ' with Water but hee will baptize you with the Holy-ghost where the baptise sheweth that hee baptized outwardly but the force of it proceedeth from Christ who baptizeth inwardly So Act 2 Peter saide vnto them Amend your liues and be baptized euerie one of you in the name of Iesus Christ for the remission of sinnes and ye shall receiue the gift of the Holy-ghost Where the A postle declareth that in such as repent and beleeue the vertue of the Holy-ghost is ioyned with outwarde baptisme The outwarde partes therefore are one thinge and the inwarde partes are another that which is seene is one thing and that which is vnderstood is another thing This diuision of the partes of Baptisme affoordeth diuers good vses and putteth vs in minde of sundrye holy duties And first of all are there outwarde and inwarde partes of baptisme then we learne hereby that the outwarde partes are no vaine ceremonies no fruitlesse rites no vnprofitable actions that may be neglected or contemned but auaileable signes and effectuall seales of the sprinkling of Christs blood for the forgiuenes of all our sinnes Againe seeing there is such an vnion of the partes betweene themselues we must not contemue or dispise or deferre baptisme Wherefore the faithfull all delaies reasons and pretences set aparte haue speedily prepared themselues to do that which God commaundeth Wee haue a worthy example in Abraham when god required him to circumcise himselfe his sonne and all the males of his house and thereby to vncouer all their shames hee doth not inquire why God required this at his hands hee doth not complaine or consult with flesh and blood ouer all doubts faith got the victory and subdued reason vnder her and caused him with diligence readines and expedition to submit himselfe to fulfill the Lords will and performe it the same day that he commaunded it Of this duty likewise we see Paule was admonished by Ananias immediately after his conuersion Act. 22. saying Why tariest thou Arise and be baptized and wash away thy sinnes in calling on the name of the Lord. Whereby he sheweth that this tarying and delay in the matters of God maketh vs culpable in his sight True it is it is not the want of Baptisme simply that is demnable as is shewed afterward but the contempt of the Sacraments is dangerous and without repentance damnable as it appeareth The Pharisies and expounders of the law despised the counsell of God against themselues and were not baptized of him We know all neglect and contempt in heauenly duties is euill and bringeth with it a certain curse as the prophet saith Cursed is he that doth the worke of the Lord negligently We see in humaine and wordly thinges wise-men will not deferre the sealing of their writings and calling of witnesses when they haue giuen a promise to other or made a bargaine with other knowing that vnnecessary delay may breede vnrecouerable danger as wee see by the example of Ieremy when he had bought a field of his vncles sonne presently he weighed him the siluer enrolled it in a booke of remembrance hee signed it he tooke witnesses and left it written in roles or records hauing an instrument or euidence fairely drawne and sealed with the common seale if any thing should be called in question in time to come 〈◊〉 he like we see in Abraham long before when he had bought a possession of the Hittites for the buriall of his dead he weighed out and paied 〈◊〉 money among Marchants so the field and the caue that was 〈◊〉 withal the trees and appurteuances that were therin was made sure to him for a possession As these men when they had made the purchase would not delay the taking of assurance and security the like delaying and vnnecessary putting off the time from Sabboath to Saboath from meeting to meeting ought to be fhunned of vs otherwise thogh we should be free from contempt we cannot excuse ourselues of the neglect of au high and holy duty to God and our children Indeede we are not pricisely tyed to a certaine day in Baptisme as the Iewes were to the 8. day in their circumcision but that which the 8. day was to them a conuenient and orderly time is to vs. Now what time can be more conuenient more comely more fitte then the Sabboath day following when the Church is assembled That so it may be administred rightly reuerently religiously and conueniently in the publike meetings of the faithfull Againe the needelesse and carelesse deferring of this worke hath a grieuous threatning annexed of assured punishment and iudgement as it is set down The vncircumcised male in whose flesh the foreskin is not circumcised euen that person snalbe cut off from his people because he hath broken my couenant Whereby we see that whosoeuer shal neglect circumcision not fuffer himself be circumcised or shal approue the negligence committed by his parents shall bee none of the peop'e of God but shall be shut out from the society and barred from the fellowship of the faithful both in this world and in the world to come vnlesse hee repent of this sin And that the neglect of Gods ordinance draweth his wrath appeareth in the example of Moyses The Lord met him and would haue killed him because his son was not
confession of the aduersaries which is strong against themselues to whome we may say as Christ sometimes did to that sloathfull person Thou euill seruaunt out of thine own mouth wil I iudge thee These make three sorts of baptisme of water of blood of the spirit whereby they consesle that the want of baptising with water is not damnable in all seeing that want may be supplyed either with shedding of their blood for the testimony of the truth or by spiritual regeneration and ingrafting into the body of christ To conclude do we desire the custome and practise of the church It is well knowne that in Thessalia the sacrament of baptisme was celebrated but once in the yeare namely at Easter In other places thrice in the yeare and sometimes not vntill the houre of their death when they were going the way of al slesh Constantine the great was the first christian Emperour yet was he not baptised till the time of his death And Valentinianus a christian Emperor died without baptism yet doth Ambrose giue him his due commendation and doubted nothing of his saluation Shal we do these good men these worthy Emperors these godly christians this wronge as to thinke they were damned who were the chiefe pillers and protectors of the Catholick religion Or if the churches aboue mentioned had holden this hard opinion that the want of baptisme was a signe of reprobation would they haue deferred it in the houre of death whereby sometimes they were 〈◊〉 or administred it at certaine times onely of the yeare True it is that custome is not to be followed neither the negligence of those byshops to be allowed but it teacheth thus much that in de ferring baptism they differed in iudgement from the new church of Rome and concurred in opinion with the reformed churches for which causes their practise is aledged The reasons vsed to maintain the absolute necessity of this sacrament to saluation are weak and not worth the answering First they obiect the threatning annexed to circumcision The vncircumcised male shall be cut off from his people To this I answere first God commandeth infants to be circumcised the eight day before which time they were forbidden to circumcise Wherfore infants that dy before the 8. day were not bound and obliged by this law And seeing there can be no transgression where there is no law they are not damnd because they are vncircumcifed seeing god calleth many out of this life before they were capable of this sacrament Againe the commination and threatning is not to be vnderstoode generally of all but of such as are growne vp not of children but of men as appeareth by the reason For he hath broke my couenant This cannot be applied to infantes who albeit they haue not actuall faith yet cannot be said to contemne grace to refuse the couenant to reiect the promises or to lie in infidelity hardnes of hart Wherfore it belongeth vnto those onely that being grown vp and come to yeares shall approue the negligence of their parents and will not suffer themselues to be circumcised Now as to Peter saiyng Thou shalt neuer wash my feet Christ answered If I wash thee not thou hast no part in me so to the Israelite that should haue said I will neuer be circumcised this threatning might fitly be applyed If thou wilt not be circumcised thou hast no part in God no portion in his blessing no assurance of his promises in this life or of his kingdome in the life to come Lastly to be cut off from the people doth not signifie to be condemned for euen the negligence and contempt of the Sacrament is pardonable wher repentance followeth as we see of such as cam vnuerently and vnworthily to the Lordes supper among the Corinthians who were punished with diseases and death it selfe yet the soule no doubt was saued in the day of the Lord. Sometime therefore that phrase of speaking signifieth temporall iudgements of God on men and their families for their wickednes Sometimes it signifieth the magistrates iustice inflicted on malefactors who beareth not the sword in vain which is expounded afterward Thou shalt surely kill him Sometimes it signifyeth to bee cut off from the bosome of the church which is done by the high and dreadfull censure or excommunication Whosoeuer eateth leauened bread from the first day vntill the seuenth day that person shal be out off from Israell the interpretation of which wordes is added verse 19. That person shall be cut off from the congregation of Israell So the Apostle speaketh 1 Cor. 5. Hee which hath done this thing should be put from among you that is from your company and fellowship as verse 13. Put away from among your selues that wicked man Thus we are to vnderstande the threatning in this place that such as contemne circumcision either themselues or allow the same contempt and negligence of others shall no longer be reckoned and reputed among the people of God but be seperated from them Againe they obiect Iohn 3. Vnlesse a man be borne of water and the spirit he cannot enter into the kingdome of God therefore say they it is necessary to saluation to be baptized This is the reason of Bellarmine and of others I answere first it is not necessary in this place by water to vnderstande materiall water but the grace of Christ purging and clensinge as water doth which interpretation may be gathred by conference of a like place Math 3 11. He shall baptise with the holy-ghost and with fire that is by the spirit of God which is as it were fire lightning our hearts with the knowledge of God inflaming them with his loue and purging them from euill affections So when we are said to be borne againe by water and the spirit he meaneth by the spirit shewing forth in vs the force power and property of Water as if hee should say we are borne of water which is the spirit as Ioh. 7 38 39. Again if it were ment of water in baptisme it must be vnderstood according to alike sentence Ioh. 6. Vnlesse you eate the flesh of the sonne of man and drinke his blood ye shall not haue life in you which must be vnderstood of such as are of yeares and growne in age And thus Innocentius the 3. in the decrees expoundeth it so doth Peter Lumbard maister of the 〈◊〉 So then if they will be tryed either by their owne Pope which is their holy father or by Peter Lumbard which is their grand-maister this place cannot be enforced against infants that die before they bee baptised but must be referred to men of greater yeares We reason not thus farre to iustifie and alow the sluggishnesse and neglect of carelesse parents vnder colour and pretence of this that the saluation of the child dependeth not vpon the participation of the Sacrament but to shew that if it cannot be obtained
heer baptized in these pIaces But do we read that any wer excluded And seeing the scripture expresseth al the houshold who shal dare to debar infants Are not they a principall part of the house Besides if the baptisme of children bee not to bee beleeued because it is not named and expressed wee might with as good reason shut out women from the Lords Supper if any were as great an enimie to the communicating of Women as to the baptisinge of Children seeinge wee do not expressely read that they were not admitted to the Lords table in the apostles times Wherfore childrens baptisme is no humaine tradition no apishimitation no ancient corruption of this Sacrament but is grounded on the vnblamable practise of the Apostles which hath the force and strength of a commaundement Thirdly Christ by his owne example aloweth and approueth their baptisme as we see Mar. 10 when the Disciples rebuked those that brought little chilren to Christ that he might touch them he said Suffer little children to come vnto me forbid them not for of such is the kingdome of God verily I say vnto you who soeuer shal not receiue the kingdome of God as a little child he shal not enter therein Wher we are to obserue that he saith not of these onely is the kingdome of heauen but of such like infants which shall be in all ages and times of the church In this act of Christ embracing the infants brought vnto him and sharply rebuking his Disciples thatforbad them we are to consider that he commaundeth children to be brought vnto him and addeth a reason To such belongeth the kingdome of heauen If any obiect It is said he embraced them it is not said he baptized them or if any reply and say that there is no agreement and resemblance betweene baptizing and embracing I answer he layeth his hands vpon them he prayeth for them he commendeth them to his father and saith The kingdome of heauen is theirs All this is a great deale more then to giue them the outward signe For if reason require they should be brought to Christ why should they not bee receiued to baptisme which is a signe of our vnion with Christ If the kingdome of heauen belong to them why should the signe be denied vnto them wherby the doore of entrance into the church is opened Why should we driue them away from Christ whom christ calleth vnto himselfe Neither let any say these children were of yeares and growne vp in age able of themselues to come and repaire to christ For the Euangeliste vseth such words as signifie such young infants as are babes and hang vpon their mothers brestes therefore by comming in this place he meaneth to draw neere or to haue excesse Againe they were such as were brought to Christ by others Luk. 18 15 they were caried in their Armes they walked not on their feet and Christ also tooke them in his owne armes Besides heerto agreeth the practise and custome of the primitiue church for no teacher so profound no docter so learned no writer so ancient which doth not refer the beginning heereof to the precise times of the Apostles Let the Anabaptists and aduersaries of this truth tell vs who was the first author and inuenter of childrens baptisme if they refer it not to Christ who first administred it What was his name if they cancel let them not hide it Let them declare the time when it began Let them shew the place where it was deuised Let them name the child first baptised and in what assembly or church it was If they cannot doe these or any of them let them acknowledge the baptisme of children to bee the ordinaunce of God and not of man warranted both by doctrine of the scripture and practise of the church Moreouer if there were no writer to auouch this ancient truth yet is it in it selfe very right and reasonable For doe we not see and behold daily verie babes and 〈◊〉 oftentimes among men admitted to their inheritance haue they not liuery and season of lande and haue they not the wand or turfe taken in their hands according to the vse of the 〈◊〉 or custome of the Manour of which they holde They knowe not what is done they perceiue nothing what the Lord of the Manour or stewarde speaketh vnto them yet we see among the wisest men in this world this is not thought foolish neither is such an admission called into question but they are afterwarde instructed what they haue done what they haue vndertak n and taken vpon them what seruices and duties they owe what their Lord requireth of them Thus they are admitted in their infancy to a temporal inheritance and possession this they holde to the end of their life and of the validity of such entrance no tenant maketh doubt Why then shoulde it seeme vnreasonable to giue them baptisme the signe of the couenant being born heirs of the promise that after they come to discretion they may make vse of it as the rest of the members of the church They shall understand afterward that which they vnderstand not for the present and yet if it please GOD to take them in mercy to himselfe from the miseries of the worlde before they know the mistery of their baptisme he worketh extraordinatily by wayes best knowne to himselfe the force of their baptisme in their harts and sealeth vp their engrafting into Christ I esus If then children haue the white wande deliuered vnto them to assure them of the inheritance which they holde let none deny vnto them the partakinge of this sacrament wherby they are assured of an eternal inheritance howsoeuer for the present time they are not capable of the knowledge thereof Lastly the priuiledges and prerogatiues of children are no lesse then those of elder yeares For infantes are a parte of the Church of GOD they are the sheep of CHRIST they are the children of the heauenly father they are inheritors of the kingdome of heauen they are redeemed with the blood of CHRIST and engrafted into his body why then should they not beare the marke of CHRIST seeing they are a principall part of his possession If they be a part of the houshold they ought to haue entrance into the house if they belong to the Citty of GOD who shall dare to shut the gates against them Or if they be in the number of the sheepe of Christ who shall presume to keepe them from the sheepe-folde Or if they be sound members of the bodie of christ who shall cut them off as rotten members Wherefore then should they not receiue the seale whereby the promise is confirmed vnto them seeing they haue the promise it selfe of saluation Why shoulde they not be pattakers of the outward signe seeing they are partakers of the thinge signified Why should they be put back from the figure seeing they haue the truth itselfe Why shoulde they not be
So the Prophet Ieremy saith Breake vppe your fallowe grounde and sowe not among thornes be circumcised to the Lorde and take away the fore-skinnes of yonr heartes ye men of Iudah and inhabitantes of Hierusalem least my wrath come foorthe like fire and burne but none can quench it because of the wickednes of your inuentions Circumcision was the thing wherin they bosted aboue althings it was their glory wheros they bragged to be a cirpeople peculiar to God Now the Prophets recall and reclaime them from trusting in outwarde signes and lying words that shall not profit and stirre them vp to confider the power and effect therof not to rest in cutting off a thin peece of skinne but to cut off quite and cleane their lusts and corruptions which rebell against the spirit This the Apostle teacheth euidently He is not a Iew which is one outward neither is that circumcision vvhich is outvvard in the flesh but he is a Ievv vvhich is one vvithin and the circumciston is of the hart in the spirit not in the Letter vvhose praise is not of men but of God The outward Letter is of no moment with God it must be the circumcision of the heart otherwise the circumcising of the flesh is nothing So if we woulde haue God to take vs for his people and heritage we must be all baptized in our hearts and our soules What will some say baptized in soule and in heart What is that Or how can this be Can the water wash the soule Surely the Water cast vppon our bodies is nothing if we haue not the truth of it As then the apostle Paule maketh a difference between inward circumcision of the spirit and outward circumcision of the letter insomuch that if they would haue the true circumcision indeed they must haue that which is within so is there a great difference between the baptism of the spirit and of the letter between that of the soul and the other of the body betweene that which is outwarde and that which is inward Whosoeuer would haue the true baptism indeed he must be clensed within repent of his Wickednesse mortifie his imaginations deny himselfe renounce his affections and offer vp his soule and body in sacrifice to God that he may renew and regenerate vs otherwise it is a certaine thinge we were neuer indeede and in truth baptized For as the Iewes were charged to be vncircumcised though the fore-skin of the flesh were cut off and so they were circumcised in body so we may in like maner be charged to be vnbaptized albeit we haue bin outwardly washed with water The Iewes chosen aboue all Nations to be the people of God were oftentimes condemned of forgery and fasehood for breaking the couenant of God and not answering to the truth thereof and were 〈◊〉 with the vncircumcisednesse of their heartes that they were worse then the heathen themselues a bastard broode witches children and vnworthy to be accounted Abrahams seede to the end they should bragge no more of their circumcision as Act. 7. Stephen a faithfull witnesse of God obiecteth against them Ye stiffe-necked and of vncircumcised heartes and eares ye haue alwaies resisted the Holy ghost as your fathers did so do you they shew the prophets which shewed before of the comming of that iust of whom ye are now the betrayers and murtherers where we see he discouereth their hypocrysie and setteth their sinnes before their faces telling them that as their fathers rebelled against god so the children followed their fathers footesteppes Do not these things concerne vs Though we haue not circumcision in action and practise belong they not to vs now a daies Yes euen to vs For we shall bee condemned for our vnclensed and vnsanctified heartes not answering to the truth of our baptisme For so much we profit by baptisme as we profit in mortification If then we be once baptized and washed with water we shall pay dearely for our desiling that sacred water which God hath appointed to so holy an vse True it is the water of it selfe is as nothing no other in substance and nature then that wherewith wee washe our hands but when once it is ioyned to the word and applyed to an holy end it is as it were an authenticall seale which God hath engrauen in it Now he that counterfaiteth the seale of a Prince shall hee not bee punished Behold baptisme is the seale of GOD which serueth not to seale conueyances of earthly possessions as house and landes but to assure vs that wee are called to the heauenly life and bringeth good assurance and warrant with it that we be washed from our sinnes by the blood of our Lorde I esus christ and borne again by his holy spirit Shall we break al and escape punished Let vs not then boast of our baptisme and Christianity to say oh we are baptized wee are christened we weare the badge of God these things these things I say will cost vs deere if we make not our baptisme auaileable to our selues and our owne soules by killing our corruptions for thereby we shew our selues like vnto the foole that maketh a vow and immediately after breaketh it Now although we professe the Gospell yet you shall finde a great number that knowe not this vse of baptisme neither wherto it auaileth nor to what endes it was ordained They cal it indeed their christend ome but are altogether ignorant of the nature therof are vnacquainted with the effect of it This will cost them decrely for abusing such a pledge-token at Gods hands seeing it is a meanes whereby we are vnited to our Lord Iesus christ and ingrafted into his death and resurrection Wherefore whereas many haue receiued baptisme in their infancy and haue liued 40. or 50. yeares in the world without knowing to what end they were baptized it had been better for them that they had beene borne dead or perished in their mothers wombe as as vntimely fruite then to haue vnhalowed so holy and precious a thing Thus of the third and last vse of baptisme as also of the parts thereof and generally touching this whole Sacrament The end of the second Booke THE THIRDE BOOKE of the lords Supper being Christs farwel-token to his church and a sweet pledge of his woonderfull kindnesse toward mankinde where in the truth of this Sacrament is manifested the parts are deliuered the vses are shewed the doctrine of the reformed Churches is cleered the errors of the church of Rome are euidently conuinced and the meanes set downe how euery one is to be prepared to the worthy receiuing thereof with fruite and comfort CHAP. 1. of the names and titles of this Sacrament together with the reasons and vses thereof IN the former Booke we haue spoken of baptisme the first sacrament of the church together with the partes and vses thereof Now we are to set downe the doctrine of the Lordes supper which is the second sacrament For after that God
the malicious man as the Apostle teachech 1 Cor. 11 18 20. When ye come together in the church I heare that there are dissentions among you this is not to eate the Lordes Supper Wherefore in that the people communicate of one and the same bread of one and the same wine it signifieth the vnion and agreement betweene all the faithfull in one body where of Christ Icsns is the head who loued vs decrely and spared not his life for vs. Let vs ioyne our selues together in loue according to the exhortation of the Apostle Rom 15 5 6. The God of patience and consolation giue you that ye 〈◊〉 like minded one toward another according to Christ Iesus that yee with one minde and with one mouth may praise God euen the father of our Lord Iesus Christ. All beleeuers must bee of one heart and minde the Wolfe and the lambe the Lyon and the calfe must dwell together in the kingdome of Christ for all are one in Christ Iesus For the Apostle hauing taught that the cup which we blesse and the bread which we breake are the communion of the body and blood of christ he addeth We that are many are one bread and one body because we are all partakers of one bread and therefore he saith 1 cor 11. When ye come together to eate tary one for another The second title giuen to this Sacrament is the Lords Supper by which name it is nowe most vsually and commonly called both because it was so instituted by Christ after his last Supper and is celebrated in the remembrance of CHRIST Heereby we learne first who is the author of this Sacrament not Peter not Paule not any of the Apostles not any man not any angell but Christ Iesus God and man and therefore it is not called the Supper of the Apostles or of any man but of CHRIST himselfe as the Apostle speaketh of baptisme Was Paule crucified for you Either were yee baptized into the name of Paule I baptized none into mine oxne name Wherefore this title serueth to teach vs and to put vs in minde of the author of this Sacrament Secondly seeing this sacrament is not a common supper but an holy and heauenly banket fully furnished not to fill the body but to feede the soule we must come with an earnest desire and longing after CHRIST hungring and thirsting after his righteousnesse and merites as after our life to bee made pattakers thereof For neuer did the body more stand in neede of corporall foode then doth the soule of this Bread of life which came downe from heauen which the father hath promited to giue vnto vs Lastly it condemneth our English Rhemistes and other romish readers of Popish diuinity that wholly condemne this name and title as vnproper and vnfit for this sacrament and vnderstande the Apostle to speake of the loue-feastes when he speaketh of the Lords Supper Indeed in the Apostles times they vsed to meete to gither in one common place not onely for the hearing of the worde for the receiuing of the Sacraments and for prayer to God but to keep certaine feasts which of their end or vse were called feasts of charity as Iude speaketh But of these the Apostle speaketh not when he named the Lordes Supper For first let them shew vs the place where euer these Loue-feasts are called the Lords Supper and then they may warrant their exposition by some colour otherwise wee cannot receiue their interpretation being of priuate motion Secondly if this title were ment of Loue-feastes to what purpose should the Apostle bring in the institution of the sacrament of the body and blood of Christ and largely handle the doctrin therof Wher as their abuses in their loue-feasts might be reformed and 〈◊〉 without this mention and remembraunce of the supper Thirdly to what end should these solemn feasts and bankets be called the Lordes supper which were not instituted in the honour of Christ but to testifie the mutuall loue of those that were members of the same body hauing God for their mercifull father the church for their tender mother and Christ for their elder brother These might rather be called the supper of men then of the Lorde being feasts of charity not of piety Fourthly the Apostles drift and purpose in this place is to teach that such as norish discention and diuision partake the Lords supper vnworthily and therefore willeth them when they come to communicate with the Lord to shake out of their minds all vncharitable affections as chaffe from good corn that so they may assemble togither with profit and not with hurt Last of al to call this sacrament by the name of the lords supper is vsuall among the ancient fathers of the church grounding themselues from the authority of the scripture and example of the Apostle 〈◊〉 some of their owne Writers call this sacrament and expound the words of saint Paule to the Corinthians If therefore they will rest themselues either in the true interpretation of the scripture or in the exposition of the auncient fathers or in the confession of their owne Writers we cannot doubt but the Apostle meaning the Lords Supper vnderstandeth the sacrament of the bodye and blood of Christ. The next title giuen to this sacrament is the breaking of bread which offereth to our considerations these vses not to be passed ouer First it she weth that the substance of bred remaineth after the words of consecration and is not altered by any strange transubstantiation For when the Apostle saith This is my body which is broken for you properly it cannot be vnderstood of the body of Christ which was not broken but of his crucifying and death by a figuratiue speech taken from the substance of the bread which christ brake to distribute it among his Disciples and to represent effectually his suffering for vs. The accidents of bread cannot be broken as we shal see afterward no more then they can feed and nourish Besides we learne heerby that tropes and figures are vsed in the Sacrament contrary to the opinion and assertion of the church of Rome as wee make plaine by the institution and as we constraine the aduersaries themselues to confesse as when it is said his body was broken where the lyterall sence cannot be retained seeing a bone of him could not be broken Likewise when it is saide the cup is the newe testament the rock was Christ the bread is the communion of the body of christ these and such like cannot be interpreted without a figure Lastly seeing of this one action the whole sacrament hath his denomination as appeareth in many places Act ii 42. and xx 7. and 1 Cor xi xxiiii we must hold that as the Apostles and other Ministers of the church were wont in the administration of the supper to breake the bread so must we follow their example as they also followed the example
of Christ. Neither must this be accounted and accepted an as indifferent ceremony to be admitted or omitted at our own choise and pleasure seeing Christ Iesus the Lorde of this sacrament commaunded the scripture hath commended the Apostles haue practised and the Ministers afterward obserued the same as the Apostle witnesseth The bread which we breake is it not the communion of the body of Christ speaking of himselfe and the rest of the Ministers of the church Besides it is an essentiall expressing and tepresentation of the passion and crucifieng of Christ as also the pouring out of the wine into the cup of the Lorde Wherefore they are to be accused and conuinced as heynous breakers of the high ordinance of Christ as we see in the church of Rome who omit this breaking of the breade as impertinent and vnnecessary and as not significant For Christ Iesus commaunded his disciples to eat that breade which he had broken and this breaking pertaineth to the end of the sacrament so that it cannot be passed ouer without neglect of the institution of Christ and of the essence of the supper The next title giuen to this Sacrament is the table of the Lord and it is rightly so called as by a verye fit name For seeing it is a Supper and a most heauenly banket it is requisite there should be a table answereable vnto it that as it is the supper of the lord so there may be a table for the administration of it From hence we conclude diuers good vses for our further instruction First of al it she weth that Christ and his Apostles in the celebration of the supper vsed a table not an altar For albeit the Apostle paule speaketh vnproperly of the table and thereby vnderstand the heauenly meat and drinke which was set vpon the table for all the lords ghuests yet withal he insinuateth and signifieth the place where on they were put to wit vpon a table In like manner our fauiour Christ at the sirst institution of this sacra sate downe at the table with his Disciples he stood not with them at the altar Now according to the example of Christ and his disciples must be the practise of al churches inasmuch as christ shedding his blood on the crosse had abolished al altars and therefore the Infidels did oftentimes reprooue and reproach the Christians because they had no Altars who on the other side desended themselues that their Altars are the congregations of such as bow themselues in prayers and the spirites of iust men which smell as sweet incense in the nostrils of God other Altars then these they acknowledge none Furthermore inasmuch as the sacrament of the body blood of Christ was accustomably administred on a Table not an Altar of woode not of stone made mouable not immouable We learne from hence that it is a sacrament not a sacrifice An altar doth inferre and presuppose a sacrifice and a sacrifice is referred to the Altar whereon it is offered But we haue not now properly and sacrifice for that were to account the al-sufficient sacrifice of christ as vnsufficient and vnperfect therefore wee are not to bring Altars againe into the church There is no vse of altars in the new testament seeing the making of them togither with other types and ceremonies of the olde testament through the death of Christ is abolished as the Apostles teacheth 1 cor 9. Do ye not know that they which Minister about holy things eat of the things of the Temple and they which wait at the Altar are partakers of the altars And to like purpose Heb xiii x. We haue an altar wher of they haue no right to eat which serue in the tabernacle that is such as retain the necessary vse of the ceremonies begerly rudiments of the Iews are fallen frō Christ. Whereby we see plainly and apparently that sacrifices and Altars stood togither and sell togither and therefore whereas they would conclude the sacrifice of Masse from the vse of the 〈◊〉 wee may inuert the reason and make it serue to eueit and ouerthrowe the sacrifice of their Masse seeing it is certaine there were no Altars Lastly we must obsorue that it is not barely called a table but the table of the LORD to teach vs to draw neare vnto it with all reuerence and regard If we measure and mark our affection in earthly things we see what care and curiosity is ofttimes vsed when men come to the table and presence of Noble men howe much greater care and conscience should bee vsed of euery one of vs when wee come to this table where the King of kings and the Lord of heauen and earth is present Wherefore to stirre vs vppe to this duty and deuotion let euery one consider and meditate thus with himselfe I am this day to be the lords ghuest I am inuited to his table I am to eate of his bread and to drinke of his cuppe I haue not in this businesse to do with man whose breath is in his Nostrils but to deale with God in whose presence I do abide who is both a beholder and iudge of all my actions to whom I shall either stand or fall If I come in hypocrisie he will find me out before whom all things are naked and open if I come fitted by faith and sanctified by repentance I shall receiue Christ and all his merits to my endlesse comfort Thus much sufficeth to bee considered touching this title of the Lords table The last title of this Sacrament remaineth to be handled being called the new testament or will of Christ from whence wee may gather diuerse vses as good conclusions from this doctrine For first it teacheth that there is a double testament and couenant of God made to his people one of workes the other of grace one of the law the other of the Gospell as Ioh. 1 17 The law was giuen by Moyses but grace and truth by Iesus Christ. And Ier 31 31 32 I will make a new couenant with the house of Israell and the house of Iudah not according to the new couenant that I made with their fathers when I tooke them by the hand to bring them out of the land of Egypt the which my couenant they brake although I was an husband vnto them But this shall be the couenant that I will make with the house of Israell after those dates saith the Lord I will put my law in their inward partes and write it in their heartes and will be their God and they shall be my people The couenant of the law is a couenant where in God hath promised to his people all blessings corporall and spirituall temporall and eternall vnder the condition of perfect obedience Leuit. 26. Deut. 28. And hath threatned all curses and death it selfe to all that continue not in all parts and points of the law to do them The couenant of grace ratisied by the death and blood of
we learn first that God doth not lie nor dally with vs when we come to his heauenly table but doth truely offer those benefits in Christ which are represented to al that are admitted thereunto and therefore the Apostle said they did all eat the same spirituall meat and did all drinke the same spirituall drinke Indeede many of them did receiue onely the outwarde signes and did refuse or neglect the spirituall grace so liuely represented and truely offered vnto them but the greater was their sinne who laboured for the meat that perisheth but reiected the meat that endureth to euerlasting life Likewise christ in the administration of his Supper 〈◊〉 take eat this is my body When he biddeth vs take doth he not giue When he chargeth vs to eat and drinke doth he not offer When he commau ndeth vs to doe this doth he not apply the thing signified If then we come to this Supper and depart awaye without christ and without comfort the cause is in our selues hee is come neere vnto vs he standeth as it were at the doore knocking being reaready to enter hee mercifully offereth himselfe vnto vs but we refuse him we will none of him we bid him depart from vs and shutte the entrance of our heartes against him Againe wee see heere the excellent price and prehemenence of the Lordes Supper howsoeuer to those whose faith it doth not nourish whose assurance it doth not confirme and whose saluation it doth not further it is turned into most hurtefull and deadly poyson yet it is an holy banket for the Lordes ghuestes an instrument of grace a medicine for the sicke a pledge of saluation a comfort for the sinner an assurance of Gods promises a seale of our faith an helpe for the weake meate for the hungry drinke for the thirsty and a refuge for the distressed in time of tentation Is not this a worthy dignity Is not this a great priuiledge Is not this an high prerogatiue So that wee must highly regard and reuerently esteeme this mistery of our religion and badge of our profession to the glory of God and our owne comfort He that is not moued heerby to a reuerent regard thereof hath no sparke of gods spirit in hun but lyeth in darknesse and discomfit Thirdly heerby the aduersaries mouths are stopped and they are put to silence and shame who accuse vs to deny the blessed presence of CHRIST in the 〈◊〉 We confesse and beleeue that we receiue the body of CHRIST verily truely and indeede not a naked figure not a bare signe not an empty shaddow but euen that body which suffered death vpon the Crosse and that blood which was shed aud poured out for the remission of our sinnes This Christ himselfe teacheh Ioh. 6 Myflesh is meate indeede and my bloode is drinke indeede hee that eateth my flesh and drinketh my blood du elleth in me and I in him And againe ver 33 Verily verily I sar vnto you except ye eate the flesh of the sonne of man and drinke his blood yee 〈◊〉 no life in you 〈◊〉 eateth me euen he shall liue by me So then we teach we preach we publish we professe that there is no other substantiall foode of our soules and that whosoeuer is not partaker of his body and blood is voide of life of saluation of grace and of christ himselfe Wherefore we shall shew afterward that the difference betweene the church of Rome and vs is not whether christ be present in his supper but about the manner of his presence for we say and will neuer fly from it that as the outward signes of bread and Wine are deliuered and receiued so they represent and seale vp to euery true beleeuer God the father offering and giuing the Church also taking receiuing and applying christ crucified with all the promises of his couenant ratified in him vnto eternall life Lastly is this the matter and substance of the supper to offer and apply Christ for our wholesome nourishment Then we should often desire if wee hunger after Christ to sit downe at his Table to come to his banket to feede of his delicates and to be present at his dainties And why should any be absent that haue faith and repentance Why should they not shew that they are one body by eating all of one bread Why should not such apply christ to their iustification We know the Apostles oftentimes prepared offered deliuered the outward signs of the Lords supper exhibiting christ to all the faithful euen euery Lords day or first day of the weeke and the people receiued oftentimes the same as we see Act. 2. There he addeth to the church about three thousand soules and they continued in the Apostles doctrine and fellowship and breaking of bread and prayers And Chap. 20. 7. The first day of the weeke the Disciples came together to breake bread And this was the order and ordinance of the Church many yeares after the Apostles times In some places it was receiued euery day in many places euery Sabbaoth daye in all places often in the yeare vntill through the negligence of the Pastors in administring and the slacknesse of the people in communicating these vses were growne out of vsage and a frozen coldenesse in the practise of religion stepped in For it cannot be denyed but it proceedeth from the shop and inuention of the Deuell whosoeuer were the instrument to bring in this corrupt custome of once communicating in the yeare and that for the most parte for fashions sake Now to the end we might returne neerer to the ordinance of the Apostles that the often vse of the communnion might be retained and maintained and that the backwardnesse of the people might in part be redressed it was ordained by the Canons of many churches that euery one should communicate at the least three times in the yeare not that men should do it no oftner but least otherwise they would not do it so often or peraduenture do it not at all And if a suruey and examination wer made I feare it would be found to our great shame and beastly slouthfulnesse that scarce the tenth person hath satisfied the law in this respect in many places regarding no time of the yeare but Easter But seeing it is so necessary a sacrament let euery one consider of this holy mystery how fruitefull profitable and comfortable it is to be partaker thereof and how dangerous to neglect and contemne the same Is it not an vnkinde and churlish part amonge men when one hath prepared with great coastes and charges a rich banket killed his Oxen and his fatlings furnished his table with all prouision bidden his ghuests and set all things in order and readinesse to entertaine them were it not I say an vnkind and vncurteous parte for those that are called and bidden vnthankefully and churlishly to refuse to come Which of vs in such a case would not be moued disquieted and
his house Now christ with his twelue disciples alone were not sufficient to eat vp this lambe of a yeare old being great large according to the sirian kind as may be supposed by the discription of Aristotle Pliny others Neither doth it appeare that any remained or was burned with fire according to the institution of God because the Euangelists declare that so soone as the supper was administred and a psalme sung of thanksgiuing they went out into the Mount of Oliues Why then should we not thinke that christ added and annexed other to his family seing his own disciples sufficed not especially the blessed virgin his mother who was not long from him whom afterward after his departure he commended and committed to Iohn to be protected and prouided for who from that time took her home to his house as his own mother But to leaue these consideratiōs as coniectures we answer the former obiection that in asmuch as christ deliuered both signs to the same persons they might bar the people frō the bread as wel as from the cup. For I would know why the bread is necessary but because it was instituted by christ and retained by his Apostles Wherefore the institution maketh the one as requisite as the other Besids if other heretiks should arise as great enemies to the peoples partaking of the bread as the church of Rome is to their cōmunicating of the cup of the Lord how might they better be repressed and refelled then by alleaging the first institution of christ and shewing the practise of the Apostles so that the reasons brought to confute the one wil serue directly to ouerthrow the other Moreouer the disciples at the first ministration of the supper performed not the office of the minister nor any part of his duty but of the people Christ was the minister therof he took the bread he blessed he brake he gaue the bread saiing This is my body Likewise he tooke the cup blessed gaue the same saying This cup is the new testament in my blood On the other side the disciples took it did eat and drinke which are the proper duties of all the people Lastly the Apostle saith not in the first person we ate and drink as speaking of himselfe other teachers of the church but directing his speach to all that are called and sanctified in Christ in euery place according to the inscription of the epistle he saith As often as ye shal eate this bread drinke this cup ye shew the Lords death til he come Now these Corinthians to whō he specially wrote could not liue vntill the second comming of christ to iudgement therefore this eating and this drinking belongeth to al that cal vpon the name of god to the end of the world Secondly they object against the former truth this out of Act. 2 They continued in the apostles doctrine and in breaking of bread and Ch. 20 they came together to break bread It is not said to deliuer the cup vnto the people but to breake bread wherby they gather it was ministred vnto the people in one kind onely and not in both I answer by a cōmon Synecdoche one part is put for the whole For among the Hebrewes this phrase in scripture to eate bread is to receiue whole nourishment ful refreshing by eating and drinking as appeareth by many places wher mentioning only bread for food it were madnes to imagine and gather that they drunk not Besides the Apostle putteth the other part to wit drinking of the cup for the whole celebration of the supper when he saith By one spirit we are al baptized into one body and haue been al made to drink into one spirit where we see as our sauiour added the vniuersal note drink ye al of this and as the Euangelist Mark accordeth saying they al dranke of it so the Apostle doth not pretermit it but saith al were made to drink as if the Lord Iesus the Euangelists and the Apostles would preuent before hād the corruption followed in the church of Rome Wherfore seeing drinking of the cup doth not properly note out the whole action because no man was euer so grosly blinded to suppose that the cup might be alone administred it followeth that by this member expressed we must vnderstand the other and by one part the whole Furthermore it is a ruled case among themselues that it is flat sacriledge if a priest consecrate not this sacrament in both kindes but do it in bread onely If then the former scriptures Act. 2. and ch 20. proue the receiuing vnder one kind because bread onely is expressed so the cup to be excluded it wil likewise follow they consecrated in one kinde because the wine is not expressed and therefore by these places neither priest nor people should take the cup if they will not admit a trope or figure Neither can they say that Luke discribeth not what the Apostles consecrated or receiued but what they deliuered to the people for the Euangelist declareth Act. 20. 11. not onely that the Apostle brake the bread but did eate thereof himselfe so that they must confesse that Paule also receiued in one kind and consecrated in one kind or else necessarily grant one part put for the whole as likewise we say 1 Cor. 11 where he doth expresly touch and teach both kindes to the eating of the bread ioyning the drinking of this cup yet sometimes he expresseth onely the one signe for shortnes sake the church had receiued this vsual manner of speaking to call the Lordes Supperthe breaking of bread as verse 20. When ye come together into one place this is not to eate the Lords Supper and verse 33. When ye come together to eate tary one for another likewise verse 29. He discerneth not the Lords body and yet in the sentence going before hee saith that such as eate and drinke vnworthily do eate and drinke their owne iudgement Wherefore as the Apostles alwaies celebrated the supper by conseeration both of the bread and of the cup so the people alwaies receiued in both these kinds to their great comfort and consolation Thirdly they alleage that there is an vnion and coniunction of each signe that the body is in the blood and the blood in the body that christ is wholly and perfectly vnder each kind because now in his glorious body there is no separation of the body from the blood or blood from the body I answer surely if this were so it were a fault and friuolous thing to do that by more which may be c done by fewer to vse two kindes which may as well be done and is done vnder one as a wise Philosopher teacheth Besides if one may reason in that soit the whole supper might be abrogated for we are made partakers of christ in baptisme and he dwelleth in our hearts by faith which commeth by
strong hot fiery and fuming was wont to allay it with water that it might be mild and temporate least that which was taken 〈◊〉 helpe and further the soule should 〈◊〉 and 〈◊〉 the body This began for conueniency not for 〈◊〉 for fitnesse not for signification for sobriety not for any mistery But the water is no part of Christs institution neither can it be proued that Christ or his Apostles vsed water with their wine or commaunded others to mingle wine and water in this mistery or that Christs apostles euer receiued it as a matter of faith or taught it to be a necessary parte of this sacrament For Alexander the 5. Byshop of Rome was the first that mingled water 〈◊〉 wine at consecration and ordained that the oblation should be of vnleauened bread and not of leauened as till that time had beene vsed Wherefore let vs retaine and maintaine the plaine and simple institution of Christ who in his last Supper gaue wine not water to be drunk for he calleth it the fruit of the vine which is wine and not water Againe they may be pressed and hampered with their own dreames and deuises For whereas they hold that the wine must be mingled with water and that the elementes after the words of consecration are transubstantiated and remaine in their owne nature no more I would aske this question of these Watermen rowing in the troubled Sea of their owne decrees who are neere of kinne to the old hereticks called Aquarij whether the water mixed with the wine be turned into blood If they say it is not then they deny transubstantiation of all that is within the cup and so shake the vertue of their consecration in pieces if they say it is then will they make Christ a watery body and elementall besides it cannot be by vertue os Christes institution where water is neither expresled nor included So then their best defence is to answer with the Pharisies We cannot tell To conclude let vs not seeke to be wiser then Christ nor to mingle together more mysteries then we haue learned of him as Paule saith of his own practise That which I receiued of the Lord I haue deliuered vnto you Neither prophet nor Apostle nor Angell from heauen is to teach otherwise then Christ himselfe hath taught as he charged his disiples Teach them to obserue all things whatsoeuer I haue commaunded you He hath supreme authority in the Church his doctrine alone should be heard as the father himselfe witnesseth from heauen This is my beloued sonne in whom I haue delight heare him We are not to regard what other before vs haue thought meete to doe but what Christ did who is before all other and called himselfe the truth and not custome Thus much of the third outward part of the Lordes Supper to wit the two signes of bread and wine Chap. 6. Of the fourth outward part of the Lords Supper THe last outward part remaineth which are the communicantes whose actions are outward to take the bread and wine into their hands then to eate the bread and drinke the wine to the nourishment of their bodies as is directly proued by the institution of this sacrament where christ gaue the bread and cup into their hands the Disciples receiued the one and the other they did eate the bread and all dranke of the cup. These being the necessary actions of euery receiuer to take to eate to drinke it beateth down many falfe doctrines of the Church of Rome as their reseruation ostentation eleuation adoration circumgestation procession and pryuate communion it teacheth also many necessary truths to direct our knowledge and increase our obedience which we will consider in order First of all did Christ commaund his Disciples to eat and. drinke that he deliuered and posted them not ouer to eate thereof when they were departed neither willed them to defer their eating vntill afterward then all keeping and reseruing of bread in boxes pixes and other vessels of the church for daies weekes and months all shewing it to the people lifting it ouer the priests head and going with it in procession is vtterly vnlawfull For it is no sacrament vnlesse it be vsed according to Christs institution and cómandement but to the institution it belongeth as one the behalfe of the minister to take to blesse to poure out and to distribute so on the behalfe of the communicants to take to eate and to drink in them al to shew thereby the Lords death and to do it in remembrance of him which cannot be performed but by obseruing the whole action For how can they shew the Lords death or do it in remembrance of christ vnlesse they take and eate And as the paschallambe was not that passeouer vnlesse it were killed and eaten no more is the bread and wine a sacrament except they be receiued and digested The passeouer was the same in effect with the Lords supper who was the lambe slaine from the beginning of the world Now god commaunded that none of it should remaine vnto the morning but the remnant should be consumed with fire The like may be said of Manne the same in substance with this sacrament it was not to be kept caried about Let no man reserue thereof til morning Besids there is the same reason of the cup and of the bread but they reserue not the wine they carry it not about to shew the people why then should they keepe the other part Likewise when christ said to his Apostles Go baptize the nations it was no baptisme by the confession of the aduersaries themselues vnlesse there were some person baptized so when christ said Take and eat there is no sacrament vnlesse there be a receiuing and eating For as the one standeth in washing so doth the other in eating and drinking not in keeping and reseruing not in carying in procession on a white horse not in hanging it vp vnder a Canopy nor in bearing it to the sicke with bell and candle Christ tooke bread and gaue it to his Disciples saying Eate ye he tooke the cup and when he had giuen thanks he said drinke ye all of this do this in remembrance of me as often as ye shall eate this bread and drinke of this cup ye shew the Lordes death till hee come But they hang in it the pixe beare it in boxes and carry it about in publike tryumphes and in common calamities when any iudgement and war plague pestilence and famine and like visitation is among them then Iack in the boxe goeth abroad in solemne processions to be seene which is the way to increase not to slack to kindle not to quench to prouoke not to reuoke the iudgementes of God gone out against them Besides they shew this sacrament to the simple people to fall downe to it as to a God they put it vpon the breastes of the dead and sometimes lay it in
taught nothing they vnderstand nothing they heare nothing they receiue nothing and a few childish apish foolish and vnseemely gestures excepted they see nothing they tast nothing they partake nothing neither comfort of heart nor memory of Christ nor benefit of his passion But Christ in his last Supper did not eate vp all alone but after the Disciples hadde supped as Mathew setteth it downe he tooke bread and blessed he brake and gaue it to them saying take ye eate ye neither did he drinke alone of the fruite of the vine but taking the cup he gaue thanks and gaue to them all saying Drink ye all of this So then albeit a certain number of communicants are not limited and determined yet Christ in these wordes apoin 〈◊〉 eth a company to be present as apeareth by the number take ye eate ye drinke ye all deuide ye it among your selues doe ye this in my remembrance ye set foorth the Lordes death when yee come together to eat tarrie ye one for another as often as ye shal eat this bread These words cannot be vnderstood of one perticular man but necessarily import a greater number of men nay the Philosopher teacheth that the word all must be verified at the least of the number of three which is the least and lowest number that would be admitted to this supper Neither do we read that so soon as one was gained to the faith that the Apostles administred this Sacrament to him much lesse would they minister to themselues alone when none were conuerted in a nation or cittie Secondly Christ expressely commandeth vs to doe as himselfe did when he left this fare-well token and pledge of his 〈◊〉 to his Disciples saying Do this in remembrance of me But he after the wordes of consecration did not offer a sacrifice to his father vnder shewes of bread and wine but gaue the bread and cup to his Disciples and left his owne example as a direction for vs to followe so that the distribution and deliuerance of the signes is of the substance of the Sacrament as well as the breaking of the bread or pouring out of the wine and it is not lawfull in any sort to change the testament of Christ or to corrupt the meaning of the testator Thirdly the Apostle teacheth how he receiued from the Lorde that which he deliuered to the churches that the people should eate of this bread and drinke of this cup and proueth that the faithfull are made partakers of the Lords table not by gazing or looking on while others eat but by eating not by standing still while others drinke but by drinking as 1 Cor. x. Wee that are l many are one breade and one body because we are all partakers of one bread Fourthly the same Apostle reprooueth the Corinthians which presumed to the Supper of the Lorde besore others and did not tarry for their brethren when they came togither to be partakers of the sacrament as we see 1 Cor 11. Euery man a hen they should eate taketh his owne supper afore this is not to eat the Lords snpper And afterward Wherefore my brethren when ye come together to eate tarry one for another Now because the Corinthians brake this order and ordinance he chargeth them to come vnreuerently to receiue vnworthily to eat and drink iudgment vnto themselues Shall they then that are faithfull christians patiently beare the iniury done them by these sacrificing Masse-mungers who neuer bid the Lordes ghuestes nor call them to his table nor tarry for them till they come to this heauenly banket but like the priests of Bell do eate and drinke vp all themselues Fistly the same Apostle willeth and warneth all persons which come to this communion diligently to proue and examine themselues and then to come to this supper as we see 1 cor 12. Let a man examine himselfe and so let him eat of this bread and drinke of this cup so that he would not haue any excluded from receiuing which haue tryed their harts by examining and are thereby rightly propared to this great worke Lastly the names giuen to this Sacrament noting the nature thereof doe affoord vs a good consideration to strike through the heart of this priuate Masse being called sometimes the supper of the Lord and sometimes a communion among our selues If it be an holy supper and spirituall banket why are none bidden and called thereunto If it be a communion why doth the Priest vncharitably swallow all alone whereby they make it a communion but without company a supper but without ghuests meat but without eating drinke but without drinking a table but without sitting downe a participation but without any that are partakers a banket but without seeding thereat the people departing as hungery and thirsty as they came Wherefore as no man celebrated the Passeouer aright or receiued profit thereby but such as did eat the flesh thereof so can none come to the supper of the Lord as he ought though he looke vpon others except he eate of the bread and drinke of the cup according to the commaundement of Christ the author thereof And thus much of the sole communions and priuate Masses brought into the church against the example of Christ against the vse of the Apostles and against the name and nature of the sacrament it selfe Hitherto we haue pulled downe the Heresies of the Church of Rome and haue raked in the dirt and dungh ill of their deuises the sauour whereof hath annoyed heauen and earth now let us obserue out of this last outward part of the sacrament how we are directed and instructed therby to further our knowledge and obedience Did Christ commaunde the faithfull of his family to eate and drinke that which he deliuereth without laying any furder burthen or bondage vpon them then we must vnderstand it is no precept of Christ to receiue the Lordes supper fasting before any other meats and drinkes True it is the people whose zeale goeth beyond their knowledge make a great scruple of conscience in this point to come fasting which custom we do not condemn but commend so it be without superstition in themselues and iudging of others But howsoeuer many make as great a matter to communicate fasting as to come in faith yet this is no necessary rule or commaundement binding the conscience to the obseruation thereof For the Worde of God and institution of the sacrament are perfect directions to the church teaching all matters of faith and obedience yet they teach no such practise And our blessed sauiour teacheth his disciples what they should do the Euangelists deliuer what they did and among all their doctrine we find not this precept of fasting Againe Christ administred it not fasting the Apostles receiued it not fasting not that we are bounde to celebrate the supper at that time but to shew that Christ would neuer haue chosen to do it after Supper if that time had bin simply vnlawful Besides
the shewes of wine he is not personally locally carnally corporally naturally really substantially and sensually present in the Sacrament The question is not whether the wordes of christ be true for they are knowne confessed and beleeued so that as he is the truth so all his wordes are wordes of truth neither is the question whether the Sacrament bee a bare signe or bare figure we say Christ is truely represented sealed and exhibited neither is the question whether God'bo omnipotent and almighty this is a part of our faith and an Article of christian beleefe neither is the question simplye of the presence of Christ whether he be truely and vndoubtedly present in the Sacrament of his last supper we acknowledge and receiue as much But the whole question is of the meaning and vnderstanding of the words of institution and of the manner of his presence Wee confesse and teach the people committed vnto vs that christs body and blood are truely verilie and indeede giuen vnto vs that we truely eat and drinke them that we are releeued and liue by them that we are made bone of his bone that Christ dwelleth in vs and we in him yet we say not that the substance of bread and wine is abolished or that christs bodie discendeth from heauen or is groslie and corporally present in the sacrament we are taught to lift vp out hearts to heauen where christ sitteth at the right hand of God the father and there to feede vpon him But he ere is the state of the question and controuersie betweene vs. The church of Rome teacheth that after the wordes of consecration the bread and wine are abolished and the body and blood of christ come in place so that they make them corporally 〈◊〉 not onely in the sacrament to bee eaten with the mouth but in the pixe in the Masse and in their solemne processions where is neither eating nor drinking Yet Berengarius in his recantation was taught to saie and forced to subscribe that Christ is in the sacrament sensible or sensually is touched with the singers diuided broken rent with the teeth and not onely the accidents More ouer they make it to be eaten not onely of euill men but of beasts and to fill vp the measure of blasphemy to be cast out into the draught as some of them haue taught and affirmed Thus then the difference standeth betweene vs they hold that christs body and blood are carnally eaten of wicked men without faith of brute Beastes without reason but wee denye that CHRIST is thus present in the Sacrament for his body cannot bee vnder so little a quantity of bread and Wine besides it is impietie to 〈◊〉 that the person of CHRIST or his bodye and bloode can bee truelie receiued of Dogges 〈◊〉 and Mise be chewed with the teeth swallowed downe the throat digested in the stomacke and be cast out into vncleane places This we deny this we doe not beleeue this wee abhorre and detest from the bottom of our hearts What is it then we teach and professe We deny that the body and blood of Christ are carnally contained vnder the shews and shadowes of bread and wine we deny them to be eaten and drunken ofwicked men or vnreasonable creatures we deny that they are truely and properly both in heauen and on the earth in pixes and on the 〈◊〉 These are meate for the mind not for the mouth for faith not for the teeth for our beleefe not for the belly This carnall eating of Christ is confuted and conuinced by many reasons First Christ sate downe at the Table and the Disciples with him afterward he tooke bread gaue thankes brake it gaue it and said This is my body likewise he tooke and gaue the cup and sayd Drinke ye all of this whereby we see when the Apostles receiued the Sacrament Christ sate at the table with his true body but the body which they tooke sate not at the table therefore they tooke the signe of his body Likewise the blood which they receiued was not in the body which sate at the table therefore it vvas not properly Christes blood vvhich was not as yet really and actually shed The same body could not sit at the table not sit at the table the same body could not be in their handes and out of their handes the blood of Christ could not be out of his veines in the cup and in his vines within his body hee could not sit visible at the table and bee inuisible in the mouthes and bellies of the 〈◊〉 Wherefore the reall presence bringeth with it real contradictions which cannot stand together Secondly the end of the Lords supper is to call his death to a continuall remembrance as Luk. 22. Do this in remembrance of me and the Apostle 1 Cor. 11. Ye shew the Lords death vntill he come Now to what end should we neede the remembrance of Christ if he were corporally present in the sacrament if he were taken in the hands if he were holden in the mouth if he were eaten with the 〈◊〉 And to to what purpose should we shevv the Lordes death till he come if he come 〈◊〉 and be present bodily in the sacrament Besides the wisest a nong the Phylosophers teach vs that sence is of thinges present but remembrance is of such thinges as are absent as hope is of such thinges as are to come not seene and this the Apostle teacheth Thirdly Christ receiued a true body withall the naturall properties of an 〈◊〉 body like to vs in all thinges sinne onely exc pted and is therefore called the sonne of 〈◊〉 the sonne of 〈◊〉 the sonne of man our brother partaker of flesh and blood hee is said to haue taken vpon him the seede of Abraham and not the Angels nature to be visible Luk. 24 39 Behold my hands and my feete for it is I my selfe 〈◊〉 me and see for a spirit hath not flesh and bones as ye see me haue For if he may be in many places together in some place visible and in some inuisible in some to be handled in others nor to be handled hee can haue no true body of a true man And if this were not a strong reason It is not felt and seene therefore no humaine body the Disciples might haue answered vnto Christ why doest thou bid vs behold thy hands and see thy feete and handle thy body and thereby to try thy humanity seeing thou hast a body which cannot be seene touched or handled Fourthly christ hath left the earth with his bodily presence and is 〈◊〉 vp into he 〈◊〉 farre aboue all principalities and powers and is sit do vne on the right hand of his father as Act. 1. While they beheld he was taken vp And Mar. 16. After the Lord had spoken vnto them he was receiued into heauen and sate at the right hand of God So Act. 3. Whom the heauens must containe vntil
like vnto him in regarde of this naturall body yet they are not indued with his heauenly spirit they haue many 〈◊〉 through him but they want such as accompanie saluation chap. 14. Of the third vse of the Lordes supper THe third vse of the Lordes supper is a spirituall communion aud growth with our brethren to bee one bodye with them flowing from the communion which we haue with Christ. For as the vnion betweene brethren and sisters of the same bloode and of the same flesh springeth from the neer coniunction they haue from father and mothers as from a fountaine and as the vnity and concord among seruants of the same society ariseth by meanes of the same maister so the faithfull that haue communion with christ haue likewise communion one with another This Paul testifieth euidently writing to the Corinthians We that are many are one breade and one body because we all are partakers of one bread This is to be vnderstood of that communion and fellowshippe which the members haue one with another who receiue food and norishment from the same table therby professing themselues to be of the selfe same family and houshold Besides by the vniting together of many graines is made one bread of many clusters of Grapes one wine is pressed out so out of many members groweth vp one body of the church which is the body of christ This maketh much to the reconciling renueing and maintayning of friendship that we are all partakers of one bread made of many cornes and 〈◊〉 of the same cup of wine made of many clusters as the Apostle setteth downe 1. cor 11. Wee are all made to drinke into one spirit Wherfore we are not onely to look to our vnion with christ but also our ioyning our selues with them who are of the same misticall body be they neuer so many that receiue with vs this holy supper in respect whereof this sacrament hath bin called a communion Now let vs consider what vse may be made heereof to our selues Is this one end of the institution of christs last supper to lay before vs our communion one with another then what gifts soeuer we haue receiued from christ wee must imploy them to the benefit and good of others If god haue giuen vs knowledge we must vse it io instruct the ignorant if the gift of zeale we must applie it to kindle and stir vp others to remember from whence they are fallen if faith and sanctification we must bestow them to the gaining and winning of others if the outward thinges of this life and this worlds good we must communicate them to others according 〈◊〉 their want and out wealth their pouerty and our plenty The candle hath receiued light not for it selfe but for others The trees bring forth fruite the clouds drop downe raine the fountaines send downe water the Sun shiaeth the earth flourisheth the Bee gathereth the beast laboureth to profit others And wherefore haue we all receiued moysture from the root light from the sun fruit from the tree water from the fountain euen life from Christ but to impart it to others as freely as we receiued This is taughtvs in many placs Let euery man as he hath receiued the gift minister the same one to another And in another place The manifestation of the spirit is giuen to euerie man to profit withal god hath tempred the body together least there should be anie diuision in the body that the members might haue the same careone for another So then the gifts that we haue receiued of vnderstanding wisedome zeale exhortation reprehension and whatsoeuer gifts externall internall or eternall let vs consider that we are stewards not maisters of them and therefore must render and giue an account vnto the author and giuer of them when he shall say Giue an account of thy stewardshippe for thou mayest bee no longer Steward Againe is the Lordes supper the bond of charity and doth it put vs in mind of our communion with the saints fellowship which one hath with another then all such as receyue the same doctrine imbrace the same religion and 〈◊〉 at the same table must be vnited in Christian loue gentlenes meeknes and patience one towarde another supporting one another bearinge the burthan one of another being alike affected and disposed guided by one spirit nourished by the milke of the same word acknowledging one 〈◊〉 professising one faith liuing in one bodye walking in one callinge looking for one kingedome worshipping one Lorde meeting at one Supper and washed with one Babtisme for our ' regeneration and sanctification according to the saying of the Apostle Eph 4. Walke worthy of the vocation whereunto ye are called endeuouring to keeepe the vnity of the spirit in the bond of peace there is one body and one spirit euen as ye are called in one hope of your vocation There is one Lord one faith one baptisme one god and father of all which is a boue all and through all and in you all And in the same epistle to the Philippians If there be any consolation in Christ if any comfort of loue if any fellowship of the spirit if any compassion and mercy fulfill my ioy that ye be like minded hauing the same loue being of one accord and of one iudgement that nothing be done through contention And Luke Act. 4. describing the notes of the Church of Christ saith The whole multitude of them that beleeued were of one heart and one soule neither any of them said that any thing of that which he possessed was his owne but they had all things common Let vs acknowledge our selues to bee fellowes of one houshold and members of one body and euermore bring with vs this fruite of loue to the lords Supper otherwise we shall neuer be the Lords ghuests If bretheren that are the children of the same father malice and maligne one another will not the father be angry And if one fellow-seruantes brought vp in one family fall together by the eares will not their maister be displeased and offended Seeing then God hath vouchsafed to call vs his children to admitte vs into his house to nourish vs at his owne table and to preserue and reserue vs to his heaueuly kingdome hee will take from vs all these priuiledges and 〈◊〉 if wee be hatefull and hating one another and deale with vs not as with his own children but as with his vtter enemies Thus much of the third and last end of the Lords Supper Chap. 15. Of examination before the Lords supper WHat the Supper of the Lord is what are the parts and vses thereof and what an heauenly banket it is for al worthy receiuers hath hitherto bene sufficiently declared now it followeth to set downe the way and means how we may come 〈◊〉 For the whole fruit of this Sacrament standeth in the right partaking thereof The right manner standeth in preparing ourselues to come and
faith and renewed repentance because euery new sinne requireth a new act of repentanee and appealing to Christ by faith Then we are aright disposed to the lords table when we are liuely touched with a sence and feeling of our corrupt dispositions and daily failings in our faith and obedience For the repentance of euery faithfull man must be doble first general repenting of original and actuall sinnes generally receiuing power of God to change ourminds wils and affections whereof Ioh. bap t ist saith Repent for the kingdome of heauen is at hand This is giuen and granted vnto vs at that time when firste we receiue to beleeue it maketh an alteration in vs slayth the old man quickneth the life of the new man beginneth in weaknes continueth in greater strength and groweth more and more vnto perfection Secondly speciall for speciall sinnes and continuall failings into which we fall which we must practise to the end of our dayes Now as we said in the former chapter that no man for the feeblenes of his faith is to absent himself from this supper so must we remember touching our repentance thogh it be in great weakenes and frailty yet if it be a sound and sincere hatred of all sinne not a for saking of some sinnes onely as Saul herod and Iudus did keeping other in themselues to their owne confusion our imperfections shal be couered our wants shall be supplied our weaknes shal be remitted by the death of Christ who was annointed and sent to preach the gospell to the poore to heale the broken hearted to publish deliuerance to the captiues recouering of sight to the blind and to set at liberty them that are brused And hepronounceth such blessed as are poor in spirit For theirs is the kingdome of heauen Wherfore if thou feele in thy selfe great defectes of faith of 〈◊〉 of sanctification pray to God earnestly that hee will vouchsafe to increase his giftes let vs confesse with Dauid wee haue find let vs weep with Pet. and the sinful woman let vs acknowledge our vnworthines and say with the Centurion Lord We are not worthy that thou shouldst come vnder our roofe Let vs cry out with the Publican O God be merciful to me a sinner This is the way to make vs worthy this is the means to fit vs to the Lords table this is to be practised of such as will be his ghuests Chap. 19. Of reconciliation to our brethren the last part of Examination HItherto in examination of our selues we hane shewd what wee are to doe in respect of GOD the roote whereof is knowledge the body is faith the fruite is repentance Now to conclude wee are to handle the last part which is loue toward men and reconciliation of our selues to our neighbors for iniuries wronges and offences done vnto them which are as poyson to this banket For in vaine we shall pretend knowledge boast of faith glory of repentance if we faile in duties toward our bretheren For heere is the touchstone and tryall of all the rest euen our obedience to the second table which concerneth the duties of loue toward our bretheren Heerevnto commeth the doctrine of Christ set downe in the Euangelist Math. 5. If thou bring thy gift to the alter and there remembrest that thy brother hath ought against thee leaue there thy gift before the altar and goe first be reconciled to thy brother then come and offer thy gift Where he teacheth that he so approproueth this duty that hee will haue his owne immediat seruice cease and giue place for a time till it be performed So in the Sermon which he made to his Apostles before he was betrayed to death he did diligently beate vpon this point saying By this shall all men know that ye are my Disciples if ye loue one another This is my 〈◊〉 that ye loue one another as I haue loued you greater loue then this hath no man that a man bestow his life for his frends ye are my friends if ye doe whatsoeuer I commaund you This likewise the Apostle teacheth that we may know him to be the scoller of the same maister Coloss. 3 As the elect of God holie and beloued put on tender mercy kindnesse humblenesse of minde meekenesse long-suffering forbearing one another and forgiuing one another if any man haue a quarell vnto another euen as Christ forgaue you euen so doe ye and aboue all these things put on loue which is the bound of perfectnesse As euery one hath a comfortable experience in his own hart of Gods mercy toward him in the pardon of his sinnes which are many and great so let him shew mercy againe as he hath receiued mercy and deale vnto others kindly as God hath delt gratiously toward him Our sauiour Christ auoucheth this Math. 18. in the parable of the lender that had many debters he called them to take an account of them and forgiueth the debt hauing compassion on him that was not able to pay but when he was departed and had found one of his fellow-seruants which ought him an hundred pence he laid hand on him thratled him and cast him in prison till he should pay the debt Then the Lord called him and said O euil seruant I forgaue thee all that debt because thou prayedst me Oughtest thou not also to haue pittie on thy fellow-seruant euen as I had pittie on thee So his Lord was wroth and deliuered him to the tormenters till he should pay all that was due to him Then followeth the application of the whole So likewise shall mine heauenly father do vnto you except ye forgiue from your harts each one his brother their trespasses Now the Lordes supper was ordained of God for this end that it might be a band of loue and a chaine to vnite and ioyne vs togither among our selues that if it wer possible we should not breake from him as Paule teacheth 1 Cor. 10 We that are manie are one bread and one bodie because we al are partakers of one bread Wherefore this Supper may fitly be called a Sacrament of vnity and a seale of our agreement one with another Behold heere a chaine consisting of many linkes to knit vs together that wee breake not from God and our brethren Do we not al come to the table Do we not all eat of the same bread Do we not al drinke of the same cup Is not the same loafe compact of many cornes Is not the same Wine pressed out of many clusters Do we not all ioyne together in the same receiuing Were we not baptized into the same baptism What a shameful thing is this full of infamy and reproach to see the branches of the same vine the sheepe of the same shepheard the children of the same father the Seruants of the same maister the fellowes of the same houshould the heirs of the same kingdome the ghuests of the same banket the obtainers of the same
beleeuers who vouchsafeth to be their God the god of their seed Hence likewise it appeareth that infants are to be baptized For baptisme succeedeth in place of circumcision the Apostles baptized whole houses Christ calleth infants and sucklings vnto himselfe and 〈◊〉 that to such belongeth the kingdome of Heauen they are Christ sheepe and members of his body Hence we learne that the baptisme of infantes is no vnwritten tradition but a written and diuine institution taught in the Scriptures Consider also heereby the difference betweene baptisme and the Lords Supper and that all are conceiued in originall sinne Acknowledge also a difference between them and the children os Infidels and let parents be incoraged to bring vp their children in the instruction and reformation of the Lord. Hitherto of the outward parts now follow the inward parts which also are four in number First god the father represented by the Mi. wherby our faith is gretly strengthned For whensoeuer the eie seeth the minister 〈◊〉 water on the body faith beholdeth god the father clensing the soule with the precious blood of his sonne Christ. The seconde part is the spirit of God hauing relation to the word and promise of God and therefore whensoeuer wee come to heare the word or to receiue the sacramentes we must craue the assistance of the spirit to open our harts as he opened the hart of Lydia If this in ward teacher be wanting the eare heareth and the hand handleth but the hart is hardned The third in ward part of baptism is Christrepresented by the water This serueth greatly to confirme our faith to consider with our selues when we behold with our bodily eies the water poured vpon the bodie baptizd the blotting out of all our sinnes by the blood of Christ Iesus The 4. inward part is the soul clensed P most liuely and effectualy represented by the body washed For the washing of the body representeth the clensing of the soul. This teacheth that by nature we are corrupt and abhominable so that God must worke in vs both the will and the deede These are the foure in ward parts of baptisme The agreement betweene these outward and inward parts is very euident For as the Minister by the word of institution applyeth Water to the washing of the body so the father through the working of the spirit applyeth the bloode of Christ to the clensing of the soule Thus farre of the parts of Baptisme both the outward and the inward parts now we come to the vses thereof which are principally three First to shew our placing and planting into the blood of Christ to remaine in him for euer This coniunction with Christ is not bodily or naturall but misticall and marueilous in our eyes for we are made one with Christ by the same spirit dwelling in Christ and in all the members of Christ. So then the saints triumphing in heauen and al the beleeuers fighting vpon earth as souldiers in warfar haue one and the same spirit of christ dwelling in them and therfore are one with him Secondly to assure vs of the remission of our fins that we may bee able to stand in the presence of God hauing put on the garments of Christ as Iacob receiued the blessing clad in the garments of his elder brother This ouerthroweth the doctrin or rather doting of the church of Rome which teacheth that baptism abolisheth al sins going before it and leaueth nothing that hath the name or nature of sinne If this were a truth of god not a dreame of men it is not only decent but greatly to be desired to haue baptisme deferred vntil old age nay vnto the hower of death that so we may depart hence in peace with greater assurance of Gods fauor in the pardon of our sins Thirdly to slay the old man and to kil our natural corruption by the power of the death and burial of christ besides to raise vs vp againeto holines and newnes of life by his resurection Hence it is that the Euangelists call it the Sacrament of Repentance admonishing euery one of vs to expresse the strength and power of baptisme as the Prophets of tentimes exhort the lews to circumcise the forskin of their harts and to harden their necks no more So we ought not to content our selus to be baptized in body but must labour to be baptized in soul by a daily proceeding in regeneration by bringing foorth the fruites of sanctification and applying Christ Iesus to our full iustification Thus much of baptisme the honourable badge of our profession and dedication to Christ that dyed vppon the Crosse what it is what are the 〈◊〉 and vses thereof Now wee come to the Sacrament of the body and bloode of CHRIST e which is called by sundrye names in the new testament Sometimes it is called the Communion teaching that we are one body coupled togither in Christ shewing that it is to bee receiued of many togither and admonishing vs of vnity and concorde among our selues Sometimes it is called the Lords Supper hence we see who is the author of it no man no Angell but the Lord Iesus leauing it for a fare-well token of his loue toward vs. We must also come with an earnest desire hungring after Christ that we may be satisfied with his righteousnesse Sometimes it is called the breaking of breade this sheweth that the substance of breaderemayneth after the wordes of consecration that figuratiue speeches are vsed in the Sacrament and that this externall rite of breaking the bread vsed by Christ practised by the Apostles obserued by the pastors of the church ought not to be omitted and ouerpassed Sometimes it is called the table of the Lord this teacheth that christ and his Apostles at the celebration of it vsed a table not an altar that it is a Sacrament not a sacrifice and that we ought to draw neere vnto it with all regard aud reuerence Lastly it is called the new testament or Will of Christ. This title teacheth that there is a double couenant betweene God and man the one old the other new the one of the law the other of the Gospell the firste of Workes the seconde of grace Againe it serueth to condemne the cursed sacriledge of the church of Rome which addeth and detracteth altereth and mangleth this sacrament at her own pleasure and mingleth it with the leauen of her owne inuentions This is a great comfort to all Gods children to consider that all faithfull christians are the heires of Christ to whom he hath promised saluation of their soules and forgiuenesse of their sinnes As we haue seene the seueral names of this sacrament which shew the nature there of vnto vs so now we will set downe what the lords supper is The supper of the lord is the second sacrament wherein by visible receiuing of bread and wine is represented our spirituall
communion with the body and blood of christ Heere God is present and sitteth as president at this table he offereth vnto vs his owne sonne for our iustification and therefore this supper must be reuerently regarded and diligently frequented of vs. In this sacrament we are in like manner to consider the partes and the vses thereof The parts are partly outwarde and partly inwarde The outwarde partes are foure First the Minister who is to take the breade and Wine into his hands after the example of christ to seperate the breade and Wine so taken from their common vse to an holy to breake the breade to poure out the Wine and deliuer them both into the hands of all the people present So then they are not consecrated to be priestes of the new testament but preachers of the gospel and ministers of the sacraments and therefore priuate persons may not take this supper to themselues or deliuer it to others The second part is the word of institution this is my body that is this bread is a signe of my body which shortly shall be crucified for you this cuppe is the new testament in my blood that is this wine in the cup is a true sign of my blood presently to be shed to confirme the new couenant of God touching forgiuenes of sinnes and eternal life These words are not properly but figuratiuely to be vnderstood being sacramentall speeches Thus the Scripture speaketh of Circumcision and of the paschall Lambe The third outward part are bread and wine fit signes to signifie our spirituall nourishment by eating the body and drinking the blod of Christ In Baptisme we haue one onely signe but in this supper we haue two to note out our ful and perfect nourishment by Christ. Nether did christ deliuer the deceiueable shewes of bread and wine or cast a mist before the eyes of his desciples to make them thinke it breade which was no bread or wine which was no wine but he gaue them true breade and the true fruit of the vine as the apostle calleth them after the blessing breaking consecration Hereby falleth to the ground the mystery of transubstantiation the most misshapen monster that euer liued or was deuised It bringeth in a false Christ and turneth him into an idoll it maketh Sacraments without signes it maketh Christ to haue an infinite body who is like to vs in all things sinne onely excepted lastly it confoundeth heauen and earth together Neither let any obiect that Christ hath now a glorified body sitting at the right hand of his father and therefore his body hath a great priuiledge aboue ours to be in diuers places at the same time For first when the holy supper was instituted the body of Christ was not glorified Againe glorification doth not take away the nature of a true body but taketh away the infirmity and weaknes thereof Take away space of place from a body and it remaineth no longer a true body but the essence of it is abolished as Austine hath well determined Againe if Christ deliuered both signes the people ought to receiue vnder both kindes so that they may be iustly called church-robbers who haue taken from the people the vse of the cup and wretched depriuers of christes testament depriuing the right heires of their inheritance and ingrossing into their hands the goods of others They make it of the essence of the Sacrament to vse 〈◊〉 bread and to mingle water with wine which christe neuer ordained or commanded but that which is necessary they esteeme as needlesse and superfluous b thus transgressing the commaundement of God by their owne traditions The fourth outward part are the communicantes whose duty it is to take the breade and wine into their hands to eate the bread and to drinke the wine to the norishment of their bodies He did not bid them to reserue the outward signes to holde them and adore them or call the sacrament their Lord and their God he did not command them to offer thē vp to God the father as a propitiatory sacrifice for the quicke and dead as is vsed in their vnbloody or rather most bloody Masse which hath caused so much innocent blood of the blessed martyrs to be shed who being kild for theword of god and the testimony which they maintaind their souls vnder the altar cry day night with a loud voice vnto the L. holy and true to iudg and auenge their blood on them that dwell on the earth Lastly hereby are ouerthrown the priuat Masses of the church of Rome which now grow to be too common canot stand with the communion of Christe who deliuered the signes of bread and wine to all the disciples that were present they did not stand by and gaze one vpon another but receiued the supper of the Lord 〈◊〉 The outward parts haue bin hitherto handled which being rightly perfourmed there followeth consecration which is a seperation of the outward signes from their ordinarie vse to an holy and spirituall vse that whereas before they serued for the body now they are made instrumentes of grace and seales of the righteousnes by faith The inward parts follow which are foure First god the father who appointed his sonne to performe the gratious work of our redemption and in the fulnes of time sent him into the world who died for our sins and rose againe for our iustification Secondly the Holyghost who assureth vs of the truth of gods promises This sheweth that he is true god equall with the father and the son proceeding from the father and the son This 〈◊〉 such as suppose no partaking of the body and blood of christ except he be giuen vs in a carnall and fleshy manner whereas the spirite worketh faith in our hearts which is the ground of thinges which are hoped for and the euidence of thinges which are not seene The thirde inwarde part of the Lordes Supper is the body and blood of Christ deliuered for vs vnto death This conuinceth such of a spirit of errour who make vnbeleeuers and reprob partakers of Chr. body and blood thus his body should be prophaned and his sauing graces seperated from his person But euen as where Satan dwelleth and possesseth the heart there alwaies raigne the workes of darkenes and damnation so the gifts of Christ accompanying saluation are inseperably ioyned with the person of Christ. This also condemneth the reall presence and carnall eating of Christ which forgeth many Christs and reuiueth the Haeresie of Eutiches it crosseth sundry Articles of the christian faith and maketh faithfull men like the vnfaithfull Barbarians that deuoured mans flesh and drunke his blood True it is christ is truely present in the Sacrament howbeit not carnally and corporally but spiritually and mistically He hath giuen himselfe to be the foode of our soules let vs hunger and thirst after him and lay hold on him to
our saluation for he that hath the sonne hath life he that hath not the sonne of God hath not life The last inward part is the faith full receiuer who stretcheth forth the hand of faith and so layeth hold on Christ and all his sauing graces For no man can communicat with his body but the same is made partaker of his benefits Let vs all prepare the true and liuely faith of Gods elect and assure our selues that Hypocrites and vnbeleeuers cannot possibly be partakers of the bodye and blood of Christ. These are the foure inward partes also of the Lord supper The similitude and relation of the outward and inward parts one to another standeth in this manner euen as the Minister by the words of institution offereth and giueth bread and wine to the communicants to feede the reupon bodily so the father by the spirit offereth and exhibiteth the body and blood of christ Iesus to the souls of the faithful to feed vppon them spiritually Thus much of al the parts of the Lords supper now folow the vses to be vnfolded The vses profit which we reap by the Lords sup are special three First to shew forth with praise and thanks giuing the death and the suffrings of chri who his own selfe bare our sins in his body on the tree by whose stripes we are healed so that we haue the chiefe cause in our selus which did crucifie christ Secōdly to teach our comunion wich christ being made flesh of his flesh bone of his bones Hence we learn that al the godly and be leeuers are made partakers of christ and his graces This is matter of great comfort in our manifold trials and tentations that we are ioynd to Ch. as members to the head and therfore neither life nor deth nor angels nor principalities nor powers nor things presēt nor things to com nor hight nor depth nor any other creatur shal be able to seperate vs from the loue of God which is in christ Iesus our L. But on the other side the vngodly and vnbeleeuers haue no part or Portion in chri and his graces they are as branches cut off which wither and men gather them to cast them into the fire and to burn them 3 to declare and testifie our communion fellowship and agreement with our brethren meeting together at the same table and partaking togither of the same supper Wherfore seeing we haue not onely an vnion with christ but a comunion among our selus we are the seruants of the church to serue one another in al duties of loue to instruct them that are ignorāt to raise them that are fallen and to bind vp the broken hearted to reconcile our selues one to warde another and to keepe the vnity of the spirit in the bond of peace Hitherto we haue handled the doctrin of the Lords supper declaring what it is what are the parts and vses thereof the preparation to this work followeth consisting in the Examination of our selues and trying our owne harts by the touchstone of the lawe of god This duty is very necessary to be performd of vs for the hart of man is deceitful aboue all things and the secret corners of it past finding out We haue to deal with god in this busines Great is the profit which we reap receiue if we come rightly and 〈◊〉 prepared Great is the punishment procured by want of this try all and examination And the Sacrament it self is defiled by vnworthy receiuing This preparation principally standeth in these 4. points in the knowledge of god and of ourselues especially of the whole doctrine of the sacraments in a liuely faith in Christ seeing euery one receiueth so much as he beleeueth he receiueth in repentance from dead works and lastly in reconciliation towarde our brethren hauing peace with all men and loue towarde our enemies Thus I haue opened plainly yet truely the doctrine of the Sacramentes deliuered in the Scriptures and taught in the reformed churches I haue disclosed some part of the mistery of iniquity and discouered and laid open the skirts of that great Idoll of the Masse the reproach of christians the scorne of the gentiles the offence of the weak and the occasion of ruine to many that stumble therat to their own confusion The Lord god high possessor of heauen earth and preseruer of his people that call vpon him put it into the heart of all christian princes and rulers of the earth to pull downe this abhominable Idoll that hath aduanced itselfe against the kingdome of christ and to deface this filthy monster that hath deceiued many who trusted in it The same Lord vouchsafe to reueale his truth to the ignorant to establish them that are weake and to confound all obstinate enemies to his truth to their prince and to their country for Iesus Christs sake Amen Amen FINIS A Corollary THe Apostle Paule Christian Reader prophesieng of these last times in which Antichrist should be reueiled declareth that his comming shal be by the effectual working of Satan withall power signes lying wonders in al deceiuablenes of vnrighteousnes that so they might be damned which beleeue not the truth but haue pleasure in vnrighteousnesse In this discription the effectual working of this 〈◊〉 is set down but it is in those which 〈◊〉 For as God imparteth his power to his ministers and indueth them with his spirit to saue such as beleeue so doth Satan after an apish imitation giue power to his instruments and breath his spirit vpon them to condemne such 〈◊〉 receiue not the truth The manner and meanes of Antichrists preuailing in the children of disobedience is double to wit by worke and by worde His working is with great power which is seene by signes and lying wonders Now who it is in our daies that boasteth of wonders and I wot not what miracles Who maketh the power of working signes and miracles a note of the Church Who glory that they can euery day nay euery houre of the day miraculously transubstantiate the bread wine into the blood of christ who pretendeth that their real presence their images their priuate Masses other like superstitions haue been confirmed by miracles frō heauen Is not this the church of Rome which hath the Pope for her head her spouse and her foundation And is he not discerned by this note among other to be that very Antichrist described in scripture prophesied to com in the world 〈◊〉 now to the church and felt of euery christian Wherfore let vs carefully beware 〈◊〉 such signes and wonders carry away our eies and steale away our harts from the simplicity and sincerity of the Gospell The second meanes of his proceeding and preuailing is by word to wit by deceiuablenes of vnrighteousnes He is indeede an enemy to Christ and to his church how beit not open but secret not shewing
brake they say the meaning is hee did not breake but seemed so to do Touching the next word This the pronoune demonstratiue they say sometimes pointeth out the bread as Bonauenture deliuereth sometimes they say it demonstrates not the bread but indiuidum vagum that is neither bread nor any certaine determined thing else but a thing left at randome and at large in generality but what thing particularly they cannot tell Sometimes they say it demonstrates nothing as Iosephus Angles and Durand misseth not much of that marke when he saith that by This nothing is signified Other say it demonstrateth the body so they make christ to speake foolishly This body is my body and besides by this interpretation it shold be his body before the words of cōsecration Bellarmine as he confesseth the papists his good bretheren agree not in the sense of this word so he inuenteth a new and strange exposition neuer hard off before in the Church or out of the Church in iest or in earnest among the learned or vnlearned that is hoc edulium that is this food is my body this drinke is my blood and yet what foode it was and what drinke it was when that word was vttered he dareth not to determine Thomas of Aquine leaueth it more at large with whom This is as much as Hoc contentum that is that which is contained vnder these shewes Gregorius de Valentia after his fashion saith Christ ment that which he tooke into his hands yet he holdeth he ment not bread so that by this reason without reason Christ tooke not bread into his hands Scotus vnderstandeth hoc ens that is this generall thing that hath a being but what it is when they should declare they stick fast in the mire of their owne deuises Moreouer touching the interpretation of the next word is they likewise muster an Army of many figures Sometimes they expound it this shall be as Occam Sometimes they vnderstand therby is made as Bonouenture blundereth at al aduentures But Bellarmine refelleth both these Sometimes they meane this shall be transubstantiated and changed into the substance of his body Furthermore the words following is giuen they vnderstand shal be giuen is broken they expound shal be broken do this in remembrance of me they expound sacrifice me in remembrance of me Thus they roue and wander vp and downe as men that haue lost the right way and yet will be going rather then stand still Wherefore by these collections we see that these words which stand in construction and order together he tooke blessed brake and gaue they expound on this maner he tooke the bread he blessed it quite and cleane away and in place therof put an other substance hee brake the shewes appearances and accidents of bread then he gaue them his body Behold in these words of christ how many shapes formes figures nay falsehoods they haue inuented and so inuerted them And yet they say they must be taken properly without any manner of figure To conclude this point I wilgiue a short but most sweet tast of the popish diuinity taught in schooles in churches in monasteries in seminaries and in al their meetings by their schoolemen canonists doctors preachers and Byshops When the Euange lists report that christ hauing taken bread brake it blessed and gaue it saying This is my body giuen for you do this in remembrance of me the meaning of Christ according to their interpretation must bee this Christ after his last supper tooke bread into his handes but blessed it to nothing hee brake onely certaine shexes of bread and gaue them his naturall body saying vnto them This which I haue in my handes whether it be bread or not you cannot tel surely foode it is but be it what it may be it is transubstantiated and turned into my body and therefore take it and offer it vp an vnbloody sacrifice for quick and dead and so sacrifice me in remembrance of me Neuer were there such fond and fantasticall figures heard off in the Church of God neuer was such vanity inuented neuer was there so great confusion of tongues at the building of Babell How much better were it for them to forsake these fables and deuises of their owne and to say plainely euidently simply directly and distinctly with the Greeke Scoliast Zumbola tauta alla ouk aletheia that is these be tokens but not the truth it selfe And with Tertullian This is my body that is this is a figure of my body The like wee finde in Chrysostome in many places speaking as cleerely as when the Sun shineth at noone dayes The bread before it be sanctified is called by vs bread but after that it is sanctified by the grace of God it is thought worthy to be called by the name of the body of our Lord notwithstanding that the nature of bread doe still abide in it And in an other place he saith If it be dangerous to conuert sanctified vessels to priuate vses there not being in them the very body of Christ but the mystery of his body c. These things haue so clere euidence of truth taught in those times that Bellarmine hath no way to answere but to inuent this shift that a certaine Disciple of Berengarius did insert and interlace it But who it was or when it was or how it was disclosed and detected he cannot tell and therfore it may iustly be denyed seeing ofhim it cannot be confirmed Besides this were an easie way to answere all allegations and authorities to say they are corrupted by heretikes if such counterfeit coine might go for good payment Thus far of this matter Now if so great variety and dissention bee among them in this one controuersie of the sacrament of the supper to which we might adde infinite moe what an huge heape of differences should wee finde among them if wee should run ouer al the controuersies lying between vs. Let them therefore neuer obiect against vs our diuisions or tell vs of the motes they espy in vs let them rather reconcile themselues one to another and pul out the beames out of their owne eies or else for shame hold their peace doubtles among vs they shal neuer finde greater doubts and differences then haue been among the children and churches of God Now for our further direction touching this point ofdissentionsin the church lately largely debated by this enimy as the cheef obiect and subiect of his Warn-word and dilated through many chap. as welbecame a man of his leisure and learning I wil insist a while vpon this point wherin obserue with me these 4. things First that vnity is oftentimes out of the Church Secondly that dissention is sometimes in the Church Thirdly that the Church of Rome hath been and is at this present ful of contentions Lastly that this discourse of diuisions in our church may bee taken vp of the Turkes and vsed against christ
falsely named sacraments Touching baptisme in the second booke how many waies the word is taken what baptism is who haue authority to baptize who haue right and interest to be baptized wherefore it is not repeated that it commeth in place of circumcision how it a greeth with circumcision and 〈◊〉 it differeth from it whether there be an absolute necessity of baptisme whether the baptisin of Iohn be one and the same with the baptisme of Christ what sins are put away in baptisme what are the true partes and right vses therof what is the duty of the minister in the administration and of the people in the celebration of it and what foolish ceremonies the church of Rome vseth of which trumpery the sacrament is to be purged that the simplicity of the institution may be retained Touching the Lords Supper by which God witnesseth that his couenant is most certaine toward vs the 3. booke intimateth what it is why there is a dubble sign in the suppet and one onely in baptisine by what names it is called in the scripture what is the duty of such as come to the Lords table and what are the parts and vses of it Againe the words of Christs institution are truely and plainely expounded and the right maner of preparing our selus to this heauenly banket is propounded This truth is wholy depraued and the church vtterly depriued of the comfortable vse of this Sacrament vnder Antichrist where the corruptions 〈◊〉 all mean and measure and where it is not only peruerted but quite abrogated and abolished For they haue turned the Supper into a sacrifice they haue poisoned the church with the error of the reall presence with the monster of transubstantiation with robbing the people of the cuppe with administring it in a strange tongue with the magicall inchantment of consecration with working miracles to feede Rats and Mise with disanulling a right vse of the Communion by their priuate Masses with establishing a sacrament without eating and drinking with the corrupt custome of carrying about in processions a cake to bee worshipped and adored as God mounting it on Horsebaeke and carrying it before the Pope with Lanterns and torches in 〈◊〉 as the Persians carryed their god before the King of Persia. And as the church of Rome hath bin sundry waies detected of many superstitions and much silthinesse of Idolatry by appointing Images to be had in Churches for the instructions or rather destruction of the people which are teachers of lies and vanity and by commaunding Saintes Angels relickes and consecrated things to be worshipped so is this false church deepely defiled with the sinke and sinne of Idolatry in adoring and falling downe before their breaden God prostrating and prostituting themselues before a piece a bread Behold heer the God of the papists And if we should yeeld vnto them their carnall presence and their miraculous transubstantiation which is a monster of many heads yet can they neuer assure and secure themselues from committing grosse palpable Idolatry 1. because al their consecratiō standeth vppon the intention of the Ptiest which they cannot thoroughly vnderstand for Who can know the heart of man saue the spirit of man which is within him as the Apostle teacheth Besides Innocentius holdeth that it ceaseth to be a sacrament so soon as any mouse bird beast or vermin toucheth it It his rule of their holy father the pope holde as a firme foundation sound conclusion I wold know how they cā certainly know whether any of them haue touched it especially considering their doctrin of reseruation and keeping it in vessels of the church many daies 3. sundry cases ordinarily concur wherin the priest according to their own canons and rules do not consecrate at al which things notwith stāding are not within the knoledg of the people andtherfore how shal they assure their faith of consecration and warant their consciences against Idolatry as for example if he forget to mingle water with wine if there be more water then wine if the bread be made of any other then wheat flour if the wine be sharp and soure if of 7. loaus mo or lesse he did think but of 6. if he haue omitted but one word of consecration al these being beyond the compas of the peoples knoledg must needs be 〈◊〉 to the conscience and leaue mē in dout of comitting Idolatry Lastly many of thē hold that priests defiled with adultery simony and such like crims cānot as they speak make the body of christ wherunto Peter Lumb and the canons incline which say Siquis episcopus perpecuniam ordinauer it c. If any Byshop shall ordain a priest for mony he shal be degraded and the priest so ordaind shal be no better then a lay-man for whosoeuer buy or sel orders can be no priests how then shal they that are not themselus in the body of christ be able to deliuer or receiue the body of christ Out of these canons I obserue three things First such as ly in mortal sin canot consecrate 2. such as buy or sel orders are no priests Lastly mark the miserable estate of the Roman laity who canot assure themselus they haue any baptisme any Eucharist any penance any matrimony any absolution any sa any priests seeing that as it is certain thousands of them ly in deadly sin buy and sel orders and wer appointed by Symoniacal bishops so the people must alwaies be vncertaine how they obtaind their office of priesthood whether it were rightly obtained or vnlawfully purchased Wherfore Tho. Salisburiensis vpon these vncertainties giueth this friendly counsel to worship vpon condition that euerie dutie and things required to the astion be wel and truly done Seeing then by 〈◊〉 owne doctrine deliuered by their own doctors the force of consecration hangeth vpon a slender thred of the priests intention seeing a beast touching the host the body of christ departeth seeing sundry cases fall out about the matter of the bread about the mingling of the cup about the ouerplus of water about the omitting of a word and such like not known at 〈◊〉 of the people lastly seeing a priest simoniacaly ordaind is no priest It followeth by these propound principles of their popish diuinity defended by their owne prophets that papists in their adoration and worshipping of the sacrament may be Idolaters and cannot secure themselues from committing Idolatry For whatsoeuer is not of faith is sin as that apo teacheth But they cannot directly know whether the priest intended consecration and hath performd his rules directions requisite in consecration or whether a mouse hath touched the host or whether the priest were ordaind for mony and therfore for any thing they can assure themselus to the contrary the substance of the bread stil remaineth and consequently they fal down to a piece of bread and commit detestable Idolatry in the grossest kind whereof the Gentiles wold be ashamd O
circumcision baptisme agree f Wherein circumcision baptisme differ g How women were after a sort h 1 cor xi 8 i Luk 13 11 k Gen. 34 14 15. 16 l Math. 〈◊〉 20 m The practise of the apostles n act 16 13 33 1 cor 1. 14 16 act 18 8 2. 37 38 39 Obiect answ o Mar. 10. 13 14 15 Obiect Ansvver p Luk. 2 12 16 ch 1 44 q Luk. 18. 〈◊〉 r Orig. lib 5 comment ad Rom. Hieron in fine lib. 3 contra Pelag. August de bap 〈◊〉 cap 20 libri de origine animae s children admitted to coppi-holdes by custome of the Manour amoug men t children are christs sheepe and members of his body u Gen. 17. 7 act 2 39 1 cor 7. 14. a math xix14 b Obiections of Anabaptists impugning childrens baptisme answered Obiection Answere c col 2. 11 12 d Math. 28 xix i. cor x 1 2 Obiection Answere e 1. 〈◊〉 xi 26 28 29 f Mar. 16 16. Math. 28 19 Obiect 3. g act 2. 38 Answer h 1 Thess 3. x. i Luk. xiii 3. 5 Rom x. xvii Mar xvi xvi Heb. xi 6 k Math 28 20 l act 8. 13. 20 m 1 Pet. 1. 9 n Rom 10. 〈◊〉 Obiect 4. answer o Iob. 14 4 p Psal 51 5 Rom. 5 14 19 Obiect 5. Answer r Math 3 15 s Luk. 2 21 t Mar. 1 15 u Ministri Transiluan contra Trinit in carnationem domini Vse 1. a Lindan lib. 4. panopl. Bellar. de verbo dei lib. 4 cap. 9 b 2 Tim. 3. 16 Vse 2. Vse 3. c Ioh 3 6 1 Cor. 15. 22 Rom 3 23 24 Eph 2 1 2 d August de poenit merit ●emiss l. 3. c. 18. e 1 Cor 7 14 f act 8 37 g Eph. 2 12 h Rom. 11 16 Vse 5. i Deut 7 9 Esa. 59 21 Exod. 20 6 Vse 6. k Gen. 17. 7 l Gen. 22. 8. m Heb. 13 5 6 7 Iosh 1 5 Hag 2 9 n Heb 12 12 13 o Psal 37 25 34. 8 9 10 p Psal 115 13 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 32 38 39 Vse 7 q Eph. 6 4 r 1 Tim. 5. 8 s Math 5. 20 vse 8 t A laudable custome of the Church to haue godfathers and Godmothers u Esa. 8. 1 2 3 a Parents no. fit witnesles of their own childrens bap tisme b Gen. 21 3 Luk. 1. 59 2 21 c Reuel 12. 6 d Luk. 1 xv 41 e 1 cor 7. xiiii f Ioh 11 52 Reuel 20 12 g Pro. 3 9 Lam. 3 27 Psal. 119 9 Eccl. 12 1 a Math. 28. 19 20. b Foure inward parts of baptisme c Math 3 xi d The agreement betweene the outward and inward parts e The first in vvard part of baptisme is God the Father f Gal. 3. 27. Vse 1. Vse 2. Vse 3. a The second inward part of baptisme is the holy spirit b Math 3 11 16 Vse 1 vse 2 c Icot 12. 4 5 8. 9 x xi Reuel 1 4 d Mat 28 xix vse 3. vse 4. e 1 Iohn v 7 f Rom 5 3 4 g The sacraments profit not without the spirit a The third inward part of baptisme is Christ Iesus b Heb. 10 4 c Act 2. 38 10 48 19 5 d 1 Pet. 3. 21. Vse 1. e act 8. 22 f 1 Ioh. 1 7 Vse 2 vse 3. g Esa 29 11 12. h 1 Cor. 1. 23 24. i Gen 17 10 k 2 king 5 11 12 14 l Iosh. 6 20 m Ioh. 9 6 n 1 Cor. 3. 18 19 o Gen. 2 x a The soule clensed is the last inward part of baptisme b Tie 3 5 Eph. 2. 26 〈◊〉 Vse 1. c Rom. 5 19 7 23 24 d Ioh. 3 5 6. 7 Vse 2. e Baptisme is a christian mans ensigne to fight vnder it the battels of the lord a Three vses of baptisme b Rom. 6 3 4 5 6 c The first vse of bapt i. to shew our ingrafting in to Christ. d 1 cor 12 13 Cal. 3 27 e Rom. 8 XV f Iohn 6 44 g 〈◊〉 36 26 27 h Ioh. XV. 5. 6 i We are ioyned to Christ in spititual mariage k Ioh. 6 53 l 1 Ioh. 2 19 Rom 8 33 34. 35 37 38 39 m Ezek. 16. 4 5. 6 n Gen 2 21 o Iohn 14 〈◊〉 p Mark 16. 16 a The 2 vse of baptism 〈◊〉 to assure forgiuenes of sinne b Act. 2. 38 〈◊〉 22 16 c Baptisme doth not of it selfe conferre grace c Math 28. 19 d Concil Trid. sess 5 e Bellar lib. 1. de bapt cap. 13 f Ioh. 1 29 Psal. 32. 1. 2 g 1 Ioh. 1 8 a The thirde vse of baptisme is to teach vs our dying to sin and rising to newnesse of life b Luk 3 3 c 1 pet 3. 20 21 d Psal. 51. 7 Rom. 5 12 e Deut. 10 16 30. 6 f Ier 4 4 g Ier 7. 8 h Rom. 2 28 29 i We must all be baptized in hart k Esa 2. 4 57 〈◊〉 l 1 Eccles. 5 3 a The Sacrament of the body and blood of christ called by diuerse names b 1 cor 10 16 c 1 cor xi 20. d Act. 2. 42 20. 7 e 1 cor 10 21 f 1 cor 11 25 Math 26 26 g Reasons rendred of the former names h 1 cor 10 17 i Exod. 12 8 k Heb. 9 15 l The vses of calling this sacrament the communion vse 1 m 1 cor 6. 17 1 Ioh. 3 24 n Ioh. 1 12 Vse 2 o 1 cor xi 33 vse 3. p 1 cor xi 18 20 q Rom xv 5 6 r The vses of calling this Sacrament the 〈◊〉 vse 1 s 1 cor 1. 13 15 vse 2. vse 3. t Ioh. 6. 27 4 Rhem. Test. annot in 1 cor xi a Bellar. dc 〈◊〉 lib. 2 cap. 10 b Iude Verse 21. 〈◊〉 2 Pet. 2. 13 c Cypri in sacram de caen 4. domin d 〈◊〉 Ioh Gagn. in 1 cor 11 Hosij confess cathol tom 2 cap. 30 〈◊〉 1. cap 40 e The vses of calling this sacrament the breaking of bread f 1 cor xi 24 Vse 1 g Ioh. xix 36 vse 2. h act 2. 42. 207 i Cor. 10. 16 k The vses of calling this Sacrament the Table of the Lord l Clem. alex lib. 7. 〈◊〉 Origen lib. contra celsum arnob lib. 2 4 Vse 2 m 1 cor 9 13 m Gal. 4. 9 vse 3. o Heb 1. 4. 13 p The vses of calling this Sacrament the testament or will of christ Vse I. q Leuit. 18 5 Math 19 17 Gal. 3 12 Deut. 27. 20 r Iohn 3 16 Vse 2 s Gal. 3 15 t concil cabilon can 33 Vse 3 u Rom. 8. 17 1 Pet 1. xii 5. 1 a Math. 8. 20 26 b 〈◊〉 18. 36 a What the Lords supper is b Mat. 26. 26 27 1 Cot 10 16 17. 1 cor 11 24 25 c Exod 12 48 d Luke 22. 19 20 Marke 14. 24 Vse 1. e 1 Cor. x 3 4 f Iohn 6 27 g Mat. 26 26 Vse 2 vse 30 h Ioh 6 55 56 53 57 i Chap 10 Vse 4. k 1
THE BADGES OF CHRISTIANITY OR A Treatise of the Sacraments fully declared out of the word of God Wherein the truth it selfe is proued the doctrine of the reformed Churches maintained and the errors of the church of Rome are euidently conuinced by pervsing wherof the discreet Reader may easily perceiue the weake and vnstable grounds of the Roman religion and the iust causes of our lawfull separation Diuided into three BOOKES 1. Of the Sacraments in generall 2. Of Baptisme 3 Of the Lords Supper shewing the intention of this present worke opening the differences among vs about the question of the Supper discouering the Idolatry and diuisions of the Popish Cleargy and vnmasking the insolent bragging of the late Warn-word touching the supposed and pretended vnity thereof By WILLIAM ATTERSOLL Minister of the Word of God 1. Cor. 12 13. For by one spirit we are all baptized into one body whether we be Iewes or Graecians whether bond or free and haue bin al made to drinke into one spirit August tract 80 in Iohan. 13. Accedat Verbum ad elementum et fit sacramentum that is Ioine the word of Christs institution with the outward sign and thereof is made a sacrament Printed by W. Iaggard dwelling in Barbican 1606. To the right Worshipfull Sir Iohn Shurley Knight one of his Maiesties Iustices of the Peace in the County of Sussex Grace and peace in Iesus Christ. RIght woorshipfull it is not vnknowne that fundry means haue from time to time been offered and vsed for the reclaiming and recouering of such as dangerously follow the spirit of errour and dayly reuoult to the Romish religion which hath beene aduanced by tyrany defended by lyes and is now sought to be restored againe by trecheries and rebellions But notwithstanding the many meanes which heretofore haue beene wisely practised we see of late the aduersaries of the grace of god as a pestilent brood of vipers mightily to increase and multiply sending abroad swarmes of their Iesuites and Seminary Priestes not onely to infect the people of the land with the leauen of false doctrine and to sow their darnel in the lords field but to seduce them from their alleageance and to stir vp sedition for the lessening of whose number and suppressing of their power nothing is more necessary then to establish a godly and learned ministery in euery congregation And howsoeuer wholsome lawes haue beene enacted penalties increased conferences with them vsed disputations offered their books answered and sundry other wayes taken by magistrates and ministers yet we shall neuer attaine the ende of our desired hopes vntill euery church haue a learned and painefull Pastor to be resident and remaining among them For albeit Antichrist in this noble kingdome hath long since receiued a notable foyle and fall and the purple whore beene dismounted from her vsurped dignity yet this monster hauing taken this deadly wound will be alwayes looking backe and seeking to sette his footing againe in this realme if good corne be pulled vp and the weeds suffered to growe or if the strongest pillars bearing vp the house be remooued and rotten postes set to vnder prop it and vnlesse he be quelled and conquered by the preaching publishing of the gospell of Christ. Therefore Christ our Sauiour hauing sent out the 70. disciples into euery citty and place whether hee himselfe shoulde come to prepare the hearts of the people after their return said vnto them I saw Satan like lightning fall down from heauen And the Apostle declareth that when the lord Iesus led captiuity captiue he gaue gifts to men and ordained pastors and teachers for the gathering together of the Saintes for the woorke of the ministery and for the edification of the body of Christ. And vntill this holy order and ordinance of Christ which is the power of god to saluation vnto all that beleeue be set vp we can conceiue no hope how the ignorant shoulde be instructed the seduced be regained out of the hands of such deceitfull woorkmen as vnder a colour of conuersion of the land doe seek the vtter subuersion of the church and common wealth Hence it is that the Iesuits who haue gotten the dominion ouer the rest of that generation spare no labour refuse no paines let passe no practise by word or writing to effect their purposes In regard of whose vnweariable diligence it cannot be denied but many of vs haue been too slack slothfull in resisting the approach of these violent intruders For whiles we preach the word of reconciliation euen Christ crucified build vp our people in the doctrin which is according to godlines we doe not bende our forces as we ought to surprise and suppresse the common aduersary Whiles wee sowe the lordes fielde with good corne we suffer the enuious man to scatter his tares accounting it sufficient to teach the trueth to the flock dedending vpon vs and esteeming it better seruice to god to saue one soule then to ouerthrow and destroy many aduersaries Not much vnlike to Scipio African the Romane captain who as Plutarke witnesseth was oftentimes wont to say that he had rather saue the life of one Romane citizen then to kill and conquer a thousand enimies But it is the duty of a good builder not onely to reare vp the worke in hand but to remoue the rubbadge and reliques that hinder the building It is the duty of a good husbandman not onely to sowe his field with good seede but to plucke vp the weedes and gtub vp the thornes that choake the corne It is the duty of a good watchman not onely to see to them in the citty but to descry and discouer the enimy It is the duty of a painfull shepheard not only to feed the sheep but to follow and finde out the foote steps of the wolfe Here vpon the Apostle Paul exhorteth the elders of Ephesus to take heed to themselues and to all the flocke whereof the holy ghost had made them ouerseers to feede the church of god which he hath purchased with his owne bloude because after his departure grieuous woolues shoulde enter in not sparing the flock but speaking peruerse things to draw desciples after them If then the enimies of god and his people be vigilant and watchfull to seduce the simple and to subuert religion how carefull and cheerefull ought we to be not onely to teach the people committed to our charge but to resist with hād and hearte all those that vndermine the good estate of the church among vs. Like vnto the people of god after the returne from captiuity who did build the wal with one hand and held their swordes and weapons in the other For this cause I haue put in writing this treatise following containing the doctrine of the Sacraments being the ordinances of god and the badges of christians whereby all discreet and indifferent men may perceiue the trueth of them cleerly opened out of the woord of
William Attersoll Ad Authorem in libellum suum de Sacramentis G. S. carmen Encomiasticum SItua scripta recepta domiretinebis amice Publica nec facies dic mthi qualis er is Imprimit illa pius quae supprimit impius omni Ille bonum patriae respicit iste suum Ecce bonique malique tibi datur optio sponte Impius anne velis vel velis esse pius Sis bonus O faelixque tuis fac publica multis Sacramenta Deus iussit et ipse doces Nonne doces iussisse Deum dare bina duobus Sexibus ad caenam lotus vt omnis eat Carnifices merito condemn as sacrificantes Quod christum comedunt sine plebe bibunt Ergo age facta 〈◊〉 ne sint contraria dict is Vt cum signa probes publica scripta neges Scriptum de sanct is fieret commune sigillis Conuenit vt cunctis fons sacer atque cibus Da triadi tua scripta Deo tria Publica sunto Publica priuatis sunt meliora bonis Vale. Others in English THough feare of shame false-harted men do curbe with bit of sinnes From pressing to the Printers presse where fame or shame begins Yet let not vndeserued shame an harmelesse Writer fright From hardest stamp that Man can make to bring the truth to light The Sonne of God which once on earth for mans saluation dyed Imprinted had with Iron printes his hands his feete his side Looke how he looking on the Crowne of glorie from the skies Endur'd the Crosse despised the shame with constant setled eies So looke to looke for io yes to come for present paines and spites If his example followed be on earth by earthly wightes Both bloody Iewes and Gentels to this bloody booke of life Did looke vpon with scornefull lookes as people full of strife But glad was Thomas when he had this holy booke in hand And saw and felt the print thereof though red and rough as sand There might he reade his name in print when opened was the booke Therefore he cryed My Lord my God when he on it did looke Did not the booke which Moses wrote and sprinkled all with blood Betoken this most worthy booke containing all our good Did not the prophet meane this booke when in our Maisters name He spake of grauing in his hands the people of the same If this be thus If any then A commentary write Of all this Booke from point to point as truth doth it indite Who will backbite but dogged Iewes The writer with their chaps Who but the Gentiles woluish brood will giue him any snaps If any do no more ado but call him by his name A Dog a Wolfe or some such be ast as he deserueth blame Wherefore my Friend which hast describd this Book of life and truth With treatise on the sacraments Fit for both age and youth Direct it to the Trinity as three and yet but one Thus much thou maist with reuerence though he compare with none Past all Compar his nature is his worke is and his worde Yet doth his scripture with himselfe comparison affoord The Sacraments in generall Do like wise giue vs light The euerlasting light to see Deuoide of any night But specially the special two of water and of blood The gospels sacramental twinnes and our celestial food As for the fiue which many make and match with these amisse They want some parts substantial as wel declared is He that with euen hand and hart wil vndertake the view Of seuen sacraments shal find that onely two are true These three books are like three topt ship ful fraught with truth great store The Catechisme like boat doth serue to bring the load to shore Let searcher search thy Marchandize let Printer print and sel Let al men make the best of al and so in CHRIST Farewell W. S. Ad Lectorem libri G Atters de Sacramentis T. H. carmen protrepticum ATRI dum tenebras praebent sine lumine SOLES AT-TER-SOL radios sparsit vbique suos Nec mirum 〈◊〉 caelest is luminis author Misit in atratum lumina sacra solum Alba manet sterilis plerunque languidatellus Dum pingue est atrum frugiferumque solum Hortulus est liber hic qui dulces fragrat odores Sacra dei multa fertilitate ferens Ergo leg as bone lector et hic pastor que fidelis Quisque dei sacro gramine pascat oues Flores ac fructus fluuios herbasque salubres Quicquid et expect as hie paradisus hahet Sacramenta precor modo sacra mente feruntor Dilige scriptorem perlege scripta vale A Sonnet by the Same containing the subiect of the booke following WHat needs an Iuy bush where wine is good To paint this booke with praise were vainereci Come hungry faithful soules without inuiting ting Vnto a supper of celestiall foode Looke looke what costly cheere is here addressed To feede 〈◊〉 soule What 's that my sauiour slaine O dismall 〈◊〉 O dolefull bitter paine Be not dismaid 〈◊〉 onely are we blessed The painfull passion and the bitter griefe Which Christ sustaind who all the paine indured Is sweet to vs because we sinde reliefe In that pure bloud which hath our lines secured Who 's ableto expresse that soueraigne good Got by the purple tincture of his blood O sucke apace poore soule that cordiall veine By which Christis infusd into thy spirit Cling cling to him by faith no popish merit Can to thy soule this precious putchase gaine Then as the outward signes of bread and wine Ordain'd by Christ as signes his loue to seale Thy body cheeres So Christ thy soule shall heale And hoise it vp at length to blisse deuine Lo heer 's the subiect of this golden booke Full fraught with matter method doctrine vses All well apply'd which shewes what paines he tooke In the vnmasking of the Popes abuses Forward sweet friend such feasts make many more That men may eate and surfet in thy store T. Harison A generall Table of the Contents of these three bookes In these 3. Bookes the doctrine of the Sacramentes is handled In Generall what a sacrament is Wherin consider two points 〈◊〉 Partes Set downe Outward Inwarde Applied Vses In particular concerning Babtisme Booke 2 the Lords Supper Booke 3. A Table of the principall points contained in the first Booke The first Booke teacheth That God in all ages hath giuen Sacraments to his church chap. 1 What a sacrament is 1 a visible sign of an inuisible spirituall gra a herein consider 2 things The nature of thē The parts are twoefold ch 3 Outward parts are foure Minist chap. 4 he is to so sanctifie the outward 〈◊〉 Deliuer thē to the receiuers Worde chap. 5 〈◊〉 i 〈◊〉 to warrant thē A promise 〈◊〉 to them Signe or outward element chap 6. receiuer c. 7 who must 〈◊〉 the outward signe apply the same Inwarde parts are foure God the father c 9 who Offereth christ to al Giueth christ to the beleeuer The spirit chap.
10 hee sealeth vp the promise maketh it eff 〈◊〉 Christ Iesus chap. 1 who is the truth and 〈◊〉 of all sacraments the faithful receiuer c. xii 〈◊〉 christ apylieth him to himselfe the Vses see this letterb. the vses of a sacrament are three to strengthen and confirme faith chap. 13 〈◊〉 God is true in his promises Many of the faithfull first beleeued before they didde partake the sacraments to be a seale of the 〈◊〉 chap. 14 these are the articles of agreement between God who promiseth Forgiuenesse of sinnes Adoption of son nes Possession of Heauen Man 〈◊〉 hoe promiseth to beleeue the promises to loue his Brethren Enimies to performe Obedsence to be badges of our christian profession chap. 15 the number of them See the letter a that Baptisme and the Lords supper are the two onely sacramentes of the New testament chap. 16 that 〈◊〉 is no sacrament chap 17 that popish pennance is no sacrament chap. 18 that Matrimony is no sacrament chap 19 that Orders are no sacrament chap 20 that extreame unction is no sacrament chap 21 A Table of the contents of the Second Booke Baptism is the first sacramēt wherin by outward washing of the bodie once in the name of the father the son and of the holy ghost the inward cleansing of the soule is represented chap. 1 In Baptisme consider the partes are twofold chap. 3 Outwarde partes Minister chap. 3 whose dutie it is to Sanctifie the water Wash the party Word of institution Baptise in the name of the father of the sonne and of the holy ghost chapt 4 Element of water chap 5 Receiuers are all such as are in the couenant chap. 6. Men and women in yeares that are in the faith Infantes of them chap 7 Inward partes God the father chap 8. who Offereth the bloud of his sonne Giueth Christ to the beleeuers Holy spirit chap 9 who perfourmeth that which is promised in the word Christ Iesus chap 10 ratifieng our Regeneration Remission of sinnes Soule clensed represented by the body washed cha 11 The vses of baptisme are these 3 To shew our planting and ingrafting into the body of christ cha 12 to assure vs of the remission of sinnes cha 13 Original Actual to teach to die to sinne and liue to righteousnesse cha 14. A Table of the principall points contained in the last Booke The Lordes supper called by 〈◊〉 names ch 1 is the second sacrament wherein by visible receiuing of bread and wine is represented 〈◊〉 spiritual communion 〈◊〉 the 〈◊〉 and 〈◊〉 of 〈◊〉 ch 2 In this sacra obserue the work it selfe where in obserue the parts Outward Minist chap. 3 whose duty is To take the bread and mine into his hands to blesse and 〈◊〉 the words of institution to breake the bread and poure out then ine to distribute the bread and Wine The word of institution and promise contained therein chap. 4 The outward signes chap. 5 which are Bread Wine The cōmunicāts chap 6. whose actions are to take the bread and cupinto their handes to eate the bread drink the wine Inwarde God the father ch 8 who offereth christ to al commers Giueth christ for the redemtion of the fat Spirit who assureth vs of the truth of Gods promises ch 9 the body and bloud of christ prepared to be the liuely food of our soules ch x the faithfull receiuer chap. 1 〈◊〉 hose duties are to apprehend receiue christ his benefits to appropriate and apply him to the soule the Vses see this letter c to shew forth with thankesgiuing the sufferings of christ chap 12 to teach our communion and growth in christ chap. 13 to declare our communion and growth with our brethren chap. 14 Preparation to the worke See the letter d The necessitie in respect of Gods presence with whom we haue to do and to deale Our owne profit being rightlie prepared Our owne practise in preparing and taking our ordinarie meates The sacrament it selfe defiled by vnreuerent receiuing the punishment procured by want of this care the partes the knowledg of God and our selues especially of the whole doctrine of the sacraments chap 16 Faith in Christ seeing euerie one receiueth so mnch as he beleeueth he receiueth chap. 17 Repentance from dead workes daily renewed for daily sinnes Reconciliation to our brethren chap 19. THE FIRST BOOKE of the Sacraments in generall containing the true Doctrine therof ouerthrowing the errors of the Church of Rome and deliuering the comfortable vse ofthem to all the people of GOD. CHAP. I. Of the agreement and difference betweene the word and Sacraments GOD euen from the beginning added vnto the preaching of the word his Sacramentes in the Church as the Scripture teacheth outwardly representing vifiblie offering to our sight those things that inwardly hee performeth to vs as the tree oflife and the tree of the knowledge of good and euill in the Garden After mans fall when a new necessity was added in regard of mans want and weaknesse he testified his loue and ratified his Couenant by sacrifices and Ceremonies to our first Parents He gaue the Arke to Noah and his sonnes to confirm them in the promise which he made to them that they should not be drowned with the rest of the world He added to Abraham the signe of Circumcision as a seale of the 〈◊〉 of faith and to the Israelites he gaue the Passeouer Manna oblations purifications the brazen Serpent the Rock and such like spirituall tipes whereby he assured them of the promise that God for the onely sacrifice of Christ vvrought vpon the Crosse would giue to all that beleeue forgiuenesse of sinnes and euerlasting life Now the world of God may fitly be resembled to writtings and euidences and the Sacraments to seales which the Lord alone setteth to his owne letters They are as a visible Sermon preaching vnto vs most liuely the promises of God that as the vvord we hear doth edifie and instruct the minde by the outward eares so doth the Sacraments by the eyes other senses First then that we may vnderstand the doctrine and nature os the Sacraments we are to consider what the word Sacraments haue in common and how they agree one with another then what they haue peculiar and proper each to other and how they differ one from an other The agreement betweene them standeth in these points First both are ofGod and instruments which the holy ghost vseth to this end to make vs more and more one with Christ and partakers of saluation 〈◊〉 that God needeth them or that he is tyed vnto them for as he can nourish without meate and drinke so he can saue without word or Sacraments but because we neede them he vseth them when he will and as often as it pleaseth him The same which is published and promised by the word of God is signified and sealed by the Sacraments For they are not a deliuering of new promises and
body Wherefore they do more seale vp then the word not that God is more true of his promise when hee worketh by signes then when he speaketh by his word but in respect of the manner of teaching and receiuing because by his Sacraments he representeth his promises as it were painted in a Table and setteth them forth liuely as in a picture before our eies that we may not only heare but see handle touch tast and euen digest them Again the promise of the Gospel is more effectually declared and sealed vp by the Sacraments then by the bare worde not for the substance and matter it selfe but for the manner of working which is heedfull perfect and more effectuall so as that which we perceiue and receiue by many senses as hearing and seeing is more sure and certaine then that which is 〈◊〉 by hearing onely Hitherto of the agreements and differences betweene the word sacraments and we haue shewed that so soon as god gaue his word immediately he seconded the same with his Sacraments The vses which wee are to make heereof are these First seeing God contenteth not himselfe with the worde onely but addeth the Sacraments in all Ages and times of the Church which proceedeth partly through his owne goodnesse and partly from mans weakenesse we ought to be so farre from d●spising the Sacramentes that contrary-wise vve must confesse the benifit vse and worthynesse of them can neuer be sufficiently magnified and commended nor they with sufficient reuerence be receiued We are dull to conceiue his promises and slovv to remember them we are full of doubting and vnbeleefe we are like to Thomas one of the disciples we will not beleeue them vntill in some sort vve see them and in some measure feele them in our hearts Wherefore God hath ordained these misteries and holy actions to keepe in continuall memory his great benifits bestovved vpon man to seale vp his promises and as it were to offer vnto our sight those things which inwardly he performeth to vs and therby by strengtheneth and increaseth our faith through the working of his spirit in our soules Seing then the word is not sufficient but the Sacraments were added for further assurance we must in this behalfe consider the great goodnesse of God toward vs who doth not onely giue vs faith by his word as by his sauing instrument but hath also added to his word Sacraments or seales of his promise and grace that by the lawfull vse of them he might vphold and strengthen our faith through his blessed spirit For in asmuch as the Lord not only sent the blessed seede for the redemption of mankind for the remission of our sinnes and for the brusing of the Serpents head but ordained for vs Sacramentes to be pledges of his promises testimonies of his faithfulnesse and remedies of our distrust wee must confesse and thankfullye acknowledge the bottomlesse depth of gods endlesse mercy toward vs who vouchsafeth to be our God to be reconciled to vs being vile and miserable sinners to make a league and couenant with dust and ashes and delyuers his onely sonne to suffer the shamefull death of the Crosse for vs. And withall we must labour more and more to feele our own blindnesse distrust infidelity and peruerse nature we would easily forget this mercy of God vnlesse it had beene continually represented before our eies Againe seeing nothing is offered and giuen in the Sacraments which is not published in the Gospell seeing they cannot bee where there is no worde and seeing the same Christ with all his benifits is propounded in both it meeteth with a common corruption and lamentable practise among many professors that desire and craue especially in sicknesse and extremety often to come to the Lords table but esteeme little of the preaching of the word and that seeme to languish with a longing after the Sacrament but neuer mourne and lament for want of the word which is as great an errour and madnesse as if one should euer looke vpon the seale of his writings but neuer regard the conueiance of his estate Is there not one God the author of both Is there not one spirit that sealeth vp his promises by both Is Christ diuided that speaketh euidently vnto vs in both How is it then that many desire the Sacrament of the Lords supper and seeme to pine away through want therof who neuer wish or regard the preaching of the Gospell which is the foode of the soule the keye of the kingdome the immortall seede of regeneration and the high ordinance of God to saue those that beleeue And whence proceedeth it but from palpable ignorance in the matters of God and their owne saluation to be much troubled that the Sacrament is not brought vnto them and yet neuer conet to haue a word of comfort spoken to them in due season Let all such persons vnderstand that as the minister is charged from God to teach euery saboth day and to preach the word in season and out of season to deale the bread to the hungry and to gie vnto euery one in the family his portion so is it required of all the people to desire the sincere milke of the word of God that they may grow thereby which howsoeuer it be to them that perish foolishnesse yet to such as are called it is the wisedome of God and the power of God Wherefore we must not make account that there is lesse danger in neglecting the word of God then in neglecting the Sacrament of his last supper but we must take heede that while we willingly desire the one we doe not willingly despise the other For we must carefully consider that as the Sacrament is a visible word so the word is a speaking Sacrament and as God lifteth vp his voice vnto vs in the one so he reacheth out his hand vnto vs in the other We must as well heare when he calleth as receiue when he offereth Now by his word preached he calleth by his Sacraments administred he offereth his graces vnto vs and as wee must haue eares for the one so must we haue hands for the other CHAP. 2. What a Sacrament is IN euery treatise and discourse it is necessary first to know whether a thing be before we consider what it is We haue heard before that there are Sacraments and euer haue beene in the Church of God Now then let vs consider what they are that first the matter handled may be defined For in vaine we shall reason and speake of the Sacraments vnlesse we vnderstand what a Sacrament is But besore we set downe any discription of it it shall not be amisse to speake some what of the word The name in so many letters and sillables is not indeede in the scripture no more then the word Trinity catholike Consubstantiall and such like which being generally receiued are not to be reiected seing the doctrine contained vnder them agreeth with the
the signe for the thing nor the thing for the signe seeing the parts are distinguished in nature though ioyned in the person Againe albeit by gods ordinance these parts be so vnited that by taking of the signe the faithfull are made partakers of the thing signified no lesse truely then the outward signes are receiued of our bodily senses yet we must conceiue consider that these outward and inward parts remaine distinct and vnconfounded and therefore wee must take heede we take not one for another we must not ascribe to much to the outward parts and so take them for the inward which hath beene the occasion of sundry errors from time to time Some attribut too little to the outward sign and some ascribe too much both waies the Sacrament is abused and the partes are misapplied Hence sprang as a ranke weed in the Lords corne the doctrine of transubstantiation or carnall turning of the substance of bread into the body whereby the signe is swallowed vp and the outward substance with them quite abolished for their fained Christ hath consumed the outward signe as the rich deuoureth and eateth the poore Thus the signe is consumed to little regarded Others on the other side cleaue to much too the outward signe and rest in the externall worke placing holinesse and remission of sinnes in the deed done and thus the thing signified is little regarded and wholly abolished as the euill fauored and lean-fleshed kine did eat vp the fat and wel-fauored this was 〈◊〉 dreame and the other is mans deuise For these men giue all to the outward receiuing placing holynesse and remission of sinnes therein and thinking themselues sure and secure when the bread and wine is taken at the Lords table Thus all hypocrites libertines and carnall Gospellers do for all the religion deuotion and godlinesse of these idle and ignorant professors standeth in outward resorting to the Church and in an outward taking of the communion of the body and blood of Christ which is to make an Idol of the signe and to flatter themselues in their euils to their own destruction For albeit a man haue been baptized and haue receiued the Lords supper yet if he liue wickedly and walke after his owne lusts the Sacramentes shall auaile and aduantage him nothing at all but further his condemnation Lastly hath the Sacrament some parts outward and some inward some seene and some not seene with bodily eies Then it giueth occasion both to parents to teach their children the meaning of these misteries and to declare vnto them the ordinances of God as likewise to children and the younger sort to aske and inquire of their parents to heare and learne of them the doctrine of the Sacraments thereby to know the mercifull promises that God hath made to his people This appeareth directly where the the fathers are forewarned ro teach their childrē the hidden mistery of the Passeouer When your children aske you what seruice is this ye keepe then ye shal say It is the sacrifice of the Lords passeouer which passed ouer the houses of the children of Israell in Egypt when he smote the Egyptians and preserued our houses So likewise Ch. 13. 14. speaking of separating sanctifiing the firste borne for the seruice of God he chargeth parents to whet this doctrine on their children and to instruct them how God with a mighty hand and outstretched arme brought them out of Egypt out of the house of bondage Againe we see when the Lord had parted the waters of Iordan that the people might passe hee commaunded Ioshua to set vppe 12. stones in memoriall of the mighty and miraculous worke of God for his people against their enemies and when their children should aske them in time to come what was 〈◊〉 by those stones they should answer that the waters of Iordan were cut off before the Arke of the Couenant of the Lord. He would not onely haue themselues to profit by 〈◊〉 wonderfull workes but to retaine the remembrance of them he wold haue their posterity to know the cause and 〈◊〉 thereof and so g'orifie 〈◊〉 name for euer Heereunto we may fitly ioyne what the 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 I will open my mouth in a parable I will declare high sentences of old which we haue heard and knowne and our fathers haue told us we will not hide them from their children but to the generation to come we will shew the praises of the Lord his power also and his wonderfull workes that he hath done that the posterity might know it and the children which should be borne should stand vp and declare it to their children that they might set their hope on God and not forget the workes of God but keepe his commaundements All these things serue to this purpose to shew that it is a duty and burden laid on the shoulders of all parents to acquaint their children 〈◊〉 the works of God especially with the benefits of our redemption wrought by Christ for our saluation If they aske the question why infants are baptized and washed with water into the name of the holy Trinity we must make plaine vnto them the meaning of that mistery We must say vnto them My children this is a signe of the Couenant of Gods mercy to vs and our 〈◊〉 to God it is a mistery of our saluation and teacheth that being in our selues vncleane vnrighteous 〈◊〉 y and sinful our soules are washed by the blood of Christ euen as the water in Baptisme washeth our bodyes 〈◊〉 in the mercy of God is so much the more marueilous in our cies insomuch as the 〈◊〉 were entred into the couenant by cutting lancing and effusion of blood in circumcision Againe before they come to yeares to receiue the holy Supper of the Lord we must informe them at home and declare the institution of that Sacrament and the comfortable vses therof to them so they may afterward come to this Communion with better warrant of their worke with greater comfort to themselues with lesse danger to their souls We must teach them that as the bread is broken and the Wine poured out so the body of Christ was crucified and his blood shed for the remission of our sins and that if we beleeue in the Lord Iesus we are nourished in our souls to eternal life by the passion of Christ our Sauior as certainly as our bodies are norished with the creaturs of bred 〈◊〉 wine Notwithstanding there is a generall defect of this duty in many parents neither are children readye to enquire and learne at home neither are parentes able to answere anye thing in these matters of God way wardnesse in the one and wordlines in the other and ignoraunce in them both hath taken away all care and conscience from them touching these holy duties and heauenly misteries so that neither the one teacheth nor the other learneth neyther the child enquireth nor the father answereth CHAP. 4. Of the first outward part of
declare the couenaut of God to pray for his blessing promised vpon his owne ordinance to giue thankes for the blessed worke of our redemption to offer giue and deliuer a right the creatures so sanctified in baptisme to sprinkle with water and washe the body to be baptized and in the Lords Supper to deliuer the bread to be eaten and the wine to be drunke to the spirituall nourishment of the Church So then the minister ought not to refuse to baptize such as are brought vnto him Shall the seruant refuse to do the worke of his maister Or if the Lord keeper of the kings broad seale should proudly and presumpteously disdame to set the seale to the Princes letters patents were he not well worthy to be displaced and remoued So if the minister through enuy or hatred or any other sinister affection shall refuse to put the seale to the Lords Couenant and hinder little children from comming to Christ he deserueth iustly to be displaced and to beare office no longer in the citty of God but to be remoued for his contempt as Salomon put downe Abiathar Secondly is it a necessary point of the Sacrament that it be ministred by a minister Then it condemneth 〈◊〉 those that put these seales into a wrong hand and all 〈◊〉 persons that violently rush vpon this calling and take vp on them to meddle with the administration of the Sacraments with vnwashen hands seeing the dispensation of the word and Sacraments is so linked annexed and ioyned together by God that a deniall of licence to do the one is a deniall to do the other and contrary wise the license to one is license to the other Christ neuer gaue to priuate persons any such commaundement he neuer committed to them any such ossice hee neuer commended to their care these holy actions he neuer called them to this honor he neuer laid vpon them this charge and therefore they haue no parte nor fellowship in this businesse If notwithstanding these restrainings of authority from them they wil runne and rush forward where they should hang backward their sinne lieth at the doore their punishment hastneth and their iudgement sleepeth not Lastly if the minister be an outward part of the Sacrament we must beware and take heed we ascribe not to the minister that which is proper to Christ and so rob him of the honour due vnto his name The minister may offer the signe he cannot bestow the thing signified he may baptize the body he cannot clense the soule he may deliuer the bread and wine he cannot giue the body and blood of Christ Iohn may wash with water he cannot giue the spirit Man indeede pronounceth the word but God sealeth vp his grace in the heart man sprinkleth the body with water but God maketh cleane the soule by the blood of Christ man may take away the filth of the flesh but Christ must purge the conscience from dead workes who is that blessed lambe of God that taketh away the sinnes of the world For as Paule planteth and Apollos watereth but God 〈◊〉 the increase so the minister offereth the element and outward signe but God giueth the heauenly grace It belongeth to the minister to handle the external part it belongeth as a peculiar dignity to Christ to bestow grace to giue saith regeneration and forgiuenesse of sinnes and to baptize with the Holy-ghost This truth Iohn 〈◊〉 I baptize with water but one commeth after me who is mightier then I he shall baptize you with the Holy-ghost Where we see he maketh a flat opposition betweene himselfe and Christ betweene his baptisme and the baptisme of Christ. As on the one side we must take heede of the contempt of him that teacheth and ministreth the Sacramentes because the contempt of the word and Sacraments doth necessarily follow the contempt of his person so we must beware we attribute or giue not to him more then his right least the power of the word and force of the Sacramentes be attributed to his person wherby men spoile themselues of the fruite of them both This was it wherein the Corinthians offended when they said I am Pauls I am Apollos I am Cephas I am Christs Wherefore to keepe a golden meane between too much and too little we must do as if a prince should send vs some present by one of the meanest messengers of his house we would receiue him fauorably and entertaine him honorably for the gifts sake which he bringeth vnto vs but the guift it selfe we would receiue for the kings sake from whom it was sent So it becommeth euery one of vs to do God hath committed to his messengers and ministers the word of reconciliation we must haue them in singular loue for their workes sake that labour among vs but the word and Sacramentes we must receiue for the Lords sake from whom they come Thus much of the first outward part to wit theminister Chap. 5. Of the second outward part of a sacrament THe second outward part of a Sacrament is the word necessarily required to the substance of a Sacrament for the word is added and ioyned to the element and there is made a Sacrament This sacramentall word is the word of institution which God in each Sacrament hath after a speciall manner set downe consisting partly of a commaundement by which Christ appointeth the administration of Sacramēts and partly of a promise annexed whereby God ordaineth that the outward elements shal be instruments and seales of his graces As for example when Christ saith Go teach al nations baptize them there is a commaundement to warrant the vse and practise of Baptisme the promise likewise is in the next words Into the name of the father and of the sonne and of the holy-ghost So touching the other Sacrament of his supper when he saith Take ye eate ye drinke ye do this in remembrance of me Ioe there is the commaundement cōmaunding the continual vse therof vntil the second comming of christ the promise is this is my body which is giuē for you this is my blood of the new Testament shed for you for many for remission of sins Whatsoeuer signs of holy things god gaue to strengthen the faith of his childrē we may see and descern that god alwaies added the worde to the seale the voice to the signe and doctrine to the sight so that when the signe was seene the word was heard When one of the Seraphims beating an hot coale in his hand which he had taken from the alter touched the mouth of the prophet he said Lo this hath touched thy lips and thine iniquity shall be taken away and thy sinnes shall be purged Now we know a coale hath not power and force to take away sinne but the word vttered by the Angell did assure him that he should be purged by the holy ghost which was signified by the 〈◊〉 Againe when Christ gaue to his disciples
the Holy-ghost he breathed on them and said Receiue the Holy-ghost The corporal blast and breathing was not the Holy-ghost but he added his word and promise with the outward signe to assure them that with the breathing he bestowed a blessing Thus wee see that the Sacramentes haue the word alwaies ioyned with them and without the word whereby their institution and vse is declared they are as a dead body without life as a dumbe shew without voice as an empty cloud without water and as a barren tree without fruit Let vs apply this doctrine to our selues First it teacheth that they partake not the Sacraments aright that haue not the knowledge of the word that are ignorant both of the ordinance and institution of God and of the promise annexed to the institution of god of which sort there are many in the world that neuer labour to know what he hath appointed and commaunded them to do If they do as others of the church do therein they rest and seeke no further to be able to warrant their owne worke If they heare the word spoken if they see the body washed the bread broken and the wine poured out and receiue the outward signes they regatd no more they go no higher they imagine they haue done enough they neuer desire to vnderstand the meaning of the words which are necessary to be knowne comfortable to be vnderstood and profitable to be marked If a man haue goods befallen or legacies bequeathed vnto him by any wil or Testament wil he not resort to his learned counsel to be careful to vnderstand the Testament and know the meaning of the Testator Christ Iesus before his death made his wil he hath made his children heires of his promise he promiseth to them forgiuenesse of sinnes in this life and eternall life in the world to come Doth it not now behooue euery faithfull Christian to search into it and know what is promised and bequeathed vnto him Men of this world for the most part make their eldest and first borne heire of all and leaue little to the other but euery child of God is as the eldest and as the first borne most deare to him he shal receiue his double portion the second shal haue no lesse then the first nor the third lesse then the second nor the younger then the elder the first shall be as the last and the last as the first for he may do with his owne as he list Againe if a man doe leaue all his sonnes heyres and rich inheritors for the most part lesse is 〈◊〉 on the daughters but all the childrē of God both his sonnes and daughters shal be heyres euen the Heires of God and heyres annexed with Christ Iesus their share shal be as great as the portion of sonnes Moreouer when a man hath passed all the daies of his life in carke and care what can he giue to his pofterity but earthly riches transitory possession a fading inheritance leauing them inheritours as well of his sorrow as of his substance It is not so with the children of God Christ by his last wil and Testament hath promised to make his people sound in faith rich in hope blessed in the pardon of their sinnes and heires of the kingdome which hee hath promised to them that loue him This is a great and vnspeakable comfort to al Gods children whether high or low whether rich or poore So then we ought to be much more careful and earnest to know throughly and vnderstand perfectly the will of Christ then any naturall child is to search the meaning of the will of his naturall father And if men were not wholly carnall they would be thus farre fpiritually minded Againe is the word an outward part of the Sacrament Then the Sacraments must neuer be separated and set a part from the word They are not dombe shewes and idle signes but haue alwaies the doctrine of God adioyning vnto them to shew the end vse profit of them and the purpose of God in them This appeareth in all places wher God gaue signes to confirme and assure the truth of his promises When he gaue in mercy to Noah and all his posterity the Rain-bow imediately after the flood as a signe of his couenant he addeth his word vnto the signe My couenant will I establish with you that from hencefoorth all flesh shall not bee rooted out by the waters of the flood neither shall there be a floode to destroy the earth any more This is it the Apostle meaneth 1. cor 11. Ye shew the Lords death till he come Where he teacheth that the Lordes Supper cannot be truely deliuered and rightly administred vnlesse there be a declaration shewing forth of the death of christ Wherefore it is no sacrament except the word and doctrine be ioyned vnto it by way of explication and exposition of the outward signe Lastly those Sacraments are proued heereby to bee no Sacraments which are foisted and brought in without the warrant of the word For take away the word and what is the outward Element but a bare signe What is the water in baptisme but common water What is the bread in the Lords Supper but common bred What is the wine but common wine such as men vse and all men may take at their ordinary tables Seeing therfore such signs Sacraments as haue not Gods commandement for their institution nor promise of grace and saluation annexed vnto the vsing of them are voide and nothing worth heerby the imagined deuised Sacraments of the church of Rome are condemned which deliuereth that it hath not receiued of the Lord and imposeth that to be beleeued which it neuer learned in the word Heereby the last anoyling or extream vnction is excluded wanting the word to warrant the continuall practise of it Also their confirmation hath neither word to institut the practise nor elemēt to assure any grace nor promise to approue any vse True it is they haue words to administer it but they are words of men not of God vnwriten not written of tradition not of scripture The like might be saide of mariage though we confesse and acknowledge it to be an holy ordinance and honourable institution of God yet was it made no Sacrament hauing no word of institution no promise of sanctification and saluation annexed vnto all the faithfull vsers thereof neither is it an instrument whereby God applyeth Christ and his sauing benefits to the comfort and consolation of his children Wherefore to conclude this point we affirme that neither the sonnes of Romulus at Rome nor of Remus at Rhemes shall euer be able to shew and proue that they are to be acknowledged and receiued as Sacraments of the church which haue no warrant of the word to commaund them nor promise annexed to assure the sauing graces of Christ to the worthy receiuers But such are their fiue pretended Sacraments of confirmation penance orders
matrimony and extreame vnction wanting either the word or promise or both and therefor we cannot receiue we cannot acknowledge we cannot beleeue them Thus much of the second outward parte namely the word of institution Chap. 6. Of the third outward part of a sacrament THe third outward part of a Sacrament is the element or outwarde signe For whersoeuer there is a Sacrament there must of necessity bee a signe such as water is in Baptisme and bread and Wine in the Lordes Supper not of their owne nature but by the ordinance of God which are sanctified by the especiall worde and praier Therefore Iohn the baptist baptized with water and Christ when he instituted his last Supper tooke bread and brake it and gaue it to his Disciples Likewise hee tooke the cup wherein was the fruit of the Vine as appeareth when he said I will drinke no more of the fruit of the Vine vntill that day that I drinke it newe in the kingdome of God Seeing then it is cleare there must in euery Sacrament be a visible sign that may be seen handled let vs see how we may profitably apply this to our instruction First seeing the signes and Sacramentall rites are outwarde partes we must take heede wee ascribe not too much to the outward signe and so commit idolatry to the creature For the Water in Baptisme hath not power in it selfe and force to wash away sin but by the ordinance of God it is made a signe and seale of regeneration Euen as the Water of Iordan where Iohn baptized was no better then the waters of other places and countries neither had any strengthe and vertue to clense the Lepers that washed in it yet by the bleising of God Naaman the Syrian washing himselfe 7. times therein according to the direction of the Prophet was clensed and healed of his leprocie so the water vsed in the Sacrament of Baptisme is in nature and substance the same with ordinary and common Water neither hath it vig our and vertue to clense the soule yet by the institution of God it is appointed to seale vp the asturance of remission of sinnes Not with standing this confidence in the outward signe which in it selfe is as nothing hath since the fall of man rested and remained in his corrupt nature flattering himselfe and deceiuing his owne soule This fond and salse opinion was in Adam immediately after his transgression hee did attribute too much to the tree of life which hadde in it selfe no more life then the rest of the trees in the garden and therefore God would thrust him out of the garden least he should beguile himselfe with that conceite and immagination Thus did the Israelites trust too much in the Arke a signe of Gods comfortable presence and protection attributing saluation thereunto sayeinge It maye saue vs out of the handes of our Enemyes therefore God ouerthrew them and gaue them into the hands of the Philistims Againe we are taught heereby that the Sacraments that haue no signe no seale no element to signisie to strengthen and to seale vp the promises of saluation For as we shewed before that euery Sacrament must haue gods word to warrant it so must it haue an outward signe to approue the receiuing of it and to signifie the spirituall grace offered by it Herby we learn what to hold of transubstantiation a doctrin teching that the bread and wine is turned into the very body blood of Christ namely that it is a very fable to mock fooles withal For whatsoeuer ouerthroweth the nature and vse of a sacrament is not to be admitted but omitted neither to be receiued but reiected But transubstantiation ouerthroweth and ouerturneth both the nature and vse of a sacrament and therefore not to be admitted and receiued into the Church For touching the nature of a Sacrament it is confessed that it consisteth of two parts the one earthly and the other heauenly but if after the words of consecration the bread and wine are transubstantiated into the body and blood of Christ then the signe is taken away the element is ouerthrowne the materiall part is abolished and consequently the nature of a Sacrament is ouerturned And touching the vse of a Sacrament there must be an analogy and propoition betweene the signe and the thing signified As in Baptisme the element of water washeth and purgeth the body so the Holy-ghost through the blood of Christ clenseth and sanctifieth the soule Like wise in the Lords Supper as the substance of bread wine receiued strengthneth and comforteth the body so Christ receiued by faith norisheth feedeth the soule The very true principall vse of this sacrament is to cōfirme our faith that as surely as those earthly creatures taken and aplyed feed our bodies to a bodily life so the body and blood of Christ receiued and applyed by saith feede our souls to eternal life And do not al the faithful seel a swect comfort so often as they come to the Lords table by this similitude and agreement to cōsider and know assuredly that as the substance of bread serueth to nourish and doth feed our bodies so Christ doth feede our soules But if we must beleeue that the substance of bread and Wine is changed and cleane gone that nothing remaineth but accidents where is this comfort and consolation How can we be assured and strengthned that as our bodies are nourished with the materiall elements so in like manner our soules by feeding on Christ Wherefore while they take away the substance of bread which should nourish the body the nature and vse of the Sacrament is destroyed and we are spoyled of the comfort of our hearts and strengthning of our faith which we should haue by this notable comparison and resemblance of the partes So then if wee woulde receiue comfort in comming to this Communion we must retaine the substance of the sign as a staffe to stay vp our faith that it do no faile And thus much of the third outward part to wit the signe Chap. 7. Of the outward part of a sacrament THe last outward part of a sacrament is the receiuer which is as needfull as the outward sign We vnderstand and take heere a receiuer in generall for euery one that commeth to the Sacrament whether good or eu●ll godly or vngodly faithfull or vnfaithfull Such a receiuer is likewise a necessary part of the Sacrament For no signe hath the substance and essence of a Sacrament vnlesse it be receiued Though ther be a minister to administer it a word to warrant it a signe to represent it yet vnlosse there be a fit person to receiue it ther can be no Sacrament If the minister should sprinkle water and alledge the words of institution wher ther is no party to be baptized this were a prophaning not a solemnizing of Baptisme or if he should take bread and Wine with prayer and thanksgiuing where none
are present to communicate and receiue this were to commit sacriledge not to deliuer a Sacrament Wherefore vnlesse there be a body to be washed except there be communicants to partake the Supper there can be no Sacrament This appeareth by the words of God to Abraham giuing vnto him circumcision saying Euery male-child of eight daies old shall be circumcised This also appeareth in the words of Christ speaking of baptisme and charging the Apostles to baptize the nations in the name of the father and of the son of the Holy-ghost Where he teacheth that it is not sufficient to take water but there must be a washing So. when he speaketh of his supper he saith Take ye eate ye drinke ye so that there must not only be bread but giuing taking and eating there must not onely bee wine but giuing taking and drinking thereof This truth being euidently deliuered let vs see how it may be profitably applied First of all must the Sacraments necessarily be receiued Then it teacheth that the Sacraments without their lawfull vse are no sacraments at all they are no signes of grace if they be not vsed This condemneth the keeping reseruing holding vp and carying about with pompe and ostentation the Lords supper offering vp kneeling downe vnto and adoring a piece of bread all which are horrible prophanations of that comfortable Sacrament whereby the people isrobbed and depriued of a precious part of their peace in Christ. The bread feedeth not the body reuiueth not the spirits strengthneth not the heart by looking and gazing vpon it by touching and handling it but by eating digesting and feeding vpon it so doth the sacrament strengthen faith not by reseruing and keeping it but by vsing and receiuing of it For sacramentes are actions not dumbe shewes Christ saide not Heare ye see ye gaze re on but baptize ye eate ye drinke ye doe ye this in remembrance of me Secondly are the receiuers an outward part of the Sacrament Then the persons that are to receiue must know that diuers duties are to bee done and performed of them The persons then that are to receiue must ioyne with the Minister in prayer in quickning their faith in the couenant and promises ofGod beholding the former works of the Minister blessing breaking pouring out and distributing ratifieng them in their harts and lastly by receiuing and applying to themselues the visible signes For as we haue shewed if the words of baptisme should be rehearsed ouer the water and no person to be present to be baptized it is no baptisme so if the words of institution in the supper should be spoken and repeated without eating without drinking without receiuing it were no Sacrament Wherefore we must all learne to detest the absurd opinion of Bellarmine and other procters of the Romish religion which teache that the breade and Wine being once consecrate whither they be receiued or reserued whither they bee distributed to be eaten and drunke or whether they be kept in boxes and vessels of the Church for daies moneths and long times and carried solemnly in procession are notwithstanding still the Sacrament of the body and bloode of Christ. Against which dotage wee spake in the former vse and shall speake more in the third booke following Lastly if the receiuing be an outward part then we are not to rest in the outward participation for so farre went Iudas in the Passeouer so farre went Simon that sorcerer in baptisme and so farre went the Israelites as the Apostle sheweth They were all baptized vnto Moses in the cloud and in the sea they did all eat the same spirituall meat and did al drink the same spirituall drinke c yet with many of them was not god pleased but they were ouerthrowne in the Wildernesse And therefore Iohn Baptist said to the Pharisees and Saduces when he saw them come to his baptisme O generation of vipers who hath forewarned you to flee from the anger to come bring foorthe therefore fruit worthy amendment of life Now our righteousnes must exceede the righteousnes of the Scribes and Pharisees if wee woulde enter into the kingdome of heauen Let vs all therefore haue this profitable meditatiō so often as we deale with the Sacraments and come vnto them we must looke further then to the outward sight we must consider more then the externall signe otherwise as we approch without preparation so we depart without edification And thus much of the foure outward parts of a Sacrament to wit the minister the word the signe and the receiuer Chap. 8. Of consecration BEfore we proceede to the inward parts of a Sacrament answerable to the outward by a fit proportition it shall not be amisse in this place to speake somewhat of the Consecration of a sacrament First wee must consider what it is for the truth being knowne it will cast downe errour as the light scattereth the darknesse To consecrate then is to take a thing from the ordinary and common vse and to appoint it to some holy vse This therefore is Consecration sanctification and dedication of the outward signes to apply them to an holy purpose This is done partly by the minister partly by the people and partly by them both The minister taketh the water in Baptisme which signifieth the blood of Christ and he poureth it on the person of the baptized he taketh the bread in the Lords supper and breaketh it he taketh the wine and poureth it out he deliuereth them both the people take and receiue they eate and drinke in remembrance of Christ and both minister and people ioynein praier and thanksgiuing vnto God the father for the mistery of our redemption accomplished by Christ our sauiour so that the sacrament is consecrated by the whole action of the minister and people together This maketh the difference betweene common water and the water in Baptisme this maketh the difference betweene that bread and wine of the Supper and the bread and wine which is vsed for ordinary meate and drinke True it is in nature in essence in substance there is none but in the ende and vse Common water we vse for the washing of our bodies but the water in Baptisme is sanctified by prayer to an other vse to be a signe of the clonsing of the soule Bread and wine at mens tables in their houses are set before them for the nourishment of their bodies but at the Lords l'able they are ordained of God to an higher and holier vse euen to be signes of the bodye and blood of Christ. This is noted by the Euangelistes and by the Apostle Paule that the Lord Iesus before he brake the bread and gaue it he blessed and gaue thankes to his father that he had appointed him to be the redeemer of the world and giuen him authority to institute this Sacrament in remembrance of his death and passion For wheras the Euangelist Mathew saith he blessed the other by way
of exposition say Hegaue thanks so that the blessing heere spoken of is Giuing of thanks which also appeareth compared with Ioh. 6 11. And the Apostle saith Euery creature of God is good if it be receiued with thank sgiuing for it is sanctified by the worde of God and prayer We see then that Consecration is when a thing is separated from a common and ciuil vse to a more special vse which is done by the authority of the worde and by the vertue of prayer whereby it hath his full force power and vertue The knowledge of this point serueth to cleere our doctrine and to ouerthrow sundry errors of the church of Rome First it sheweth that we hold teach a consecration that is a sanctifieng of the water in Baptisme and of the bread and wine in the Lords supper by the word by prayer and by thanksgiuing The bread wine are changed not in nature but in quality not in substance but in vse not in essence but in the end not by force of certaine words but by Christs institution We acknowledge and confesse a consecration not a conuersion a sanctification of the signes not a transubstantiation of the substance into the body and blood of Christ. He blessed and praised his father as mediatour of the Church for the mistery of the redemption of mankind and hee blessed the creatures that they might be effectual signes and serue for the confirmation and increase of our faith Secondly we are taught that consecration is not a magical charme and incantation by force of certaine wordes as though these word This is my body being murmured and spoken ouer the bread and This cup is the new testament in my bloud whispered ouer the wine did fully finish a consecration and made the elements to be immediatly changed into the body and blood of Christ without any other obseruing of the institution And hence it is that the forme of Christs giuing of thanks is not set down by any Euangelist because our corrupution and superstition is so great that if we had the words we would ascribe power force to the words sillables and letters and therefore the manner of his thanksgiuing is pretermitted This inclination of the hart is apparently seene in the Romish church who ascribe efficacy operation to the pronouncing of certain words which is a part of sorcery and a part of witch craft Wheras we auouch that the whole action of taking breaking pouring out distributing eating drinking praysing rehearsing the institution of Christ are the consecration that is the separation of these creatures to this vse Thirdly if after the Sacramentall actions if after thanksgiuing to god if after prayer that we may vse the creatures to the confirmation of our faith there do follow consecration sanctification and change of the elements to another vse then the power effect and working of the Sacrament dependeth not vpon the intention of the minister therfore the popish opinion is to be refused and reprooued that holdeth it to be no Sacrament if the minister haue not an intent and purpose in the ministration thereof at least to do that which the church doth that is to consecrate the elements and to make a Sacrament If his mind be not on his matters his hart on his busines in hand they hold it can be no Sacrament For otherwise saith Bellarmine If a priest should read the Gospell at the table of prelates and religious men and in reading should pronounce these words This is my body this is my blood then all the bread and wine vpon the the table should be consecrate and changed into Christs body and blood which is not so because his intent is wanting Againe if a father should lead his sonne to the bath and there dip him in the water And say I wash thee in the name of the father and though he thinke nothing of Baptizing him yet it should bee baptisme if an intent of baptizing were not required But I would gladly haue him answere this question what if a father should intend Baptisme by dipping his child in the bath whether that were baptisme or not Or suppose the priest we spake off reading at the prelates table should haue a mind and meaning to consecrate all the bread and wine vpon the table must 〈◊〉 of necessity be a Sacrament and reall change of all Or admit the former priest being in the saide prelats wine seller supposing himselfe to be in the Church and to stand at the alter should pronounce there words of consecration with a purpose and intent to make a sacrament should all the wine in that 〈◊〉 be turned into the blood of Christ Or if he being in a bakers shoppe should there solemnely say This is my body with the foresaide resolution should all that bread be changed into the body of Christ Let them speake plainely let them tel vs directly what they hold I thinke they will not say so I am sure it is not so For other things are wanting that are needefull in this matter We haue shewed that a Sacrament is not made by bare pronouncing of certaine wordes ascribing force to them after the manner of enchanters but the whole institution of Christ must be obserued there must be distributing and receiuing there must be praier and thankesgiuing and from the vse of these followeth Consecration all which are wanting in the former examples suppositions there is no taking no breaking no distributing no pouring out no receiuing no praying no thanksgiuing We see touching the word of God with what intent and vnder what pretence soeuer it be preached if the minister teach Christ crucified howsoeuer he be affected it may haue his effect in the heart and worke saith in 〈◊〉 hearer so is it in the Sacramentes they haue their efficacy and operation howsoeuer the hart of the minister be disposed And as Isaac intended not to blesse Iacob but Esau yet it hindered not the purpose and determination of God so the corrupt intent the wandering imagination and rouing conceite of the minister cannot hinder the blessing of god in the sacramēts being his own ordinaces For the force of the Sacrament dependeth no more vpon the intention of the giuer then it doth vpon the intention of the receiuer Againe if the right receiuing of the Sacrament depend vpon the intent of the minister what assurance can any man haue that hee hath euer receiued or shall euer receiue a Sacrament What perswasion can we haue in our hearts that we euer were baptized What knowledge that we were euer partakers of the body and blood of Christ in the supper of the Lord Doth not this leaue vs vncertaine and vnsetled without comfort without fruite without benefit by comming to the sacraments and setteth the poore distressed consciences of men vpon the rack Alas we cannot kno the hart and vnderstand the intentes thereof For what man
seed dependeth vppon the sower which if it light in good ground will bring forth plentifull fruit 〈◊〉 it be 〈◊〉 of an vngodly and vnskilfull man Chap. 10. Of the second inward part of a Sacrament HItherto of the first in ward part the second part of a sacrament is the holy spirit as Math. 3. Hee shall baptize you with the holy ghest and fire So in Christes Baptisme when he was baptized and prayed the holy-ghost discended in a visible shape like a Doue vppon him And By one spirit we are al baptizd into one body whether we be Iewes or greacians whether we bee bond or free and haue bene all made to drinke into one spirit And the Apostle layeth down the circumcision of the hart by the spirit He is a Iew which is one within and the circumcision is of the heart in the spirit So the same A postle Tit. 3. 5. 6 According to the mercy of God he saued vs by the washing of the new birth and the renewing of the Holy-ghost which he shed on vs aboundantly through Iesus Christ our sauiour Nothing can be fruitfull and profitable without his gratious worke in vs he worketh and setteth the word of promise in our hearts and therefore we must necessarily hold the blessed spirit to an inward part of the Sacrament Now let vs proceed to the vses of this point being the second inward part Is the spirit of God the sealer vp of the promises after that we beleeue according to the doctrine of the Apostle After that ye beleeued ye were sealed with the holy spirit of promise then as often as we heare the promise vttered by the Minister it confirmeth vs that the father by his spirit woorketh the same in our harts The Water in baptisme cannot by any force and vertue inherent in it wash our consciences from dead workes to serue the liuing God as it hath power to wash away the filth and corruption of our bodies The bread and wine in the Lords supper haue no inherent strength to nourish the soule to eternall life as they haue to strengthen the body they are instruments of the Holy-ghost who worketh by them to the great comfort of the faithfull Grace is not contained and shut vp in them as water in a vessell or as a medicine in a boxe the spirit helpeth our infirmities sealing vppe to our consciences the fruite of the word that is heard and of the Sacrament all signes that are seene Againe is the spirit of God an inward part of the Sacramentes then we must learne and remember that wee can neuer heare the worde or receiue the sacraments with fruite and comfort without the speciall assistance and inward operation of the spirit of God Therefore the Prophet ioyneth the spirit word together I will make this my couenant with thee saith the Lord my spirit that is vpon thee and my words which I haue put in thy mouth shall not depart out of thy mouth nor out of the mouth of thy seed nor out of the mouth of the seed of thy seed from henceforth and for euer A man indeed hath power to heare the word and to receiue the sacramentes his will is free in these outwarde workes but he hath no power or strength to do them with profitte and comfott except it be giuen him from aboue Though we heare neuer somuch though wee communicate neuer so osten the spirit must open our hearts as he opened the hart of Lydia So 1 Ioh. 2. that 〈◊〉 h which ye receiued of him dwelleth in you and ye neede not that any man teach you but as that same annointing teacheth you of all thinges and it is true and is not lying Likewise Act 10. Peter preached the Gospell to Cornelius and his houshold and while he yet spake to them The Holy-ghost fell on them all which heard the word So also the Apost being sent out with their commission and commanded to preach the Gospell to euery creature it is noted that they went forth and preached euery where and the Lord wrought with them and confirmed the worde with signes that followed And Ioh. 14. The comforter which is the Holy-ghost whom the father wil send in my name he shal teach you all thinges and bring all thinges to your remembrance which I haue told you Pharaoh often heard Moses and Aaron but he harkened not but hardned his heart because there was no inward touching or teaching of the spirit The Israelites had hearde and seene the wonderfull things of God yet they profited not in faith in repentance in regeneration and the reason is rendered 〈◊〉 29. Yee haue seene all that the Lord did before your eies in the Lands of Egypt vnto Pharoah and vnto all his seruants and vnto al his Land the great tentations which thine cies haue seene those great mycacles and wonders yet the Lord hath not giuen you an hart to perceiue and eyes to see and eares to heare vnto this day When we come to heare the word which is a word of power of life and of saluation when wee come to receiue the sacramentes which are signes of Gods graces and seales of his promises we see many returne as ignorant peruers corrupt froward rebellious hard-harted and disobedient as they came to these ordinances of God and whence commeth this How falleth it out And what may be the reason heereof Surely it is not in him that willeth nor in him that runneth but in God that sheweth mercy who giueth eies to see eares to heare and heart to vnderstand to whom he thinketh good in heauenly pleasure Wherefore our duty is seeing the naturall man perceiueth not the things that are of the spirit of God to pray vnto him to giue vs wisedome to see our corruptions blindnes ignorance and hardnesse of hart Thirdly doth the spirit worke in vs by the word Are the word and spirit ioyned together And doth he teach vs by means of the word and Sacra then we must not separate the spirit from the worde and Sacraments as the Anabaptistes do which depend vpon reuelations and inward inspirations vpon priuate motions and diuine illuminations without the word They will not be taught by the word they will not be strengthned by the Sacramentes but take away the vse of both following their owne foolish fansies and deuilish dreames They boast of the spirit of God and are led by the spirit of the deuill Wee must for our direction and practise learne that as to rest vpon the spirit without the word is phantasticall and heriticall and the mother of all errors so the word and sacraments without the spirit are no 〈◊〉 then a dead carcasse without life an empty sound without substance a naked shew without truth an empty casket without the 〈◊〉 and there sore we must knit them together and assure our selues that the spirite speaketh euidently in the scriptures the spirit worketh effectually
by the Sacramentes and the spirit helpeth our 〈◊〉 to profit by them CHAP. II. Of the third inward part of a Sacrament THus much we haue spoken touching the holy spirit being the 2. inward part the 〈◊〉 inward part is Iesus Christ crucified the very subiect substance of all Sacraments He was represented by 〈◊〉 meision and the pascall lambe and he is represented in Baptisme and in the Lords supper When we receiue the outward signes God the father offereth his sonne and all his graces with him to confirme our 〈◊〉 therby The signe is but a figure and token Christ is the truth and substance This we shewed before Ch. 2. in the discription of a sacrament that therein Christ and all his sauing graces are truely offered sealed vp and giuen to the faithfull that 〈◊〉 in his name Heereunto commeth the doctrine of the Apostle where hee teacheth that the Iewish Sacramentes being in the truth of them the same with ours did signifie Christ for They dranke of the spirituall rocke that followed them and that rocke was Christ. So he doth teach 〈◊〉 that by Baptisme we put on Christ we are buried into his death and are planted into the similitude of his resurrection Wherefore this is the vse and end of the sacraments to lead our saith to the onely sacrifice of Christ once offered vpon the crosse as to the onely ground-worke and 〈◊〉 of our saluation as touching the other Sacrament the same Apostle sheweth that the breaking of the bread sealeth vp the communion of his body and the pouring out the wine the communion of his blood So then this is an euident plaine manifest truth confirmed by testimonies of the Scripture that Christ is the matter and substance of a sacrament Heereby we gather great strength of faith If Christ be offered withal his merits then let vs lay hold vpon him and not let him go let vs stretch forth the hand of faith and receiue him into our harts Wherefore when Satan assaulteth vs touching our faith in christ and assiance in his promises perswading vs we are not elected iustified and indued with faith therby seeketh to cut off our hand from aplying or to blind our eie from looking vpon the brasen serpent that is Christ sitting at the right hand of his father let vs run vnto him let vs hunger and thirst after his righteousnes let vs acknowledge him to be our wisdom our rightiousnes our sanctification and redemption and let vs looke for our saluation from him and in him What though our faith be frail and weak What though it be as a graine of a Mustard seede which is very little and small What if it be but as the groth strength of a child which is ready to fal except he be staied vp yet this weak this smal this little this fraile this feeble faith is able and sufficient to ingraft vs into christ A childe taking a staffe in his hand is able to hold it as truely though not as strongly as a man so if we lay hold vpon christ by faith though we doe it with many wantes and much weaknes yet it shal serue and suffice vs to saluation For God looketh not so much to the perfection as to the truth of faith neither so much to the measure as to the maner of our beleeuing Euen as the blinde man in the Gospell when he beganne to perceiue the mouing of men and saw them walking as trees when yet hee could not discerne their bodies did as truely and certainely see them as other did though not so cleerely plainely and distinctly So when we haue the least sparke of faith it will as truely assure vs of our saluation as a stronger The poore prisoner that 〈◊〉 in a deepe and darke dungeou may as wel discerne the light of the Sunne at a little hole and creuisse as he that walketh in the open ayre so albeit wee bee compassed about with ignorance doubtinges Weaknes and manyfolde fraylties of the fleshe yet by a dimme light and sighte of faithe wee may certainely apply vnto vs the mercies of GOD and the merits of Christ as well as if we had a strong and perfect perswasion of our election saluation before the foundations of the world Thus we see howsoeuer the faithfull may be afflicted yet they are not distressed though tempted yet not ouerwhelmed though cast down yet they perish not For this is their victory that hath ouercome this world euen their faith wherby they apprehend Iesus Christ who is offered of GOD the father in the Sacramentes to all the faithfull Againe if Christ be giuen vs how should not the father with him giue vs all things else as the Apostle concludeth If God spared not his owne sonne but gaue him for vs all to death how shal he not with him giue vs al things also when we inioy him we inioy al things if we want him it is nothing though we abound in all things else Wherefore when the father gaue him for vs it is more then if he had giuen to us heauen and earth For hauing right and interest in him we haue possession of al things his righteousnes his sanctification his obedience his innocency and whatsoeuer he hath is made ours He that hath Christ who is the Lord of al cannot doubt but he is made partaker of that which is his He that hath Christ who is heir of all things may assure himselfe to be made fellow heire with him This is it the Apostle saith Let no man reioyce in men for al things are yours whether it be Paule or Apollos or Cephas or the the world or life or death whether they be things present or things to come euen all are yours and ye Christs and Christ Gods When a parcel of ground is purchased and made ours thereby the profit and commodity thereof is made ours also so when christ by the free donation of god the father is giuen vnto vs his righteousnes and obedience becommeth wholy ours togither with him He then that hath christ hath all thinges he that hath not christ hath nothing howsoeuer he thinke himselfe to be something Chap. 12. Of the fourth inward part of a Sacrament THe last inwarde part of a Sacrament is the faithfull receiuer desiring apprehending receiuing hungring and thirsting after Christ. There is required a faithfull receiuer if wee woulde receiue Iesus Christ faith must of necessity goe before without this there is no iustification without this there is no saluation as Rom. 14. Whatsoeuer is not of faith is sunne And Heb. 11. Without faith it is vnpossible to please God Iudas executed the function of an Apostle he was partaker of the Passeouer yet he ceased not to remaine an Hypocrite a deuill and the child of perdition that the scripture might be fulfilled Neither was he bettered or sanctified by that sacrament or by the vse therof Ananias
the remission of his sins and neuer rest vntil he giue him peace of conscience and restore him to the ioyof his saluation Chap 13. Of the fir st v se ofa Sacrament HItherto of the parts of a Sacra both outward and inward now we come to the vses therof For vnlesse we know the vse and vnderstand the end why they were ordained it shal not profit vs to know the parts Every thing must be referred to his right vses and propper endes so must the Sacramentes be The endes are especially these three First to strengthen faith Secondly to seale the Couenant betweene God and vs. Thirdly to bee a badge of our profession Touching the first end the Sacraments serue for the better confirmation of our faith as appeareth Where the Apostle hauing set down the drowning of the world and the preseruing of Noah by the Arke he saith our baptisme directly answereth that tipe which is a taking to witnesse of a good conscience and sauing vs by the resurrection of Christ. So then by faith confirmed in Baptisme we haue an infallible assurance in the death of Christ of our saluation Many indeed come to the sacraments are present at Baptisme are partakers of the Lords supper that feele no strength of faith no increase of Gods graces no spiritual groth in the body of christ so that they worke not saluation in them but further their condemnation For the sacramentes as we haue shewed giue not grace but more firmely surely and comfortably confirme faith they apply and seale vp Christ crucified The sacraments cannot giue faith to the faithlesse neither were they instituted to the end men should beleeue but because they do beleeue as meat was not giuen that men should learne to eate but that the eating might be nourished Faith indeede receiueth them and then they serue to nourish it And they confirme not faith by any inherent power included in them but the holy spirit applyeth Christ to vs and frameth this comfortable conclusion in our hearts All such as are conuerted and do rightly vse the sacraments shal receiue Christ and al his sauing graces But I am conuerted do rightly vse the sacraments Therfore I shal receiue christ his graces Thus doth the cōforter comfort al those that come rightly religiously to the Lords table Now if we would enquire and search after the reasons of this first end we should find that one cause why they confirme faith is because god is true in his promises he confirmeth and maketh good that which is gone out of his mouth All the promises of God in Christ are yea and are in him Amen vnto the glory of God through vs. For 〈◊〉 Princes seales confirme their charters assure their grantes and make certaine their pardons so do gods sacraments witnesse to our hearts and consciences that his words and promises are true and are established to continue for euer For as he declareth his mercies by his word so he sealeth and assureth them by his sacraments Againe this appeareth by the example of Abraham who first beleeued the promise and it was imputed to him for righteousnes being yet vncircumcised and afterward receiued the signe of circumcision as the seale of the righteousnes of faith as the Apostle teacheth We say that faith was imputed vnto Abraham for righteousnes How was it then imputed when he was circumcised or vncircumcised Not when he was circumcised but when hee was vncircumcised c. Where he sheweth that Abraham was iustified in vncircumcision but yet was afterwarde circumcised that the gifte of righteousnes might be confirmed in him The Eunuche likewise beleeued before hee receiued baptisme and therefore it sealed vp the increase of his faith and of Gods graces And Act 2. They that gladlie receiued the wordes of Peter were baptized And. as Peter preached to Cornelius and others of the Gentlies The Holy-ghost fel on them all which heard the word and he said Can any forbid water that these shoulde not bee baptized which haue receiued the Holy-ghost as wel as we So he commanded them to be baptized in the name of the Lord. Wherefore when the minister washeth with water it representeth our buriall with Christ into his death and our rising again with him into newnes of life As bread norisheth and strengthneth man so the body of christ taken by faith feedeth the soule We take the bread and cup into our hands we eat we drink we are refreshed so we feed on Christ whose flesh is meat indeed and whose bloud is drink indeed and we are comforted Let vs nowe come to the vses as we haue seene the reasons And first of all do the sacraments serue to strengthen our faith then let vs all acknowledge our failings and infirmities Let vs labor more and more to feele the weakenes and wantes of our owne faith True it is if our faith were perfect and entire lacking nothing we should not neede the sacraments We must not therefore abstaine from them for the weakenes of our faith but for that cause come to God and to the Sacramēts of God praying for strength and confirmation thereof as that father did whose sonne was possessed with a dumbe spirit when Christ saide to him If thou canst beleeue all things are possible to him that beleeueth he answered crying with teares Lord I beleeue help mine vnbeleese And Luk. 17. the Apostles say to the Lord Increase our faith Vndoubtedly he that neuer doubted neuer beleeued For whosoeuer in truth beleeueth feeleth sometimes doubrings and wauerings of his faith Even as the sound body feeleth oftentimes the grudginges of a feuer and distemperature of the body which if he had not health he could neuer finde and feele so the faithfull soule findeth sundry doubtings which if his faith were not sound he covld not diseerne For we feele not corruption by corruption nor sinne by finne because when the strong man possesseth the house all things are in peace but we feele sinne and perceiue corruption in vs by a contrary grace of gods spirit The lesser and smaller measure of grace we haue the lesser is our feeling and the more grace we haue the more quick we are in feeling of corruption What is the reason that many haue no light of sinne no feeling of their corruption no tentations no trembling no terror no feare of gods wrath but wholly liue lie and dye in their lustes Surely because they are without grace without gods spirit and without his inward worke in them But the faithfull who are not led by the slesh but liue by the spirit are often tempted assailed tormoyled tryed and prouoked to many euils according to the words of our blessed sauiour Simon Simon behold Satan hath desired to winnow you as wheat but I haue prayed for thee that thy faith faile not therefore when thou art conuerted strengthen thy bretheren Asa man carried vp and set vpon an high to wer or on
condemneth those that speake euill of men as too precise too nise too pure for their profession because they run not into the same excesse of ryot with others These are not too precise but such as scoffe at al profession are too prophane It is good to be earnest in the matters of god prouided that our zeale be tempered with discretion and all Newtets be odious to God as it is said to the Church of the Laodiceans I knowe thy workes that thou art neither cold nor hot I woulde thou werest colde or hotte therefore because thou art Luke warme and neither colde nor hot it shall come to passe that I shall spew thee out of my mouth Wherefore let vs not be discouraged in wel-doing but walking through good report and euill report let vs remember that as christ is our Lord and master so our profession and the sacraments are our badges Lastly we see what our estate and condition is that we are not our owne but are subiect to Christ to serue him For we do beare his badge then he is our maister If he bee our Maister where is the feare and reuerence due vnto him Is it not meet we shoulde shewe our selues thankefull for so great mercies and gifts Were it not intollerable vnthankefulnes and vnsufferable pride for any man to wear the cognizance of another and yet to scorne his seruice and deny him duty Might not one worthily check and controul him as Christ did the 〈◊〉 who vnwillingly paid such taxes and tributes as were laid vpon them Hee called for a penny said unto them Whose image and superscription is this They said vnto him Caesars He ansuered Giue therefore to Caesar the things that are Caesars and giue to God the thinges that are Gods So likewise might one say fitly whose badge wearest thou whose Armes bearest thou on thysleeue Doth not this put thee in mind of thy state and condition and of the seruice and honor thou owest thy Maister In like manner may it be said to vs whose badge bearest thou Is it not Christes we are not therefore our owne men as the Apostle reasoneth and concludeth 1. Cor. 6. Know yee not that your bodie is the temple of the Holy-ghost which is in you whome ye haue of God and ye are not your owne For you are bought with a price therfore glorifie God in your body in your spirit for they are Gods So many therefore as come without knowledge and true repentance break their faith giuen to Christ and betray the body of christ as much as in them lyeth Wherefore to the right vse and partaking of the sacraments there is required the knowledge of god in three persons especialy of the persō of christ perfect God and perfect man and of his three offices to saue his people to be their Priest perfectly by his sacrifice to reconcile and iustifie them to be their king by the gouernement of his church to kill sin in them to sanctifie them to be their teacher to instruct them in the wil of his heauēly father After these is required true faith and earnest repentance otherwise we cannot receiue christ in the sacraments Put food into the mouth of a dead man it cannot nourish him so if one that is vnworthy and vnfit lying dead rotting in his sin do come to the sacramēts certainly they do not giue him life and worthines but such a one doth lade himselfe with a greater burden of sin and punishment Whosoeuer shall eat this bread and drinke the cup of the Lord vnworthily shall be guiltie of the bodie and blood of the Lorde he eateth and drinketh his 〈◊〉 iudgement because he discerneth not the Lords bodie Chap 16. Of the number of Sacraments HItherto we haue spoken of the chiefe vses of the sacraments now we are come to speake of the number of sacraments according as we take the name and haue declared the nature of them Let vs see then howe manie such visible signes and seales of spirituall grace in the new testament were iustituted of God to set forth the benefits of christ for the continuall vse of the church Many liue in the bosom of the church hear the word come to publick praier take themselus to be goodly christians offer themselues to the lordes table and are made partakers of the Sacrament who yet are ignorant how many sacraments ther are what they are None almost so simple but can number his sheep and cattel he knoweth their marks he knoweth their differences but aske him how many commaundements of the law how many Articles of faith how many petitions of the Lords prayer or how many Sacraments of the New Testament he can answere nothing Such haue their wits wholly exercised on the world and on wordly things which iustle out religion the knoledge of heauenly things If we haue eares to heare let vs heare what is the faith os the Church in this point grounded vpon the infallible rule and rocke of the word of God The sacraments of the church ordained by Christ to assure our communion with him are onely two baptisme whereby we are receiued into the couenant of God in steed of circumcision and the Lordes supper whereby we are nourished maintained and retained therein insteed of the Passeouer For albeit the couenant be but one yet the seales there of are two to assure vs that by vnion with Christ we are regenerated and shall be nourished to eternall life He hath deliuered vs a few sacraments insteade of many he coulde haue instituted moe if he had thought it good for the benefit of the Church These are as it were the two eies wherby we see and behold the promises of God These are as the two hands whereby we after a sort do handle Christ crucified and lay hold on the graces of saluation Christ hath appointed no mo sacraments he hath laide on vs an easie yoke and a light burden That these two are the onely sacraments of the new testament may appear by these few reasons following First christ taught no more to his Apostles the Apostles deliuered no mo to the churches the churches embraced no moe for many yeares When the Lord Iesus liued on the earth he instituted baptisme by the ministery of Iohn baptist who as he was sent to prepare the harts of the people so he preached the baptisme of repentance Afterward the Lord Iesus established it with his owne mouth in the commission giuen to his disciples he appointed and himself first administred his last supper in remembrance of his deth vntil his 2. comming againe with power and great glory These two true sacraments of the church to wit baptisme and the lords supper were instituted and warranted by the mouth of christ himselfe and none other beside these These we receiue because christ ordained them other we receiue not because he ordained them not Secondly the Apostle Paule admonisheth the
Corinthians to beware of idolatry not to slatter themselues or to think themselues the members of christ and therefore should escape the iudgment of God because they had the sacraments for the church of the Israelites had as great priuiledges as they they had the same sacramentes 〈◊〉 the same baptisme the same supper in substaunce and effect yet God was not pleased with them but ouerthrew them in the wildernes If then the Corinthians had any moe then these two they might haue iustly replied we grant indeed in respect of these they are equall with vs but we haue other which they had not wherein they are inferiour to vs and we superiour to them and therefore are preferred before them If then the Apostles reason conclude strongly we may hence gather directly that there are onely two and no other Sacraments because the Apostle mentioneth no moe where hee purposeth to set forth the priuiledges of the Iewes and to make them equall with the Gentiles Wherefore we must receyue two Sacraments onely or else the Apostle hath reasoned weakely Furthermore the same Apostle 1 Corinthians 12. purposinge to shewe that manie members of the church are one bodie in CHRIST coupled by him as by ioyntes prooueth this pointe by a full enumeration of the sacramentes being pledges of our settinge into the body of CHRIST and continuall nourishment in the same when he saieth As by one spirit we are all baptized into one body whether Iewes or Gentiles so we haue al 〈◊〉 made to drink into one spirit Where the Apostle sheweth that al the faithfull by the effectuall woorking of the Holy-ghoast are made one body in Christ which hee confirmeth by the two Sacraments of baptisme and the Lords supper without mention of any moe Moreouer another reason may be framed by comparing the Church of the Iewes with the churches of the christians in regard of their ordinary sacraments There are no mo sacraments deliuered in the Gospel then were prefigured vnder the law for their sacraments were types answering to our sacramenst as 1. Pet. 3. Our baptisme answereth the figure of the waters representing the same that our baptisme doth True it is the sacramentes of the olde Testament were not figures of the sacraments of the new Testament for then their sacraments should be the sign and ours shuld be the thing signified and so there should be sacraments of Sacraments which were foolish and absurd Againe the Iewish Sacramentes should be signes of things altogither vnknowne vnto them and not giuen them of God for they were vtterly ignorant of Baptisme and the Lordes Supper Besides that auncient people should be saued by beleeuing baptisme and the lords supper to come for doubtlesse they were saued by beleeuing that which their sacraments did signifie but they were not saued by beleeuing baptisme and the Lords supper but by beleeuing in Christ to come Lastly the old sacramentes should haue one signification and the new another for the old should signifie the new and the new shold signifie christ and his benefits Notwithstanding the sacraments of the new testament succeede in the room of those of the old and signifie the same thinges that they doe baptisme came in place of circumcision and the Lords supper is come in place of the Paschall lamb as appeareth in that it was administred presently after it to declare the abrogating of the one and establishing of the other As then ther was the same faith and the same way of saluation by christ who was the lambe slame from the beginning of the worlde he was yesterday and to day and the same for euer so had the Iewish rites respect to Christ and all of them are reduced to our two Sacraments Wherefore as the Iewes had onely two ordinary Sacramentes circumcision and the Passeouer as appeareth If a straunger dwell with thee and will obseiue the Passeouer of the Lord let him circumcise all the males that belong vnto him so the ordinary sacramentes of Christes church are baptisme and the Lords supper agreeing to the same Now the 5. other sacraments newly inuented were not prefigured in the Law they succeed not in the place of their ceremonies they are not an swerable to any types of Iewish rudiments therefore they are no sacraments Fiftly these two sacraments baptisme and the Lords supper are altogither perfect and sufficient not onely to enter and plant a Christian into the church but also to retaine him in it and therefore all other are friuolous vaine and superstitious as superfluous braunches to be pared away Now that they are sufficient to these purposes appeareth by the effects and vses of them What other grace can we haue then to be borne againe in Christ to haue iustification forgiuenes of sinnes and all priuiledges of eternall life and then afterward to be norished and kept continually in him Al these are fullie represented and sealed vp to vs in these two wherup on it followeth that christ who ordained the fewest and best sacramentes vnder the gospell appointed these and no moe Thus then we may gather that by the institution of christ by the argument of the Apostle by comparison of the Iewish ceremonies and by the sufficiency of the two sacraments of baptisme and the Lords supper that these are the onely two sacraments the rest are forged and counterfait sacraments they seale not vppe christ they neuer flowed out of his side from whence yssued onely water and bloud Lastly this number of 2. sacraments appeareth not only by the testimony of ancient fathers but by the confession of the aduersaries For howsoeuer in many other controuersies their wordes are many and their argumentes probable and very specious yet for the auouching of 7. Sacramentes they are dumbe and silent and are not able to produce the reuerent witnesses of the elder time Bellarmine proueth the word Sacrament sometimes to be giuen to al the 〈◊〉 but this is when the word is taken in a large and generall signification for any misticall signe and token which may signifie some other thing and may more properly be called a signe then a Sacrament as the couering of the head in the woman was a signe of subiection laying on of hands in ordination of the ministry is a signe of 〈◊〉 separation to that worke and of gods presence to assist them with his grace and blessing the Saboth day was a signe of the heauenly rest In this sense Augustine calleth the mistery of the Trinity a Sacrament and fire a Sacrament because by the heat light and shining brightnesse thereof the Trinity may be shadowed out Besids the late Warn-word Pag. 91. handling this controuersie of the number of Sacraments doth not proue the number of 7. Sacraments out of the Scripture neither goeth about it neither is able to deriue it further then the counsell of Florence holden in the yeare 1440. and from Peter Lumbard who was indeede the father
assured paiment yea all the promises of God in him are yea and are in him Amen vnto the glory of God But seeing the goodnesse of God hath abounded in granting vnto vs two Sacraments that where doubting aboundeth there faith might abound much more our sinne is the greater if now we wauer like a waue of the sea tossed of the wind and carried away One tree of life serued Adam to assure him life one raine-bowe sufficed Noah One returne of the fun back ward was inough to Hezekiah and they beleeued If then we seeke a signe behold we haue two giuen vnto vs that hauing two vnchangeable sacraments as it were two witnesses of his worde wee might haue strong consolation The vnbeleeuing Iewes said to christ shew vs a signe and we will beleeue thee Beholde the Lord sheweth vs two visible signes of his spirituall and inuisible graces and shal not we beleeue being stedfast in faith We desire forgiuenesse of sins and assurance therof by these two the Lorde promiseth couenanteth and indenteth to giue the same vnto vs setting the seales to his owne writing Lastly this diuision and numbring vp of the sacramentes serueth to teach that there are not seuen sacraments of the church and so do condemne the fiue supposed and falsely named sacraments maintained of the church of Rome to wit confirmation pennance Matrimony orders and extreame vnction Baptisme we embrace the Lordes supper we acknowledge of these two we moue no question we make no controuersie the other fiue whole father is vnknowne we refuse as bastards and cannot admit them into the number of sacraments the reasons whereof we will render in the chapters following Chap. 17. That confirmation is not a sacrament THe Apostles as the maister-builders of the churches planted the Gospell where the name of Christ had not bin heard Nowe because many seducers arose that trobled the peace of the church and the faith of many beleeuers began to wauer the Apostles agreede together to goe againe to the churches wher they had laid a golden foundation howsoeuer other had builded hay and stubble thereon to see how they increased or decreased as Act. 11. and they confirmed theyr heartes and established them in the faith which they hadde taught And Chap 15. Paule said vnto Barnabas Let vs returne and visit our brethren in euery Citty where we haue preached the word of the Lord and see how they do And we doubt not but when the Gospell was reueiled the Apostles by laying on hands gaue the giftes of the Holy-ghost to the beleeuers in Christ. This practise of the Apostles we finde this we confesse this we approue and allow But of any sacrament of confirmation we read not and therefore allow not Againe it was a laudable custome in the primitiue church of christian parents to bring their children to the Bishop who examined them in the principles and fundamentall points of religion he asked them a reason of their faith he instructed them farther in the misteries of godlines and that this action might haue the more reuerence and dignity they laid their hands vpon them and prayed vnto God for them that he would increase and continue the good things that he had begun in them This imposition of handes with prayer to be strengthened in the Holy-ghost and to haue increase of grace corrupted with annointings depraued with crossings and defiled with sundry superstitions is no sacrament First euery sacrament should haue warant and appointment from Christ but this hath none Secondly it hath no word of institution in the scripture nor commaundement to continue the vse of it vntill the comming of Christ and end of the world and therfore no sacrament For the word must be added to the element and so it is made a sacrament True it is they vse a forged and counterfeit forme in their confirmation I signe thee with the signe of the holie crosse and I confirme thee with the oile of saluation in the name of the father and the son and of the holi-ghost These indeed are wordes but no worde of God they shew an intollerable presumption and not to be excused But indeed a counterfeit Sacrament and there is a good agreement when both writing and seale are sutable that is both forged Thirdly it wanteth an outward signe instituted by Christ. We read oftentimes that the Apostles vsed laying on of hands but we read of no oyle or chrisme Besides we know they gaue thereby the miraculous gifts of the holy ghost which now are ceased as Act. 8. where we see when Samaria was conuerted to the faith by preaching of Phillip and baptized in the name of the Lord Iesus the Apostles sent thither Peter Iohn who praied for them That they might receiu the Holy-ghost for as yet he was fallen down on none of thē then laid they their hands on them and they receiued the Holy-ghost This confirmation thus vsed had then a profitable vse in the church of God But as the brasen Serpent commaunded by God and set vp by Moyses for good purpose was afterward abused and incense offered vnto it and lastly was by that good king Hezekiah destroyed and demolished so popish confirmation hith many intolerable abuses mingled with it it is ministred in a strange tongue that none vnderstand what is spoken and ment they call the oyle the oyle of saluation they acount him no perfect Christian that is not anointed by the Bishop they prefer it before baptisme because any of their piiests may baptize nay priuate men nay women in their supposed time of necessity but confirmation may be giuen among them onely by the hands of a byshop and lastly they blow and halow their oyle that it may be made a spirituall oyntment to purifie soule and body These errors are so grosse that of euery one they may be seene they are so palpable that they may bee felt Wherfore seeing their confirmation is wrought by anoynting seeing it hath no word of God but a word of their own seeing they haue no commaundement for it nor promise of the presence of the Holy-ghost and last of all seeing it hath many abuses ioyned with it wee haue very iust causes to thrust it out of this place and ranke of the sacraments and throw it downe from that high seate which 〈◊〉 hath long vsurped Chap. 18. That popish penance is no Sacrament THe doctrine of repentance and turning from all our sinnes to God to bring forth fruits of amendment of life is taught in the Sacraments and commended vnto all Ioel. 2. Turne you vnto me withall your heart and rent your heart not your garments There is none that liueth and sinneth not we are corrupt and become abhominable the imaginations of our hart are only euill and that continually in vs that is in our flesh or vnregenerate part there dwelleth no good thing we were conceiued and borne in sin and therfore whosoeuer saith He is
without sinne deceiueth himselfe and there is no truth in him This corruption of our nature that hath taken hold on all mankind for there is none that doth good no not one must be mortified and the new man which is spiritual regenerate by the holy ghost must be quickned Repentance therefore consisteth in an inward sorrow for our sins in an hatred of thē in suppressing the corruptiōs of nature in a purpose to obey God in a care to sorsake our sins in confessing the greatnesse of them in condemning our our selues for them in acknowledging the desart of them in an holy indignation anger against our selues that we haue beene so carelesse in looking to our owne waies in fearing least we runne into the same sins againe in desiring euer heereafter to please God and to walke more carefully before him in zeale touching the seruice of God and in taking reuenge sometimes and punishment vpon our selus for former offences For wee confesse plainely and deny not but some outward penalties and chastisements of the body may be vsed do please God not of themselues but because they are profitable meanes and good helpes to further and forward true repentance As for example he that hath offended grieuously in surfetting drunkenes and hath great heauines of hart sorrow of mind that he hath sinned against so gratious a God and mercifull father may prescribe appoint to himselfe without appearance of superstition or error of satisfaction or opinion of 〈◊〉 some fasting or abstinence for a certaine time that he may be better fitted to gods seruice and further strengthned against those sinnes into which he is fallen This doctrine we receiue as the doctrine of Christ and agreeable to the prophets and Apostles as appeareth 2 Cor. 7. where Paule setteth downe the effects or fruites of true repentance Now the question ariseth betweene the church of Rome and vs whether this repentance which is a dying to sinne and a walking in newnesse of life and whether reconciliation to the church and absolution from sinne be a Sacrament of the new Testament institvted by Christ to assure his sauing graces to vs Wee answere it is not First it was in time of the old Testament from the beginning of mans fall and transgression it was continually preached and published by the prophets and therefore before Christes comming in the flesh and cannot be a sacrament of the new Testament Secondly it wanteth an outward signe such as water in Baptisme such as bread and wine in the Lords supper now euery Sacrament must haue an outward element and signe to represent the spirituall grace therefore penance can be no Sacrament Thirdly it hath no word to commaund it no particuler promise of God which is the chiese stay and staffe of a sacrament Bellarmine affirmeth that Christ instituted the sacrament of penance when he breathed vpon his Apostles after his resurrection and said vnto them Receiue the holy ghost whose sinnes ye remit they are remitted and whose sinnes ye retaine they are retained And he saith the words of absolution are the signe and that remission of sins is the the promise of grace which is signified For answer to this assertion I would gladly aske this question whether the apostles had this ministeriall power to forgiue sinnes to repentant sinnets when they baptized to remission of sins If this power were heere first instituted and giuen vnto them Do they not by tying the authority of remitting finnes to this time make their baptisme of none effect Besides we haue shewed that it is not sufficient to haue a sound of wordes that may be heard to make an outward signe there must be a visible signe that may be seene to warrant a sacrament Now to make a Sacrament without such a signe were to make a sacrament without a sacrament Lastly as they take and vnderstand penance it is neither sacrament nor sacred it is neither holy signe nor holy thing it is neither an institution of God nor any way of God For they mean not thereby amendment of life or inward sorrow griefe of minde for the life past which is sometimes testified by weeping and mourning by sackcloth and ashes by fasting and humiliation but they vnderstād by penance 〈◊〉 external discipline satisfaction for our sinnes to God by our owne sufferings that wearing of sackcloth sprinkling of ashes chastising of the body whipping of the flesh putting on rough apparel lying on bourds and hard places abstaining from flesh and aflicting our selues by such outward exercises are a paying of the paines due to sinne part of amendes made to Gods iustice and meritorious before him This punishment this penance these penalties we abhorr as an horrible blasphemy against the blood of Christ which is the onely satisfaction to God for sinne For if we satisfie for our selues then hath not Christ satisfied for vs nor payed the price due vnto our sinnes Besides they charge God the father with iniustice in that hauing laid the guiltinesse of our sinnes vpon his owne sonne and punished them in him they make him not satisfied with that punishment but to exact the debt of vs againe for which his sonne as our surety hath fully and sufficiently answered as Esa. 53. He is punished for our transgressions he is bruised for our iniquities the chastisement of our peace is lated vpon him and by his stripes we are healed the Lord maketh the punishment of vs all to light upon him Likewise the Apostle Iohn saith The blood of IESVS CHRIST doth purge us from all sinne And in the Reuelation he addeth Christ hath washed vs from our sinnes in his blood Whereby we see we are taught to beleeue that we are pardoned and reconciled to God not through our owne satisfaction not for our owne workes not by our owne sufferings but onely through the death and blood sheading of Christ. Wherefore their penance is to be acknowledged to be sacriledge and accepted as a Sacrament Chap. 19. That Matrimony is not a Sacrament THe Counsell of Trent vnder Pius 4. Sess. 8 decreeth If any shall say that Matrimony is not truely and properly one of the 7. Sacramentes instituted by Christ but was brought in by men into the Church and doth not conferre grace let him be accursed Heereby they would seeme to set forth the dignity of marriage aboue vs seeing they lift it vp into the number of the Sacraments of the Church Yet as a lyar seldome agreeth with himselfe they complaine that we too highly magnifie the married estate and themselues cannot abide it in their clergy because for sooth it is written Be ye holy for I am holy they which are in the flesh cannot please God Marriage therefore is too holy an ordinance for their vnholy cleargy inasmvch as they teach in this point the doctrin of deuils and are led by the spirit of error that forbid marriage which God hath left free We confesse touching
mariage somuch as the word of God teacheth vs that it is an ordinance of God instituted before the fall of man while he was without sinne and blessed of God who saide It is not good for man to be alone let us make him an helper meete for him This estate Christ did not abrogate and disanull but repeated and confirmed not onely by word but by his owne presence and hath left it as a lawfull remedy against fornication and vncleannesse We account it an honorable estate of life among all and the bedde vndefiled but whoremongers and adulterers God will iudge and cast into vtter darkenesse where their worme shall neuer dy and their fire shall not be quenched as the Apostle teacheth 1 Cor. 6 Know ye not that the vnrighteous shal not inherit the kingdome of God Be not deceiued neither fornicators nor idolaters nor adulterers nor wantons nor buggerers nor drunkards shal inher it the kingdome of God Notwithstanding we cannot cal and account it a Sacrament for diuerse waighty reasons euident causes First it was not instituted by Christ but was from the beginning of the world and therefore it was before the law and vnder the law how can it be a Sacrament of the new Testament Againe matrimony may be among infidels and vnbeleeuers out of the Church and society of the faithfull For the matrimony of infidels is lawfull God did institute it for all mankind The commaundement is generall increase and multiply The Apole teacheth that if the vnbeleeuing woman will dwell with the beleeuing husband he must not put her away for her infidelity and mariage is honourable amonge all persons Seing therefore it was before the fall of man before the giuing of the lawe vnder the gouernement of the lawe and made honorable among all it cannot be a Sacrament of the church of Christ and for the members onely of the Church Thirdly it is not common and commaunded to all the faithfull for it is not needfull and necessary that all in the church should be married Euery one hath his proper gift some one way some another And albeit God haue not tyed grace to the sacramentes yet they in some sort are necessary for the Church and to be partaked of the children of the Church whether we respect the commaundement of God who requireth them or whether we regard our owne weakenesse who stand in neede of all holy meanes and profitable helpes that tend to the confirmation of our faith Seeing then matrimony is not commanded to al neither serueth to confirme faith it cannot be receiued as a sacrament Fourthly the sacramentes are ordinances of god aplying Christ and his merits to al the faithful but matrymony is not an instrument whereby God applyeth Christ and al his benifits much lesse is it a common instrument of the common saluation and benefites that all haue in Christ Iesus Furthermore we haue showd how the Roman church is contrary to itselfe in this point for ou aduersaries call matrimony a prophanation of holy orders And another saieth it is more tollerable for a priest to keepe many Concubins then to marry If matrimony be an holy sa how should the sacred order of your Priesthood be prophaned polluted and defiled therby Lastly it 〈◊〉 no promise of saluation ioyned to it as it ought to haue thogh it be lawfull and vsed lawfully in euery Sacra there must be likewise an outward sign or element as water in baptism and bred and wine in the Lords supper togither with a san ctisieng word to warant it but in this supposed sacra there is neither matter nor word therfore no sacra The answer that Belarmin maketh to this last reason is as absurd as their doctrin it selfe namely that the word of iustitution is take thce which are the words expressing their mutual consent and that the matter or sign are the parties maried For not euery word can consecrate sanctifie but the word of God Again the maried persons are receiuers of this pretended and supposed Sa. so that they cannot be the matter or signe For the signe and the receiuer are two distinct outward parts of a Sa so that they cannot be consounded or mingled together as besore we declared Chap 3. The matter cannot be the receiuer the receiuer cannot be the matter The thing receiued cannot be the receiuer the receiuer canot be the thing receiued If then the persons matied be the receiuers they cannot be the signe receiued If any farther obiect and say Marriage is the signe of an holy thing to wit of the spirituall coniunction between Christ and his church I answer it was not instituted to confirm our faith in that point but for other ends which we named before Besides if we should call al signs of holy things sacraments we should treble the number of 7. for so many comparisons as we find in scripture we should haue sacraments then the stars a grain of mustard seed leauen a draw-net a shepherd a Vine a dore nay a theese a murtherer and infinite other things should be Sacramentes which sometimes are made signes of holy things This were not so much to increase the number of Sacraments as to multiply absurdities Lastly the Sabbaoth was ordayned to the Iewes to be a signe between God and his people in their generations and signified the spirituall rest in Christ yet was it no ordinary sacrament albeit it were blessed and sanctified of God Wherefore al mysticall and signifieng signes are not Sacraments But the greatest reason wher of they are most confident is where the vulgar translation and the Rhemish interpretation readeth This is a great Sacrament I answer first the worde signisieth a mystery or secret but not euery mystery or secret is a sacrament neyther will they admitte a sacrament wheresoeuer a mystery is named Secondly the Apost speaketh not of Matrimony but of the spiritual coniunction betweene Christ and his church as the wordes following doe declare This is a great mystery but I speake of Christ and of the Church Where the Appostle preuenteth this verie obiection and sheweth in what respect he spake of a mystery For wher one might happilie obiect and say Doest thou call marriage this mystery he answereth I speake not this of Marriage I speake it in respect of Christ and of his church This appeareth likewise in that he calleth it a great Mystery that is A great secret But the coniunction of man and wife is sensible not secret much lesse a great secret Nowe the Sacramentes are called mysteries in respect of the sacramentall vnion between the signe and the thing signified between the representation and the thing represented so that at the same instant that one is present to the eyes the handes the mouth and euery part and member of the bodie the other by the power and working of Gods spirit is as present in a wonderfull mystical and secret manner to
spitituall priests and a spirituall priest-hood to offer vp spirituall sacrifices of praise and thanksgiuing vnto God as appeareth Reuel 1. 6. Christ hath washed vs from our sinnes in his blood and made vs kinges and priests vnto God euen his father And the Apostle Peter in his first epiftle chap. 2. saith Ye also as liuely stones be made a spirituall house an holy priest-hood to offer vp spiritual sacrisices acceptable to God by Iesus Christ. And again afterward Ye are a chosen generation a royal priest-hood an holy nation a people set at liberty that ye should shew forth the vertues of him that hath called you out of darkenesse into his marueilous light Whosoeuer bringeth in another priest-hood then this maketh new priests abolisheth as much as in him lyeth the priest-hood of Christ. Againe what will they say of offices and dignities in the Church greater then these the office of pope of cardinall of patryarch and the rest of that vnholy hierarchy Will they discharge and cut off these from being sacraments aduance the baser orders of hedge priests and dombe deacons to so high a dignity What Do they abase and disgrace those greater places and thinke their popes and cardinals not worthy of that honor and authority or do they thinke this Sacrament to vile and base to agree to those princelike dignities of the church Or dare they preferre their priest-hood their readers their decons there doore-keepers their dog-keepers and the rest of that rabble before the pope dome the cardinalship the Patryarchship Is not this high treson against their holy father petty treason against the cardinals and other of that generation Lastly Sacraments must haue an outward element and word of institutiō as hath been often declared proued but their orders haue neither outward element nor word of institution therfore orders are no sacra Seeing therfore they can shew no materiall signe added to the promise nor gratious promise added to the signe there can be no sacrament of orders to seale vp and assure any mercy of God granted vnto vs. To omit that reason which we might 〈◊〉 vpon them namely that orders are peculiar proper to the ministry and are no sanctified instrument aply any general and common grace of the Church Wherefore asmuch as orders haue neither outward signe nor promise of grace nor institution from Christ but disgrace the higher dignities of their Church and ouerthrow their owne chosen number of seauen Sacramentes we conclude necessarily from these premises that orders are no Sacrament Chap. 21. That extreame vnction is no Sacrament THe last faigned Sacrament is the last annoynting as they call it performed by the priest in extreamety where by they teach that God assureth forgiuenesse of sinnes and promiseth ease of bodily disease if it be so exped ent if not the saluation of the soule in the life to come They vse this forme of words By this holy anoynting and his most holy mercy God doth forgiue thee whatsoeuer that hast offended by seeing hearing smelling tasting and touching This vnction cannot be a sacrament for sundry causes First themselues confesse that it hath not his institution from Christ. For the Rhem'stes in their heretical Annotations vpon Mar. 6 confesse that there is onely a preparation vnto it And Peter Lumbard saith It was instituted by the Apostle Iames. By this doctrine Christ should onely be a preparer of sacraments not an appointer a beginner not a finisher of them Now these men are all accursed by the Conuenticle of Trent If any man shad say that the sacraments of the new law were not all instituted by Iesus christ let him be accursed Again the place of the Apostle Iames maketh nothing for this sorged sacrament for there is a great difference contrariety betweene the anoynting that Iames speaketh off and the popish anealing Their priestes haue not the miraculous guist of healing whereof this 〈◊〉 was an outward signe in the primitiue church which custome afterward ceased when the 〈◊〉 of healing ceased being for a time granted to the church for the credit of the Gospell As then the guist was temporall and for a reason so must the signe bee of the same standing and continuance and the gift being taken from the church if the signe should remaine in vse and practise it should be but a lieng signe For by the same reason the brooke of Siloam the poole Bethesda the clay and 〈◊〉 which were sometimes vsed in healing the diseased might be accounted sacramēts as wel as this being all signes of healing for a certaine season as also annoynting with oyle was for the first times of the church while it was in planting Thirdly the Apostle would haue al sick persons anoynted these do anoynt with their greazy oile onely such bodies as are in manner halfe dead euen while they lie in extremity and the life is striuing to come forth The Apostle would haue all the elders called but one Masle-priest only with them bringeth the box and annoynteth the sickman The Apostle assureth health to all that are thus annoynted as I am 5. The prayer of faith shall saue him that is suke and the Lord shal raise him vp So also Mark 6. They cast out many deuels and they anointed many that were sicke with oyle and healed them whereby we see that restoring and recouering of health was certainely promised to folow the anointing But not one among many receiueth health after their popish anealing The Apostle speaketh of bodily health of the guift of miracles and of common oyle they prattle of forgiuenes of sins of a common and continuall gift of charmed and consecrate oyle and balme whereof notwithstanding can none be found of bowing their knees and saluting it saving Hailholy oyle haile holie oyntment haile holy balme nay which is more blasphemous their oyle they call The oyle of saluation which is to renounce saluation by Christ and to deny the holy spirit to sanctifie the people of God Furthermore euery sacrament must haue a word of institution but the wordes which they vse in anealing are a strange saluation of a dumbe and deafe creature not warranted nor founde in scripture as the words of consecration in the true sacraments are and therefore we cannot receiue it for a sacrament but must account it an apish imitation and a popish tradition Moreouer we haue proued before chap. 8. that the element is consecrated when the sacrament is ministred by praying thanksgiuing eating and drinking deliuering and receiuing breaking and pouring out blessing and reciting the institution therfore the oyle halowed long before by the Byshop heated with breathing vpon it charmed with much murmuring saluted with bowing of the knee and other like trumperies that hallowing I say is fond superfluous and superstitious Lastly the effect and vertue of a Sacrament is spirituall grace in Christ but extreame vnction hath no spirituall grace in Christ sealed vp for the Apostle ascribeth
circumcised He had dwelt int h land of Midian an Idolatrous country 40. years he began to sauour of the manners thereof but hauing called him to be a gouernor of people would not be appeased toward him vntill he had reformed his owne house For if any cannot rule 〈◊〉 owne house how shall he care for the church of God Nowe whereas he had two sonnes borne vnto him in Midian the elder no doubt was circumcised the eight day according to the order and ordinance of God why then did he deferre the circumcising of the younger No doubt he was scorned and derided among them for circumcising his first borne and his enemies were those of his owne house euen the wife that lay in his bosome yea he being then weake in faith loued the praise of men more then the praise of God and therefore the Lord would haue slaine him Albeit the signe of circumcision seemed base and contemptible in outward shew and to sauour of great cruelty toward little children yet God woulde not suffer the deferring and neglecting thereof to goe without punishment Although grace be not tyed to the sacraments and that we may bee saued without them yet it is not left to the disposition of men whether they will come to them or not God will not haue the outward signes contemned of vs for if we will be in the couenant we must not despise the seal of the couenāt Furthermore are the outward parts vnited to the inward then this serueth as a speciall meanes to comfort the verie lowest estate of men and the poorest degree in the church that they doubt not of the fatherly fauor of God towarde them but bee assured of their acceptation with God who will make them partakers of his eternall blessinges in his kingdome as well as other whose condition is greater and higher in the world When god gaue circumcision to Abraham he commaunded him circumcise all his seruants bond or free as well borne in his house as bought with his money thereby signifying that he adopted them for his children and that albert they were Abrahams bond-men yet they were the Lords free men So vnto baptisme wee admit and receiue the poore as well as the rich the seruant as well as the maister the low as well as the high without respect of persons When the lord instituted the passeouer the lambe was eaten of all the congregation So touching the Lords supper it is an holy banket for all degrees and conditions whatsoeuer and therefore the Apostle checketh the Corinthians for this abuse that wheras the poorest soule eating of the bread and drinking of the cup is as welcome to christ the gouernor of the seast as the richest they did despise the poore and shamed them that had not All these things duly considered serue to assure the very meanest lowest and simplest in the church that they are made heires of eternall life as well as other as they are partakers of the signe with other if they beleeue with faithfull Abraham This the Apostle teacheth There is netther Iew nor Graecian there is neither bond nor free there is neither male nor female for ye are al one in Christ. And Col. 3. There is neither Graecian nor Iew circumcision nor vncircumcision Barbarian Scithian bond free but Christ is all and in all things Fourthly are there outward rites signes and persons as externall parts of baptisme And are their likewise inward parts whereby we are consecrated to God teaching that we haue vowed to renounce the lusts of the world and to forsake the workes of the deuill Then this condemneth those that depart out of the church before this holy and publike action be taken in hand Baptisme belongeth not onely to the wittnesses and parties that bring the child but to all the members of the church that we may learne by our presence therat to renew our faith and repentance vnto God These men do too much disgrace and deface the dignity of this sacrament not vouchsafing to remain at the administration therof as if it were not worthy to be solemnized before thē wheras they should quicken their faith in the couenant of god by beholding the works of the minister and ratifieng them in their harts as we read Luk. 1. wher they are said to circumcise because they were al present at the work consenting to prayers and thanks giuings of the Church as also the Apostle saith Women pray and prophesie in the church when they sit stil and are partakers of the praiers and preaching vsed in the publike assemblies And as no member is cut off by excommunication but in presence of al to be witnesses therof to ratifie their grief for the losse of a member of their body so in Baptisme it is required to witnesse and approoue the publike worke by their presence and to 〈◊〉 themselues thereby 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 and comfort hata fellow-heire is made partaker with them in the communion of Saintes Moreouer the excellency of this Sacrament is as great as of the other they are of like worthynes in themselues and to be had equal and indifferently in like price and estimation they are both commaunded and instituted by the 〈◊〉 authoritye of Christ there is the same matter and substance of both to wit Christ with all his benifits there is 〈◊〉 one and the same end of both the increase and strengthning of our faith therfore why should one Sacrament be so much extolled aboue the other and preferred before the other So that whereas many come to the Lords Supper few remaine and abide in the Church at the administration of baptisme The whole assembly heareth the word preached and deliuered by the minister the Sacramentes are instruments of our iustification by faith as well as the worde preached sauing that the word worketh by hearing only the Sacraments serue by the senses of seeing handling and tasting as well as hearing to strengthen and encrease faith in our hearts and therefore it is requisite that we ioyne in the one as well as in the other Furthermore the excellency and worthynesse of baptisme appeareth heerein in that it was instituted of God sealing vp his gratious couenant in that it was sanctified by Christ being baptized of Iohn and in that it was beautified by the heauenly reuelation of the blessed Trinity appearing thereat so great honour so great dignity and preheminence was neuer giuen to any Ceremony Did God institute it and shall we contemne it Did Iesus Christ come to Iohns baptisme and shal we disdaine to be at the baptisme of Christ Was the holy Trinity present will we be absent True it is som of the sacrifices and burnt offerings were miraculously consumed by fire from heauen but what is this to the glorious presence of the maiesty of God the blessed Trinity declaring to vs thereby that God the father God the son and God the Holy-ghost are alwaies present at
the administration of baptisme and truely performe that which is out-wardly figured and represented Heere heauen was open which for our sinnes was shut against vs heere the spirit descended in the visible forme of a doue vpon Christ to signifie vnto vs that being deliuered from the terrors of sin and iudgement we are at peace with God the voice of the father is heard from heauen saying This is my sonne in whom I am well pleased All these things note out the speciall force and dignity of this Sacrament It is not therefore to bee administred in a corner of the Church with three or foure persons present to witnesse the baptisme the rest of the body of the congregation being departed but in the face and open view thereof forasmuch as God to deliuer it from contempt hath giuen it visible markes of greater honor The Apostle saith 1 Cor. 12 Our vncomelie partes haue more comlinesse on for our comely partes neede it not but God hath tempered the body together and hath giuen more honor to that part which lacked As God hath delt with our bodies so hath he done in this sacrament That which is most subiect to contempt dishonour and disgrace God hath lifted vp with sundry excelent preheminences and prerogatiues as we haue seene in Christs baptisme And albeit there be a difference in the person baptized yet there is none in the substance of the baptisme Seeing then god so highly esteemeth of this ordinance it serueth to conuince to accuse and to condemne their carelesnesse and negligence that refuse to be present at baptisme or if they vouchsafe to bee present for a while departe before the end of the whole action and rushe out of the church before the name of God be praysed and the whole worke finished and concluded with prayer as it was Luk. 3. It came to passe as all the people were baptized and that Iesus was baptized and did pray the heauen was opened And Act. 22 Arise and be baptized and wash away thy sinnes in calling on the name of the Lord. Wherefore we are not to departe before god hath be ene prayed vnto and praysed for his benefits The Apostle chargeth that all things in the church be done in order and comelinesse Now what can be more comely and conuenient then that the Churches begin the exercises of their holy religion together and end them together Forasmuch as nothing is done in the assembly which tendeth not to the edification of the whole body Lastly if in euery true baptisme there be outward and inward parts vnited each to other then the baptisme of lohn and of Christ are in nature and substance all one Contrary to the doctrine of the Trent-councel that teacheth If any shal say that the baptisme of Iohn hath the same force with Christs baptisme let him be accursed Although it be no matter of faith nor greatly necessary in the●e daies to despute of Iohns baptisme seeing no man or woman is now baptized the rewith yet we will shew the truth of this point out of the Scriptures that they are al one in substance and effect not of any other kind nature For first Iohn preached the baptisme of repentance to remission of sins they haue therfore the same doctrine the same word the same promise the same repentance the same forgiuenesle of sinnes as they had the same outward element of water And the Apostle teacheth that there is One body one spirit one hopeof the calling one Lord one father one faith and one baptisme 2. The baptisme of Iohn was consecrated and sanctified in the person of christ for christ was baptised with the baptisme of Iohn 3. It may appeare as we wil proue Ch. 4 that Iohn 〈◊〉 in the name of the blessed trinity Fourthly neither Christ nor his Ap. rebaptized any that wer baptized by the ministry of Iohn Apollos did know onely the baptisme of Iohn he is taken instructed farder in the faith and waies of the Lord but we read not that he was baptized again 5 if Iohns baptisme were not the same with our baptisme it would follow that CHRIST was baptized with another baptisme then we are and that our baptisme was not sanctified in the person of CHRIST which taketh away our comfort and consolation that we which are the members of CHRIST haue one and the same baptisme with our head Sixtly if the baptisme of Iohn were not one with the baptisme of Christ heere by the errour of the Anabaptistes should be confirmed for such as were baptized of Iohn should be rebaptized Seuenthly the Apostles themselues should not be truely baptized for they no doubt were baptized of Iohn some of them being first his Disciples otherwise they should be vnbaptized For Christ with his owne hands baptized none as ap peareth Ioh. 4 1 2 and it is not likely that one of them baptized another yea they should baptize other into another baptisme then themselus had receiued Last of all Christ himselfe testi fieth that the baptisme ministred by Iohn pertained to the fulfilling of righteousnesse Math. 3 15 and Luke testifieth that the publicans and people being baptized of him iustified god but the Pharises dispised the counsell of god against themselues were not baptised Wherfore seeing Iohn bpatised with water in the name of the Trinity to remission of sins and that the blessed Trinity was present thereat we conclude his baptisme was the same with ours onely heerin lyeth the difference in the circumstance of time Iohn baptised in christ that should suffer death and rise againe we baptise in the name of Christ already dead and risen againe to life Against this euident truth directly confirmed Bellarmine the Iesuite taketh diuers exceptions and maketh many obiections all which stumbling blocks lying in the way wherat many stumble are to be remoued before we conclude this chapter For he reasoneth thus The baptisme of Iohn was instituted by Iohn himselfe not by Christ he was not the minister onely but the author thereof therefore it was no Sacrament at all especially of the new Testament and consequently not the same with the baptisme of christ I answer we must consider in this reason the base and vile account that the Iesuites make of Iohns baptisme they make it an idle and vaine Ceremony without fruite or force and no Sacrament or seale of heauenly grace Againe if Iohns baptisme were no Sacrament then CHRIST which receiued no other outward Baptisme receiued no Sacrament and we should be baptised with an other 〈◊〉 then Christ was Furthermore shal we heare with patience and hold our peace when these Iesuites or 〈◊〉 Iebusites 〈◊〉 enemies of the people of God belch out their 〈◊〉 and blot Iohns baptisme out of the 〈◊〉 of sacraments and admit 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 false and 〈◊〉 Sacraments of 〈◊〉 Penance Orders Matrimony and 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Lastly what intolerable boldnes or blindenesse is there in these bayards
inhritances how carefull and circumspect men are to passe them where they ought to be passed and in such courts and vnder such officers as are authorised for such purpose that there may be no error committed in the conueiance For whatsoeuer is done and passed before him that hath not his patent to warrant his practise is held to be void and frustrate by maisters of that profession In like manner it standeth vs all vppon when a matter of an higher nature and of greater importance is in hand then the sealing and assuring of temporall possessions to looke carefully to the diligent performance of this speciall duty that the signing of our infants and sealing them in the couenant be made by the hands of such officers as are appointed by God for that purpose and by no other Thirdly this condemneth the abuse and prophanation of the Sactament of baptisme in the church of Rome where women midwiues and priuate persons without any commaundement of God nay contrary to his word take vpon them this part of the ministers office to baptize children which they haue receiued from the 〈◊〉 Marcion who gaue women power to baptize which Epiphanius teacheth the holy mother of Christ was not permitted to do Such then as vsurp this calling and approue thereof neuer knew the force of our adoption in Christ nor the strength of the couenant nor that the elect are saued by the good pleasure and will of God Therfore there is not that absolute necessity of baptisme to saluation which many suppose that for this supposed necessity the ordinance of God should be broken and prophaned And a man may maruell why at such times they did not rather commit the mater to priuate men to baptize then to woman whose sexe is surther remoued from execution of this office not onely because they be vncalled and priuate men but euen because they' are women and thereby are wholly vncapable though otherwise qualified of any publike charge or function in the church they are commaunded to sit stil and to be quiet Besides if in time of this extreamety and necessity which is imagened it be permitted them to minister baptisme why should it not be suffered in like necessity and danger of death that they minister the Lords Supper and preach the Gospell in case they be able and men vnable or vnwilling the dignity of the one Sacrament being no lesse then the other and the excellency of the word being as great as of them both If then women may iustly be condemned when they shal presume to sit down in the chaire of Moses or to minister the Supper of the Lord they cannot be iustified if they vsurp to minister baptisme For shall we make a shamefull and double diuorcement of those things that God hath coupled betweene the word and sacraments and likewise betweene the one Sacrament and the other This is to great contumely and contempt offered to baptisme to allow it in those that may neither publikely preach nor lawfully minister the Lords Supper seeing their warrant to practise the one is no greater then to do the other Wherefore let all priuate persous and midwiues consider with the mselues the fearefull examples recorded in the Scipture of such as haue rashly presumed to prophane the holy offices of the church and how God hath often visited this great sin with grieuous iudgments sometimes with fire from heauen sometimes the earth opening her mouth sometimes with suddaine death and sometimes with the most filthy disease of the Leprosie whereby as by his voice from heauen he thundered downe vpon mens disobedience and so ratifieth this law of the necessity of a vocation 〈◊〉 calling for euer Corah Dathan and Abiram taking vpon them the priest-hood without a calling fire from heauen came downe consuming Corah and his company the earth also opened and couered Dathan and Abiram that they were swallowed vp aliue none of them died the common visitation of other men but God wroght a strange worke vpon them and altered the course of nature which ought to be a parpetuall instruction and direction vnto vs to teach vs not to peruert or euert that order which God hath established to continue in his church Hitherto belongeth that which is writen of Vzzah who was smitten with suddaine and vnexpected death only for that beyond the bounds of his calling he put forth his hand to hold vp the Arke which did shake and was ready to fal which was lawfull for the Leuites onely to meddle withal although his intent and purpose wer neuer so good so that if the vnlawful intruders vpon baptisme pretend cases of necessity heere seemed as great a necessity yea his mind and meaning was as good as theirs yet it displeased god because it was done without his word and warrant So Azariah was striken with Leprosie that he was a Leaper to the day of his death for that not being content with his kingly office he would take vpon him the priests office to burn incense vnto the Lord. These worthy examples of gods most feuere iudgements executed vpon the breakers of this ordinance ought to strike such a fear into our harts that we suffer not the sacred functions and offices of the church to be prophaned and to teach vs that euery one meddle only with the approued duties of his own calling And although God do not now thus execute iudgement from heauen and work strange things in the earth in extraordinary manner when his ordinances are broken yet the sin is not therby lessened nor the punishmēt mitagated nor the hand of God shortned but stretched out still though iudgement according to desert be deferred my rather the greater wrath is reserued for his aduersaries to the great day of account when al flesh shal appear before the throne of his glorious presence For if the prophaners of the sign 〈◊〉 sacraments of the old testament did not escape but were thus sharpely and seuerely punished our sacraments established by the lord Iesus are not of lesse value 〈◊〉 worthines so that the contempt of thē shal be visited with sorer iudgments And if god did strike with his reuenging hand priuatemen when they sinned in a abusing the sacramentes and spared not kings in the pride of their hearts how should women standing a degree 〈◊〉 off and barred from the office by a stronger bolt enter into the house at a window and not be accounted as theeues and robbers So that we conclude that the necessity of a calling is as great as the necessity of baptisme And thus much of the first outward part of baptisme namely the minister Chap. 4. Of the second outward part of baptisme THe second outward part of baptisme is the word of institution which is as the forme of the Sacrament as Eph. 2 26. Christ loued the church and gaue himselfe for it that he might sanctifie it and clense it by the washing of water through the word
other If then any should baptize otherwise then in the name of the Trinity or should name the sonne to be vnequall to the father or should deny the proceeding of the Holy-ghost or should baptize in the name of the Virgin Mary and the Saints this cannot be the Sacrament of baptisme instituted by Christ but a Ceremony made voide and frustrate by our owne inuentions Chap. 5. Of the third outward part of baptisme THe third outward part of baptisme is the element of water which is the matter whereof baptisme consisteth This truth is taught in diuerse places of the new testament Indeeds I baptize with water And Ioh. 1 because he should bee declared to Israell therefore am I come baptizing with water Knew him not but he that sent me to baptize with water he saide vnto me vpon whom thou shalt see the spirit come 〈◊〉 and tarrie still on him that is he which baptizeth with the Holy-ghost So Act. 8 36. As they went on their way they came vnto a 〈◊〉 ater and the Enuruch said See heere is water what doth let me to be baptized then he commaunded the chariot to stand stil and they went downe both vnto the water both Phillip and the Eunuch and he baptized him And chap. 10. Can anie man forbidde water that these should not be baptized which haue receiued the Holy-ghost as well as we Nothing is so apt to set sorth the blood of christ and his merits as water which is sit to clense and wash and leaueth no filth behind vpon the body by which outwarde worke Christ would haue vs feele the inward purging and purifying of the soule The vse of this outward part is three-fold First it teacheth that the minister may not baptize with any other liquor and element then with naturall common and ordinarie water whereunto answere the flood the red sea and the Iewish purifyings vnder the law The curious questions whether wanting water we may baptise with sande or water distilled and compounded came at the first from the dangerous and bloody opinion that they are damned which die vnbaptised If any demaund whether sweet waters and distilled may be taken and vsed or mingled with common water especially when children of such as are in high place are to be baptised sealed into the couenant therby to note a difference betweene person and person forasmuch as god hath listed vp the head of one aboue another I answere all power is indeede of god and we with hart and tongue do giue honour to whome honour pertaineth and feare to whome feare belongeth Notwithstanding all mixture of the water is mans inuention and an human tradition which in GODS woorshippe is not to be admitted Whatsoeuer is mingled with common Water is a corruption whatsoeuer the partie be that is baptised The Apostle teacheth that the church hath all one baptisme not one manner of baptizinge the poore and another of baptizing the rich Besides why might wee not allowe mixture of water with Wine in the Lordes supper as well as the mixture of compound water with common water in the sacrament of baptisme Furthermore if there might lawfully bee admitted a different manner of baptising the children of rich-men and the children of poore men then in the other Sacrament the like distinction might be receiued and so a finer kinde of breade be prouided for the richer sort by themselues and a courser sort for the poore by themselues which seperation the Apostle reproueth in the church of 〈◊〉 and calleth it a despising of the Church and a shaming of the poore For in the exercises of religion there ought to be no difference of persons for all are one in Christ Iesus and therefore the Noble Eunuch mentioned Act 8. was baptised by Phillip with ordinary water Now if no composition may be mingled then much lesse may any other signe be vsed and so the element clean chaunged and the ordinance of God altred for the church of God hath no liberty to bring any other signe in place of water If a man were baptised with sande with bloude with wine with milke with snowe with oyle and such lickor it is no baptisme at all but a meere voide and ydle action such a person must afterwarde be sprinkled or washed with water not that any should be rebaptized but because all persons should be once baptised the former action being meerely frustrate Although the forme of words be retained in the administration which our sauiour commandeth and the body be washed in the name of the three persons the father the sonne and the Holy-ghost yet if such an errour be committed in the matter that the signe be changed and another foysted in contrary to the precept of Christ and practise of the Apostles ther is a nullitie of the whole work the partie be-sanded or be-bloodied or oyled is erroneously and vnlawfully not truely and effectuallye baptised Nadab and Abihu are smitten with lightning from heauen for bringing strange fire into the tabernacle whereas they should haue taken of that fire which GOD had appointed though other fire would as well haue consumed the offering And are not all other elementes as strange fire that are brought into this sacrament beside water Or haue we greater liberty to change Gods ordinaunces in the gospell then the Iewes had vnder the Law When GOD appointed the burnt offering to be offered and commanded the people to bring either bullocks out of the heard either Sheepe or Goates out of the folde either Turtle-doues or young Pigeons from amonge the birds being thus limited and restrained might they bring an Asse or an Elephant or a Camell unto him might they cut osf a dogges necke or offer swines flesh before the Lord So whereas God hath ordained the sacrament of baptisme to be administred and hath willed it to bee done with water most common most vsuall most plentifull most fit most significant shall we take sand or saw-dust oyle or other element then god hath allowed The Lorde likewise threatning a generall dearth of Corne Wine and Oyle of which things many of their offeringes and oblations consisted sheweth that the priestes shoulde Weepe and waile because the Meat-offerings and Drinke-offeringes should cease But what neede was there either that the priests shoulde haue lamented or the offeringes haue ceased if they might haue vsed other elementes other signes or other matter then GOD approoued If they might haue taken water in steed of wine or Milke in stead of oyle Or if they might haue taken vncleane beastes in stead of cleane Or the Fishes of the Sea in steade of the Beastes of the fielde Or creeping thinges for their Offerings in steed of such as chewe the cudde and diuide the hoofe Nowe howe can it bee better Warraunted to vs to take oyle for Water then it was for them to take Water for oyle Againe heereby all Popish corruptions and mixtures brought into this
Sacrament are confuted and condemned as their creame their tapers their crosses their censors their salt their spittle their holy-water their exorcisinges and conjurations hauing also an opinion of saluation and worshippe annexed vnto them These men as if it were a base and contemptible thing to baptize with Water onely according to Christes commaundement haue brought in a new word and new elements 〈◊〉 that is new drosse and new filth into the church and into the sacraments of the church as salt that we may bee seasoned with wisedome and bee kept from purrifying in sinne oyle that we may bee safe from euill suggestions spittle that our eares may be opeto heare the word and our Nostrils to discerne the smell of good and euill crosses that all our sences may bee defended against the euill spirit True it is if all the other partes and actions be obserued these inuentions and additions which are so many abuses make not baptisme void neither bring a nullity therof notwithstanding these beggerly ceremonies as they are destitute of the testimony and aprobation of the first and auncient Churches so they corrupt the pure simple and sincere institution of Christ None were vsed when Christe was baptised neither gaue he any such thinge in charge to his Apostles neither were they in vse in the Apostles times neither did they deliuer them to the pastors and teachers which they ordained in euery citty For Peter saith Can anie man forbidde water that these should not be baptized Hee calleth not for oyle salt spittle creame or any such thinge but only for plaine common and ordinary water Thus in one sacra they find many sacraments and inuent tipes shadows similitudes and significations in the immediate seruice of God wheras we haue the body itselfe that is christ alredy They make these outward things able to giue grace power and strength against the deuill But the Apostle teacheth that the weapons of our warfare are not carnal they are spiritual that must defend vs from euill If they refer al this trash and trumpery not to the substance of the sacram but to order and comelinesse do they not thereby blasphemously accuse the baptisme of Iohn and of the Apostles of Christ of vncomlinesse and disorder Whereas the comlinesse and dignity of the sacraments is to be esteemed by the word of God by the institution of christ by the simplicity of the gospel and by the 〈◊〉 of the Apostles Nothing is more comely decent and orderly then that which christ commaundeth and aloweth nothing is more vncomly or vnseemely then that which man inuenteth in the seruice of God and in the celebration of the Sacraments thereby inuerting and peruerting the holy ordinances of God Thirdly if washing with water be an outward part of baptisme which pertaineth to the flesh but teacheth not to the conscience which toucheth the body but clenseth not the soule then the bare want of externall purification cannot bring the danger of eternal condemnation Wherefore children dying without baptisme are not reiected because they want baptisme for children that are elected are saued though they dy before baptisme and they that are not elected are condemned though they be baptized For it is not the want but the continual contempt thereof that is damnable Circumcision was as necessary to the Iewes as baptisme is vnto vs. But all did not perish that died vncircumcised therefore all perish not that dy vnbaptized And if the saluation of the child did depend vpon the outward sacrament it had beene an hard thing in the Lord who wil not the death of a sinner to haue required the deferring of it one weeke one day one houre one minute We see in Ioshuae it was omitted 40. yeares while they were in the wildernesse through their continuall iournies and vncertaine abode in euery place yet it were an hard cruell and bloody conclusion to determine thereupon that whosoeuer among them during that time dying before he was circumcised was damned When Dauids child died the seuenth day which was before he could be circumcised circumcision being limited to the 8. day he did not cry out pittifully it is damned it is damned but arose from the earth washed himselfe anointed his bodie chaunged his apparrell refreshed himselfe cheared his wife came into the house of the Lord worshipped God praised him for al his doings made his seruants that attended on him wonder at his comfortable behauiour and said he should go to his child but not his child return to him againe But if he had thought all condemned that die vncircumcised his lamentation would haue exceeded for he had cause to haue sorrowed more after his death then he did in the childes sicknes and if circumcision had bene of such absolute necessity he might haue said The child being now dead why should I not fast why should I not weepe why shoulde I not afflict my soule seeing I cannot bring him againe or restore him to life to be circumcised But because he sorrowed not as one without hope and hee 〈◊〉 not on this or any like manner it appeareth that his faith apprehended the saluation of the childe and feared not his damnation through vntimely want of the outward sacrament Now God is not streighter and harder to vs vnder the gospell then he was to the Israelites vnder the law he is no lesse able and willing to saue now without baptisme then in those dayes he was without circumcision Againe how foolish vaine and vnreasonable a thing is it to put life and death saluation and damnation into the hands and libertie of mortall men as of the parents that shoulde bring them or of the minister that shoulde baptize them or of others that performe other duties vnto them whereas eternall life and saluation standeth sure and setled vpon the brazen pillar of Gods election who knoweth who are his and vpon his mercifull promise in his couenant and not vppon the lust and pleasure of any man as we see in the example of Iacob of whom God saide I haue loued him before he was circumcised nay before he was born or had done either good or euill Furthermore we haue shewed before that many beleeued repented and had the Holy-ghost before they were baptized Yea the theefe vppon the crosse repented of his sins and beleeued in Christ yet was neuer baptised notwithstanding he was receiued to mercy and certainely saued as Christ saith This day shalt thou be with me in Paradice Besides there is no greater necessity of baptisme then of the Lordes supper but we maie be saued without the Lords supper therefore also without baptisme Lastly if al persons dying without baptism bee condemned then infinite multitudes of children shold or may perish and be damnd without their owne fault through the carelesnes of others but none perish without their owne fault therefore all dying without baptisme are not condemnd To these we might 〈◊〉 the testimony and
partakers of the sacrament with the faithfull seeing they are enrolled in the fellowship of the faithfull And who shall depriue them of the seale of the couenant seeing they are partakers of regeneration and remission of sinnes Heereupon thus we reason whosoeuer are in the couenant and Church of GOD to them belongeth baptisme which is the seale of the couenant but infants are in the couenant and of the Church therefore to them belongeth baptisme which is the seale of the couenant Againe to whome the promise appertaineth they may and ought to bee baptized but the promise was made euen to infants therefore they may and ought to be baptised Furthermore to whome forgiuenes of sinnes and the Holy-ghost are promised and giuen they ought by no meanes to bee denied the outwarde signe but forgiuenesse of sinnes and the Holy-ghost are promised to infantes and giuen vnto them therefore infantes ought not to bee kept from the element of Water no more then such as are of yeares of discretion Thus much of the first point putting children into the right and possession of Baptisme as if it were the right heires into their inheritance from which they haue bene wrongfully and vniuftly dispossessed Hauing now sufficiently prooued by the scripture that children are to bee baptized it remaineth that wee shoulde maintaine this assertion against the cauils of the Anabaptists For as the former reasons grounded vppon the euident demonstration of the worde as vppon a pillar that cannot be shaken may perswade vs to embrace the truth so the weakenes and sophistry which appeareth in the Obiections of the aduersaries ferueth to confirme vs in this perswasion But let vs examine what is the strength of them First they obiect it was neuer cōmanded that infants shold be baptized I answer vnblamable examples and practises not contradicted are in the nature of precepts Againe the will of God approuing and appointing childrens baptisme appeareth in that it came in place of vncircumcision Baptisme is our circumcision Besides we haue a generall commaundement Go teach all nations and baptize them And the Apostle saith all were baptized in the cloud and in the sea Christ saith al nations the Apostles saith all the Israelites let them shew where infants are excepted and exempted for wee hold this as a certaine principle that a generall commaundement includeth the particular and comprehendeth the same vnder it as well as if it were by name expresled Secondly they obiect if infants may be baptised then they may be admitted to the Lords supper for why should not the supper be giuen to the whole church as well as baptisine I answere there is not the like reason and respect of both There is great difference betweene these two sacraments For baptisme is a signe of our entrance and receiuing into the church so that the Supper is to be granted to none but to such as are baptised and are fit to beare strong meat being instituted for our confirmation and sealing vnto vs that God hauing once receiued vs into the church will also euermore preserue vs in it that we neuer fall from it nor forsake it and will nourish and cherish vs by the body and blood of Christ. Wherefore the Lord Iesus to shew that his Supper was not for children but for men would not administer it in the element of milke which is for infants and for new borne Babes but in bread and wine which are for stronge men that are of age Againe sundry conditions and considerations are required in the supper which debar young infants that although they are to be baptized yet they ought not to be admitted to the Lords supper seeing by their young yeares they are excluded For it is required of all those that come to this supper to shew foorth the Lords death to discerne the body and blood of Christ and try themselues whether they haue faith and repentance But infants cannot doe these thinges they cannot shew foorth the Lordes death they are not apt to discerne his body and blood they are not able to examine themselues and therefore infants for good causes are excluded from this Supper Thirdly they obiect that it is said Teach and baptize and again He that shall beleeue and be baptized shall be saued where vpon they conclude that such as beleeue not are not to be baptized inasmuch as Christ before baptisme commaundeth teaching and afterward ioyneth baptizing with beleeuing But infants are not capable of doctrine neither do they actually beleeue therefore they are not to be baptized Again if repentance be necessarily ioyned as Act. 2 Amend your liues and be baptized then infants must be separated and secluded who cannot repent But repentance is necessarily required therefore infants are to be barred from the sacrament of baptisme I answere first those sentences are not generall to all but belong onely to men of sufficient yeares and discretion to discerne betweene good and euill By this fraud of extending stretching and falsely applying generall sentences of Scripture a man might reare and raise many monstrous conclusions If a mā would go about to proue that children are not to be nourished and sed with coporall foode because the Aposte would haue none to eate but such as labour were he not worthy to be spitted at or hissed out of the schools because he carrieth that indifferently to all ages which is limited and restrained to a certaine age So must we not rack and rent asunder the generall sentences of scripture Except ye repent ye shall al perish faith commeth by hearing hearing by the word of God he that beleeueth and is baptized shal be saued These belong onely to men of discretion and are not to be applyed to infants whom they do not concerne Againe Christ in those words instructeth his Apostles what order they should obserue in the conuersion of the Gentiles first they must instruct them in faith then baptize them being instrued and lastly guide them in true obedience being instructed when he addeth Teaching them to obserue what soeuer I haue commaunded you Besides if they strictly vrge and stifly stand vpon the wordes as they literally lye in order why may we not first baptize them before wee teach them because it is said baptizing them in the name of the Trinity and teaching them to obserue what I commannd But hee intreateth in this place of such as are growne vppe which must first haue knowledge in the gospell faith in Christ and repentance from dead workes before they bee baptized but infants are baptized by reason of the promise made to their parentes Moreouer we might oppose vnto these the example of circumcision which we know and they are not ignorant was giuen to infantes who could not yet beleeue so that such as bar them from baptisme because they are not capable of faith and repentance might in like manner exclude the infants of the Isralites from circumcision Baptisme
sunder the corrupt heresie of the Anabaptistes then the wooden dagger of humaine tradition which the church of Rome draweth out against them The Scripture is all sufficient to proue all truth and to beate downe all false doctrin that lifteth vp it selfe against God Wherefore we hold their traditions to be superstitions their vnwritten 〈◊〉 are written lies As we retaine the baptisme of children so wee haue alwaies beene ready to maintaine it by the old and new testament as by the sword of the spirit against all the aduersaries thereof Secondly let vs learne from hence 〈◊〉 acknowledge a difference betweene 〈◊〉 and the Lords supper For in baptizing of children 〈◊〉 faith not 〈◊〉 not regeneration is required but onely to bee borne in the couenant but the supper of the Lord requireth knowledge discerning trying and examining of our selues which are not required neither can be performed of young children who know not light from darkenesse nor good from euill Thirdly if infants haue interest in baptisme then hence it floweth that all are conceiued and borne in originall sin and whatsoeuer is of the flesh is flesh So the apostle saith As in Adam all dy euen so in Christ shall all be made aliue There is no difference all haue sinned and are depriued of the glorious kingdome of God we must be iustified freely by his grace through the redemption that is in christ Iesus by nature all are the children of wrath and borne dead in sins and trespasses infants not excepted We learne therfore that whatsoeuer is begotten of man is sinfull and corrupt it must be cut and pared away we must be renewed and borne again by the spirit of God clensing vs from our sins yea the children of the faithfull parents whose corruptions are mortified whose lustes are subdued whose flesh is tamed and brought vnder the obedience of the will of God are notwithstanding brought forth in sin because they are born by carnall generation and not by spirituall regeneration as corne winnowed from the chaffe yet groweth vp againe with it and as the foreskin cut off from the parents recurneth in the child Again haue infants of the faithful right to be baptized Then acknowledge heereby the difference betweene them and the children of infidels Iewes Pagans and Turkes As the children of the Iewes being heires of the couenant were separated distinguished from other children of the wicked Idolatrous nations and were therefore accounted the holy seed so for the same cause and reason the children of christians are called holy borne of either party and parent being faithful and a beleeuer and do differ from the prophane seede of idolatrous people Indeede whosoeuer maketh a true profession of the faith which he holdeth and is ready to lead his life according to that confession though he be not the seede 〈◊〉 child of the faithful yet is to bee baptized though hee came of the race of Turks or pagan●s as appeareth by the speach of Phillip to the Eunuch If thou beleeuest thou maiest Thus we see that the childrē of those that professe the faith belong to the church of God the children of Pagans belong not to the church of God loe how great a difference there is betweene them Heerby then the children of the faithfull are discerned and distinguished from the prophane multitude of Atheists Epicures Libertines Arrians Anabaptistes Turkes Sarazens Persians and other barbarous nations which are without christ without hope without God in the world wheras the holy seede of all the faithfull belong to the church of God and are reckoned in the company of the church For this cause the Apostle calleth the whole posterity of Abraham holy that is consecrated and halowed to God If the roote be holy the branches are also holy Not that the children of the faithfull do want originall sinne or that they gather any actuall holinesse or inherent righteousnesse by carnall generation and propagation from their parents but because by benefit of the couenant of God and by force of his gratious promise they are separated from prophane infidels and brought into the bosome of the church as Noah was into the Arke Fiftly this doctrine setteth forth the honor and glory of God For is not God greatly glorified when he sheweth himselfe true in his promises and hath mercy vpon the faithfull for a thousand generations And is not occasion offered to vs continually to glorifie him Can we deserue that God should be our God Nay do we not deserue that hee should not be our god And yet behold he will be the God of our children also Let vs therfore neuer forget his mercies let vs fil our mouthes or rather our heartes with his praises let vs confesse before the Lorde his louing kindnesse and his wonderfull workes before the sonnes of men Sixtly all parents are heereby wonderfully comforted they haue their faith strengthened and are confirmed in the loue of GOD when they see themselues so beloued of GOD that it descendeth and floweth euen to their Children as they are assured by this visible signe This is that worthye and wonderfull promise which wee must receiue by faith I will be thy God and the God of thy seed after thee I will establish my couenant betweene me and thee and thy seed after thee A sentence to be written not onely in Golde but in the tables of our hearts to dwell with vs for euer When we must leaue the worlde and our families in poore estate behind vs and go vnto the father let vs not be dismayed discoraged or discomfited this is the stay of our hope this is the staffe of our cófort this is our Anker-hold that he wil not shut vp his mercy towarde our children but be a gracious God to them as he hath bene to ourselues so that wee may assuredly say vnto them with faithfull Abraham My sonne God will prouide Let vs be content with those things that we haue for he hath saide I will not 〈◊〉 thee neither for sake thee so that we may boldly say The Lord is my helper neither will I feare what man can do vnto me Godlines is great gaine and he that is truely godly is truely rich He that hath Christ hath all things he that wanteth him wanteth all things Heauen and earth are the Lords all the gold and siluer are his who hath promised to be an husbande to the Widdow eyes to the blind a couering to the naked a father to the fatherlesse and he will not forget his kindenesse towards vs for euer Wherefore let vs lift vp our hands and our harts which hang downe let vs strengthen our weake knees and make straight steps vnto our feet God is able to worke contentednes in all his seruants whose power is best seene in our weakenes 〈◊〉 whose glorie shineth brightest in our greatest wants Remember what the prophet saith Psal 37 25 I am young and now am olde
made vs Kings and Priestes vnto GOD euen his father And Col. 1 14 the A postle saith In him wee haue redemption by his bloode that is forgiuenesse of sinnes Againe when wee see with our bodily eyes the Water poured vpon the body of the baptized we must behold and consider with the eyes of faith the blotting out of all our sinnes as well originall as actuall as well after baptisme as before baptisme by the pretious blood of Christ that wee may assure our selues it is no idle action For wee must not behold the Sacramentall rites as certaine dombe gestures or stage-like shewes without substance and signification but wee must make them serue to further our faith and edification Lastly it teacheth vs not to be led by the outward senses to measure the truth or to iudge of the substance of baptilme by the outward signe and visible partes but to haue our faith fixed on Christ crucified on the Crosse and signified in baptisme The infidell seeing children solemnely baptized in the name of the father of the sonne and of the Holy-ghost will rashly and ignorantly coniesture nothing to bee there but naked rites and bare Water but the faithfull and true Christian doth beholde the washing of the soule and clensing of the heart by the dearest blood of Christ. So in the Lordes Supper to the vnbeleeuer appeareth nothing but Bread and Wine because we see with our eies wee receiue 〈◊〉 our handes wee tast with our mouth no more but the beleeuer knoweth that together with these signes GOD the father offereth the body and blood of his Sonne to bee spiritually receiued and digested Euen as he that is vnlettered and vnlearned if hee looke vpon the face of a booke beholdeth onely blacke coulours and spottes vppon the Paper seeth certaine figures and charusters of Letters differing each from other but cannot read the writing or comprehende the meaning but hee that hath learned his Letters and is able to reade them reapeth greate profit and instruction thereby So is it in the 〈◊〉 Hee that resteth in the outward signe deceiueth himselfe but hee that respecteth the thinge signified receiueth the profit and aduantage The Crosse of CHRIST and preaching of the Gospell are a stumbling blocke to the Iewes and foolishnesse to the Gracians For the infidell hearing that christ was crucified and nailed vpon the crosse is offended at him accounting it a foolish weak means to saue mankind that life should spring out of death glory come out of shame power proceed out of weakenesse and triumphant victory arise out of his contemptible sufferings but the faithfull soule acknowledgeth in this mystery of Godlinesle the high hand and vnsearchable wisedome of God It may seeme ridiculous vnto some men that God should require circumcision of Abraham and of his houshold young and old bond and free maister and seruants to vncouer all their shames and to open the hidden partes of nature yet Abraham submitttd himselfe to the ordinance of God Naamaen the Syrian thought it a toyish precept prescript when he was bidden to wash himselfe 7. times in Iordin hauing many riuers in his owne countrey as good as that yet by obeying the prophet he was clensed of his Leprosie The inhabitants of Iericho scorned Ioshua and the men of Israell when they saw them compasse their Citty strong and walled and to blow with their Rammes hornes yet by this weake meanes the wall fel downe the enemies were destroyed the citty was sacked and the people of God 〈◊〉 Christ seeing a blinde man and willing to heale him he spat on the ground and made clay of spittle and annoynted the eies of the blinde with the clay and said vnto him Go wash in the poole of Siloam he obeyed he went he washed he returned seeing Thus doth God by simple base and weake things oftentimes confound the mighty strong and wise of the world that no flesh should reioyce in his presence and crosseth all the high conceites and proud imaginations of mans wil and wit Wherefore we must not follow our owne vnderstanding nor measure the matters of God by the crooked rule of our carnall reason Whosoeuer will yeald obedience to God must deny himselfe and renounce his own wisedome and become a foole that he may be wise in God as 1 cor 3 Let no man deceiue himselfe if any man among you seeme to bec wise in this world let him be a foole that he may be wise for the wisedome of this world is foolishnesse with God Thus we see that in the Sacramentes we must vnderstand more then we see and beleeue more then we can behold Such 〈◊〉 are without knowledge and faith 〈◊〉 no more of baptisme then the bodily eie directeth them vnto but the faithfull conceiue the blood of Christ to be offered to 〈◊〉 the soule and conscience from all sinn as the riuer watered the garden of Eden Chap. 11. Of the foruth inward part of baptisme THe last inward part of baptisme is the soule clensed most liuely represented by the body that is washed For as the outward receiuer giueth his body to be washed so the saithfull receiuer doth consecrate himselfe to God with ioy and forsake the flesh the world and the diuill and feeleth the inward washing of the spirit as Tit. 3 5 According to his mercy he saued vs by the washing of the new birth and the renewing of the Holy-ghost And the same Apostle Eph. 5. Christ gaue himselfe for the church that he might sanctifie it and clense it by washing of water through the word that he might make it vnto himselfe a glorious church not hauing spot or wrinkle Wherefore this outward washing of the body commaunded by Christ fignifieth vnto me that I am no lesse assuredly clensed in his blood by the working of his spirit from the spottes of my soule that is from all my sinnes then I am outwardlie washed by water whereby the staines of the body vse to be washed away and it bindeth vs that we ought euer afterward by our workes and deeds to declare newnes of life and fruites of repentance Let vs now come to the vses of this last part of baptisme Doth the washing of the body represent the clensing of the soule And doth the soking vp of the filthines of the flesh signifie the remouing of the remnants of rebellion Then we are all by nature vnwise vncleane 〈◊〉 vnregerate vnholy disobedient disordered deceiuing and being deceiued we are the vessels of wrath the children of death the bond-slaues of Sathan the heires of damnation we haue our part and portion in the offence of Adam as Rom. 5. By one man sinne entred into the world and ch 7. I see another law in my members rebelling against the law of my minde and leading me captiue vnto the law of sinne which is in my members O wretched man that I am who shall deliuer me from the body of
at the doore life and saluation are absent so that we are neuer partakers of his graces except webe as neerly coupled to his humanity as meat and drink are coupled with our body which of al other is a most neer vnion and inward coniunction Thus we see we are seuered from the world to haue fellowshippe with CHRIST and are set once in him for euer because he that commeth to CHRIST once he casteth him not away hee shall neuer hunger he shall neuer thirst he shall not be lost but hue for euer as the Apostle saith If they had been of vs doubtles they had continued with vs And paule to this purpose saith Rom. 8 Who shal lay any thing to the charg of GODS chosen it is GOD that instifieth who shall condemne Who shal seperate vs from the loue of CHRIST shal tribulation or anguish or persecution or famine or nakednes or perill or sword in all the se we are more then conquerours through him that loued vs for I am perswaded that neither death nor life nor Angels nor principalities nor powers nor things present nor thinges to come nor height nor depth nor any other creature shall be able to seperate vs from the loue of GOD which is in CHRIST IESVS our LORDE If once wee bee ioyned to him in spirituall Marriage notwithstanding the difference and disparagement between him and vs nothing shall bee able to worke our deuorcement from him True it is God 〈◊〉 vs wallowing in our owne filthines polluted in our owne bloode defiled by our owne vncleannes he hath made an eternall couenant with vs he hath spoken peace vnto oursoules saying Thou shalt liue euen when wee were sunke downe in sinne to death hee saide vnto vs Thou shalt liue so that he will neuer turne from vs to do vs good but we shall be his people and he will be our God he will giue vs one hart and one way that wee may feare him for euer and that it may be well with vs and with our children This made the Apostle to write Ephe. 5. 30. 32. Wee are members of his bodie of his flesh and of his bones this is a great misterie but I speake concerning christ and concerning the church Where he seemeth to allude to the first creation of the Woman made of one of the ribs of the man shadowing and 〈◊〉 our knitting and coniunction with Christe which we haue by faith not by nature by vertue of the spirit not of the flesh Now as we haue shewed that this coniunction made by Gods spirit and by our faith which he hath giuen so the meanes and instruments to worke it are the word and sacraments This is a dignity peculiar and proper to the elect to haue perpetuall fellowshippe with Christ and to growe vp into one body with him as he teacheth Iohn 17 20. 21. I pray for all them which shall beleeue in me through theyr word that they all may be one as thou O father art in me and I in thee euen that they may be one with vs that the world may beleeue that thou hast sent me If then there be not an vnion betweene Christ and vs we haue no accesse to God the father being quite cutte off from all hope of life and sa'uation As then all the substaunce and nourishment of the tree commeth from the roote and all the vitall powers of a true naturall body come from the head so it is betweene the sonne of God and vs we haue not so much as one drop of the heauenly life in vs of our selves CHRIST is the waye the truth and the life no man commeth vnto the father but by him To conclude this first vse seeing such as come to this sacrament must be christians before it appeareth to be a very corrupt custome of the people when they require Baptisme of the pastor for their children to say God hath giuen me a Pagan I desire you to make him a Christian. For Baptisme cannot make a Christian but signifie the Sacraments cannot make that which is not but assure that which is already made as seales do not giue the right but confirme it Thus much of the first vse of Baptisme the second followeth Chap. 13. Of the second vse of baptisme BEing made one with Christ we are partakers of the 〈◊〉 of his death to wit of forgiuenes of sinnes and of regeneration or new birth So then the second vse of Baptisme is to assure vs of the remission and pardon of our sinnes that we may be vnblamable and acceptable to god This is signified by the outward ceremony of washing and sprinkling to wit the sprinkling of our soules with the blood of Christ for the forgiuenes of all sinnes as appeareth Act. 2 38 Then Peter said vnto them Amend your liues and be baptized euerie one of you in the name of Iesus Christ for remission of sins And Act. 22 Ananias said vnto Paul immediately after his conuersion Arise and be baptized and wash away thy sinnes in calling on the name of the Lorde So the Euangelist witnesses Marke 1 4. that Iohn did baptize in the wildernesse and preach the Baptisme of amendment of life for the remission of sinnes And the Apostle maketh this vse col 2 12 13. Ye are buried with him through Baptisme in whome ye are also raised vppe together through the faith of the operation of GOD which raised him vp from the dead and you which are deade in sinnes and in the vncircumcision of your flesh hath hee quickned together with him forgiuing you all your trespasses The meaning of these places is not that baptisme bestoweth or giueth forgiuenesse but onely signeth sealeth and assureth our pardon euen as remistion of sins and the righte ousnesse of faith were not in the old Testament by circumcision conferred but confirmed vnto the faithfull The grace of pardon and forgiuenesse of sinnes is not attained but by faith in Christ so that the worke of baptisme will not effect it Moreouer we haue proued that it is not lawfull to baptize such as are in yeares vnlesse they make open profession of their faith in Christ and repentance from the workes of the olde man wherefore they obtaine them not by the outward washing with water in baptisme So then we are no lesse assuredly washed by the blood of Christ from the spots of our soules then outwardly we are washed with water from the filth of the body For the force of his death hath that effectuall working in clensing our soules from the corruption and filthines of sinne which naturall water hath in washing our bodies By the merit of his death we haue full forgiueneste of all our sinnes not onely originall but actuall not onely past but present and to come whose blood is neuer drawne dry but is euer fresh and full of efficacy Therefore the wordes deliuered by the minister in baptisme at the commaundement of christ namely I baptize thee in the
christ is a couenaunt wherin god promiseth his loue and 〈◊〉 for euer to come vpon all that beleeue in his son assuring them of remission of sinnes and eternall life requiring of them onely faith in him as Iohn 3. God so loued the worlde that be gaue his onely begotten sonne that such as beleeue in him should not perish but liue for euer Againe if this sacrament sealing vppe the new couenant between God and man haue the name and nature of a wil or testament then it serueth to condemne the church of Rome that adde and alter mingle and mangle this sacrament at their owne pleasure For the Apostle teacheth Gal 3 15 Though it be but a mans couenant yet when it is confirmed no man doth abrogate it or addeth any thing thereto And Heb 9. 14 Hee is the mediatour of the new Testament that through his death they which are called might receiue the promise of eternall inheritaunce for where a testament is there must be the death of the testator for the testament is cōfirmed when men are dead for it is yet of no force as long as he that made it is aliue If then the Testament of man may not be abrogated or altered much lesse the testament of God confirmed by the death of the mediator Notwithstanding such is the sacriledge and presumption of that Antichristian church that the idolatrous 〈◊〉 as a bottomlesse gulfe hath ouerturned and swallowed vp the Lordes Supper turning the Sacrament into a Sacrifice administring it in a strange tongue taking away the cup from the people of God making prayers for the deade bringing in their carnall presence 〈◊〉 a monstrous 〈◊〉 setting vp a new Priest-hood a new sacrifice a newe Altar and lastly feigning vses and ends thereof which CHRIST neuer appointed the Apostles neuer acknowledged the churches succeeding neuer confessed or practised Now Masses are mumbled in memory of the Saintes they are helde auaileable not onely for the liuing but for the deade they are iudged profitable against stormes and tempests they are thought a soueraigne remedy against euery sore and sicknes of the body heathfull and helpefull for such as are going to warre to couer their heades in the day of battell as a shielde of brasse and to preserue them from the sword of the enimy good against 〈◊〉 and sorceries and fit to be applied to make tryal and proof whether a man be guilty of the crime and accusation laide to his charge But what are all these strange vses but strange abuses yea strong fancies and delusions of the man of sin burying in perpetuall forgetfulnes the true endes for the which Christ Iesus ordained his last supper All these being pestilent corruptions of the sacrament of the supper and fraudulent additions to the last wil and testament of christ do lay open to the full the 〈◊〉 abhominations of the Church of Rome the mother of 〈◊〉 Lastly the name of Christs last will and testament giuen to this sacrament serueth for the great comfort of Gods 〈◊〉 For heerin we shal find al things belonging to a ful and perfect testament For Christ Iesus is the testator all faithfull christians are appointed heires the angels are as the ouerseers the Apostles are the witnesses the legacies bequeathed are not lands and possessions or great summes of mony for the sonne of man had not where to lay his heade nor the kingdomes and gouernementes of this world for his kindome is not of this world but the forgiuenes of sinnes and euerlasting life obtained by the body of Christ giuen and his blood shed for vs and our 〈◊〉 Wherefore if God haue so loued vs if christ haue not spared his owne life to giue vs life and saluation how bitter ought our sinnes to be vnto vs and how ought we to striue against them If we will hate enimies heere are enimies for vs to hate if we will 〈◊〉 reuenge against enimies let vs fight against them that seeke our ouerthrowe and the destruction of our soule and body There is no reconciliation and attonment to be made with these enimies if thou kill not them they will kill and condemne thee for euer Hitherto of the names giuen to this Sacrament Chap 2 What the Lords Supper 〈◊〉 AS we haue in the former Chapt. considred the names and titles attributed to this Sacrament so now wee will see what the Lordes supper is For we shall neuer vnderstand the nature thereof except wee be able to define or describe it Therefore the Lords supper is the second sacrament wherein by visible receiuing of bread and wine our spirituall communion with the body and blood of Christ is represented This description is plainly proued by the institution of Christ by the first celebration of it and by other apparent testimonies of holy scripture First I say it is the seconde sacrament because such as haue interest in the Lordes supper must be first partakers of the other Sacrament for Christ and his Apostles ministred it to those that were before 〈◊〉 And howe shoulde they be continually 〈◊〉 and fed at his table who are not knowne to be of his house nor admitted members of his family We must be receiued into his protection and lurisdiction before we sit downe at his table for our refection They then that are in the house must be 〈◊〉 and fostered in the house the seuerall partes of the family haue the priuiledges of the family it is not lawfull to take the childrens bread and giue it vnto strangers Now baptisme is the true bath of our soules to clense our sores and an honourable badge whereby we are dedicated to the seruice of Christ and haue interest in the priuiledges of the church sealed vppe being partakers heereof wee come with comfort to the Lords supper Vnder the Lawe none 〈◊〉 were admitted to the passeouer If astraunger will obserue the 〈◊〉 let him circumcise all the males that belong vnto him If then the vncircumsed had bene admitted the passeouer had bin prophaned Wherfore it is not enough for vs once to be baptized and admitted into the number of the people of God we must also be partakers of Christs supper When as by baptisme we are brought into the church of God we are afterwarde nourished by this heauenly banquet to eternall life Again I say in the former description that by the bred and Wine the bodie and blood of Christ are represented Heerein consisteth the substance of this Sacrament he was 〈◊〉 giuen for vs and his blood was shed for the remission of sinnes least our faith should wander least our hope should wauer Therefore he saith to his Disciples This is my bodie which was giuen for you this is the cup of the new testament which was shedde for you and for many for the remission of sinnes Now that the description of the lords supper is prooued let the vses there of in the next place be declared Heereby
and the wine to be poured out to be distributed among sundry communicantes The last action of the minister is to distribute the bread and wine and giue them into the handes of the people 〈◊〉 CHRIST did not offer them vp to God 〈◊〉 deliuered them to his Discipies All these being workes to bee done and performed by the Minister in the administration of this Sacrament do note out the actions of GOD the Father sealing vppe his sonne vnto vs as wee shall see afterwarde when wee come to the inward parts Now let vs enter into the consideration of the vses of this parte Are these the actions commaunded in the word executed by CHRIST and to be performed by the Minister Then we see that such as are set apart to deliuer this sacrament are not consecrated and appointed priestes of the new testament to offer vp an vnbloody sactifice for the quicke and dead as the church of Rome teacheth and practiseth They are commaunded as ministers of God to deliuer the outward signes to the people not as priestes to offer them to God the father they are appointed preachers of the gospell not priests of the law which were to abolish the priesthood of Christ. Wherefore we must detest the blasphemy of these shamelesse shauelings that teach the priest to bee the maker of his maker and that he which made them gaue them power and authority to make him 〈◊〉 so after a sort preser themselues being the sacrificers before christ who is the sacrifice thēselues being the creators before Christ the creature themselues the makers before christ being made of them Thus these sacrificing priests are not ashamed to speake and to bray aloud Secondly if the minister be an outward part of this sacrament then it belongeth not to priuate persons to deliuer it to others nor to take it to themselues and deliuer it to themselues when or where there is no Minister They may indeede apply to themselues the outward signes they may eat the bread and drinke the wine and in respect of the sacramentall rites doe as the Minister doth yet for that they do it without a calling it is not a due administration but a true prophanation of this sacrament of the supper For let vs a little insist vpon the similitude beforestood vpon if the keeper of the Princes broad seale be not in the way or for the present bee not to bee gotten shall any man presume to take it where it lyeth without direction and without commaundement sucha one woorthily beareth his punishment whosoeuer he be In like manner 〈◊〉 one should earnestly desire the sacrament of the body and blood of Christ and euen faint in soul for the fruition of it finding himselfe in his longing affection able to take it himselfe 〈◊〉 the assistance of another yet euery one must consider his gifts his standing his calling and place wherin God hath set him he hath not committed to priuate persons the administration of the sacraments they may not baptize their children they may not meddle with the Lordes supper no more then common subiects may take the 〈◊〉 seale if the keeper be not in the way Against this 〈◊〉 truth two thinges of importance may be obiected which I purpose to preuent before I proceed any farther For first this doctrine seemeth not to agree with that maxime and principle which 〈◊〉 we haue resolued vpon namely Accedat verbum ad elementum fit 〈◊〉 that is Ioyne the word of institution to the outward signe and there is made a sacrament Secondly it seemeth to leaue sicke persous without comfort in their harts and peace to themselues if for want of a publicke minister themselues may not supply that want and giue vnto themselues this Supper These are the two obiections pretending and intending that priuate persons may at some times vpon some occasions haue some right and interest in despensation of the Sacraments Touching the former poynt being a ruled case of Saint Augustine that if the signe be 〈◊〉 to the word a Sacrament is ordained we doubt not to 〈◊〉 the rule vndoubtedly to be true being truely and rightly vnderstoode For the meaning is if there be an outwarde signe which is the matter and a worde of institution which is the forme of the sacraments the essence of them is fully finished as if there bee the matter and forme of an house we conclude rightly there is an house Howbeit we presuppose ther was a builder of the house to prepare the matter and to order the forme So the former principle doth presuppose a minister to deliuer and a receiuer to receiue the sacrament otherwise we shall also warre vnder the ensigne of our enimies vnawares who hold it to be the supper of the Lord albeit there be no eating no drinking no receiuing thereof If therefore in the constitution of a sacrament the institution of Christ touching taking eating and drinking must be obserued then wee see that more is required then the signe and the word in the work of the sacrament Againe touching the obiection of the sicke who seeme to be wholy left in distresse and discomfort if they may not lawfully administer the Supper to themselues I answere it was an auncient practise of the Church to carry the sacrament vnto the sick besides albeit in extremity of sicknes the minister be wanting we leaue not the sick without counsell and comfort For this we teach this we are readye to maintaine this we would haue all beleeuers in health and in sicknesse to recall and remember that if they 〈◊〉 beleeue that the Lord Iesus had suffered death vpon the crosse for them if they 〈◊〉 apply vnto themselues his precious merits for their redemption if they 〈◊〉 remember the benefits of his 〈◊〉 passion with all thanksgiuing and if they truely repent them from the bottome of their harts of all their sins they do eat and drinke effectually and to their soules health profitably the body and blood of Christ our sauiour although they doe not receiue the sacrament with their mouth This serueth to comfort the weak and to keep them within the lifts and limits of their proper calling Lastly seeing the former actions of the minister are done plainely in the sight of all it is the duty of euery one to giue diligent heede and to haue weighty consideration of these outward ceremonies by the meditation thereof to confirme their faith and to make the outward workes to further the inward graces For they are offered to our sences not that we shoulde rest in them but that our weaknes by them shoulde be helped and we by them lift vp in our harts to thinke vpon greater things Chap 4 Of the second outward part of the Lords Supper HItherto of the first outward part of the Lords supper to wit the minister now we come to the word of institution and promise annexed or contained therin which are the second
couenant it self but a sign and token of the couenant as also it is afterward expounded It shall be a signe of the couenant betweene me and you The aduersaries cannot denie a figure in this speech Now what difference is there betweene these two speeches This is my couenant and this is my body are they not alike and in like manner to be vnderstood So Exodus 12. 11 It is the Lordes passeouer properly the lambe was not the passeouer but serued to put them in remembrance of that benefit and it is expounded aster the blood shall be a token for you vpon the houses where ye are this day shall be vnto vou a remembrance Likewise the Apostle sayeth 1 Cor. 10. That rocke was Christ whereas properly the rocke was not Christ but the water flowing from it did represent him Thus then we must vnderstand the words plainely truely and briefely as if Christ had saide in this manner This bread which ye haue seene me take breake deliuer and distribute and which I bid you take and cate is a signe or sacrament of my true body signifying and sealing vp vnto you that my body shal be broken crushed and crucified for you to purchase to you eternal life let these sacramental rites and actions now performed by me and you be heerafter put in practise by you and all faithfull ministers and professors for the strengthning of your faith by the remembrance of my death and by the applying of the benefit thereof euery one to your owne selues Likewise hauing finished his supper when he did eate the passeouer with his Disciples hauing taken the cup and giuen thanks he gaue it being filied with wine to his Disciples and saide drinke ye al of this for this wine in this cup is a signe and sacrament of my blood by the shedding whereof togither with my death following the full forgiuenes of sins and perfect saluation which I by my vnchangable wil decree do giue vnto you and al that beleeue in me are assured to you and all beleeuers Thus hauing opened and cleared the interpretation of the words we shal heerafter need to spend the lesse time in confuting the contrary doctrin darkenes shal flie before the light error before truth cloudy mists before the sun-shine of the day Again seeing the words of institution are variably and diuersly set down by the Euangelists and the Apostle Paul we learne that euery change of the words where the sence is nothing altered or diminished is not to be condemned as 〈◊〉 or vnlawfull so that the alteration being in the forme and frame of words not in the substance and sence of the matter the sacrament is not destroyed For if it had bene an heinous sinne to haue made any change or alteration or to haue missed of the tearmes or sillables of the institution no doubt the Euangelists would haue consented in the words and not haue swarued one from another as we see they haue done We see how the Apostles in the allegation of sundry places of Scripture borrowed out of the olde Testament do not euermore strictly binde themselues to the very wordes as Mathew 26. Hebrewes 10. 5. and in sundry other but onely to the sence and therefore sometimes they adde as Mathew 4 10. sometimes they leaue out as occasion serueth True it is to alter any substantiall part or to wrest the wordes to a wrong and contrary meaning or not at all to expresse the sence of the wordes maketh the Sacrament voide but an alteration onely of certaine circumstaunces as of number or person of Letters or sillables cannot make frustrate the whole sacrament albeit we allow not any priuate and particular man to make any chaunge of his owne heade in such circumstaunces or to bring in a new frame of wordes So in baptisme the Greeke church saith Let the seruant of CHRIST be baptized in this Water c. and heereby nothing is detracted from the truth of the sacrament because Christ Iesus hath not precisely appointed how many wordes the Apostles and pastours of the Church shoulde vse in the execution of their Ministry Not withstanding the obseruation of the words I baptize thee obserued in our churches seemeth to drawe neerer to the commaundement of Christ and to confirme more fitly and fully the faith of the baptized and to answere vnto the words of Iohn the baptist I baptize with Water Likewise in the Lordes supper whereas Christ saide Take ye eate ye doe ye this as speaking to many the sacrament is not destroyed when the words are particularly rehearsed and specially applyed in our churches saying take thou eat thou drinke thou Lastly seeing the wordes of institution are an outwarde part of the Sacrament necessary to be knowne read marked and vnderstood wherein the substance and comfortatable vse of the Lordes Supper consisteth it followeth that they are to be published and pronounced openly distinctly plainely not in a strange language but in a knowne tongue that the church of 〈◊〉 and people of God may be edified For wherefore serueth the commaundement and promise set foorth in the supper if they be not vnderstood Whether we doe read the Scriptures sing Psalmes poure out supplications receiue the sacraments or whatsoeuer 〈◊〉 we performe to God that he may be 〈◊〉 and the congregation instructed we must doe all in a knowne tongue to be vnderstood This God commandeth this the Apostle prescribeth this the true church of God practiseth this reason teacheth this the Heathen acknowledgeth 〈◊〉 the sinagogue of Rome that it might take away all fruit and comfort from the faithfull and that it might broch horrible errors 〈◊〉 and securely and not be 〈◊〉 hath not onely commanded to pronounce the words of consecration closely and 〈◊〉 but forbidden to vse the common mother tongue of all the people The people of God must not be like Parrots or 〈◊〉 or Rauens or such birds that chatter with voice record mens words and sounde a sentence but vnderstande not the meaning thereof As Plmy maketh mention of a certaine 〈◊〉 that had learnd to say Aue Caesar imperator All haile or good morrow Emperor Caesar saluting 〈◊〉 and the two young princes 〈◊〉 and Drusus And Celius Rhodiginus writeth that Cardinall Ascanius had a Popiniay that coulde pronounce distinctly and 〈◊〉 all the Articles of the Creede Such birds or rather beasts woulde they haue Christian men to be that would haue them 〈◊〉 and not vnderstand what they pray 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 the reading of the scriptures but not know what is reade 〈◊〉 the sacraments but not know the meaning of the institution Things without life which giue a sounde whether pipe or 〈◊〉 except they make a distinction in the soundes howe shall it bee knowne what is piped or harped Or if the 〈◊〉 pet giue an 〈◊〉 sound who shall prepare himselfe to battell All things in the church must tend to the instruct on 〈◊〉 edification
of all the partes and people but reading and praying in a strange tongue doe not edifie and profit the hearers as 1 Cor. 14 26 Let allthings be done to edisieng and verse 14. I speake languages more then ye all yet had I rather in the Church to speake fiue words with mine vnderstanding that I might also instruct others then ten thousand words in a strange tongue for how then should he that occupieth the roome of the vnlearned say Amen at thy giuing of thankes seeing he knoweth not what thou sayest Wherfore except we know the meaning of the words we shall be to him that speaketh Barbarians and 〈◊〉 that speaketh shall be a Barbarian vnto vs. Euen the learned languages of Greeke and Latine not in themselues but in regard of the hearers that vnderstand them not are barbarous For the Apostle doth not heere like an Orator distinguish the tongues and shew which are 〈◊〉 and rhetoricall in themselues and which rude but holdeth euery tongue barbarous 〈◊〉 Syriack Caldy Arabick 〈◊〉 and Latine to him that knoweth not the force and signification thereof And this to be most true the Scriptures teath the fathers auouch the 〈◊〉 writers warrant the very Poets declare yea their owne doctors do determine Wherfore to conclude it is the ordinance of God it is the doctrine of the Apostles it is the duty of all christians when the word is red or preached when supplycations are offered when the sacramentes are administred to vse a knowne tongue vnderstood of all and without this the scriptures are vaine the prayers are barbarous the sacraments are fruitlesse to such as know not what is read what is asked what is promised what is receiued And 〈◊〉 far of the second outward part of the Lordes Supper to wit the worde of institution for a Sacrament without the word is as a picture without sence or an image without life Chap. 5 Of the third outward part of the Lords Supper THe third outward part of the Lords supper followeth which are the elementes of bread and wine fittest signes for this purpose to signifie the spirituall nourishment of the soule by eating the body and drinking the blood of christ That these are appoynted as the substance and matter of the supper it appeareth by the wordes of Christ and his Apostles deliuering this sacrament For the Euangelists expresse that Christ tooke bread gaue it and said Takeye and eate ye So like wise it is said of the church newly planted by the Apostles that such as gladly receiued the word and were baptized Continued in the Apostles doctrine and fellowship and breaking of bread And chap. 20 it is recorded That the first day of the weeke the Disciples came together to breake bread And Paule saith 1 Cor. 10. the bread which we breake is it not the communion of the body of Christ And in the chapter following the same Apostle often mentioneth and remembreth the bread of this sacrament In like manner Christ tooke the cup wherein was the fruite of the vine By these Christ is truely exhibited vnto vs he is truely offered vnto all he is effectually giuen to the faithfull as hath beene oftentimes remembred vnto vs. This being the plaine and euident truth let vs see the vses first such as concerne both the signes ioyntly and in generall then such as belong to each of them in seueral and in particular To begin we learne from hence to acknowledge a difference between baptisme and the Lords supper in baptisme we haue one signe as the materiall part in the supper we haue two signes partly to note out our whole ful and perfect nourishment in Christ hauing whatsocuer is requisite for our saluation and partly to shew a fuller remembrance of his death for the wine which is a figure of his blood doth as it were present it and represent it before our eyes So then albeit the same participation of Christ and the same washing away of sinnes by his blood are sealed vp in baptisme and in the supper yet the manner of sealing them in each is diuerse Againe baptisme is a signe of our entrance into Gods Couenant the Supper is a signe of our abiding and continuing in that couenant Touching baptisme it is sufficient for infants if they bee borne in the church in the supper the condicion of examȳning our selues and remembring the Lords death is required They differ also in often celebration of them baptisme is to be receiued but once onely in all our life because the promise once made is alwaies firme and forcible to such as beleeue and repent but the supper is oftentimes to be receiued because an often renewing of that Couenant and calling it to our remembrance is necessary to increase and strengthen faith They differ also in the order which is to be obserued in the vse of them for baptisme is to be giuen before the Supper and the supper may not be giuen to any except to such as haue beene first baptized or reputed so to be As first a child is borne before he bee fed so must Baptisme go before whereby our new-birth is sealed then the supper must follow after whereby our dayly nourishment is declared and confirmed Lastly they differ in the signes there is onely one signe in baptisme which is the Water but there are two signes in the Lords Supper to wit the bread and the wine The second general vse is that if Christ tooke gaue and deliuered the substance of bread and wine then they must needes retain their former nature their proper substance as well as their qualities as fight tast smell bignesse whitenesse sweetenesse rednesle roundnesse and such like properties But the Papistes turne all thinges vpside downe matter into forme substance into accidents creatures into shewes and subiects into things adioyned they bring in new shifts and fables against all diuinity phylosophy reason sense and experience setting vp their own inuentions and building castles in the aire Let them proue the annihilation and remouing of the substance of bread wine away and the consisting of accidents without subiect which they are neuer able to doe For as the water in baptisme remaineth in his nature and substance so do the bread wine in the Lords supper And albeit in both the sacraments the signs be chāged to a special vse yet are they corrupted into shewes and turned into shadowes The heauens shal be changed at the end of the world yet hence it followeth not that they shall bee cleane abolished and consumed to nothing All young schollers are taught in the schooles that an accident hath no being without a subiect yet heere these sophisters against all the rules of Logick and groundes of reason 〈◊〉 haue accidents and shewes of bread and wine to be in no subiect Thus whereas in all places of learning we are taught that accidents may 〈◊〉 not the
all sides that without consecration and sanctification there can be no Sacrament for without this halowing the matter in 〈◊〉 is bare water the bread in the Supper is bare bread the Wine is Common Wine Now euery creature is sanctified by the word of God and by prayer as the Apostle teacheth 1 Tim. 4. and therefore we cannot assure our hearts that god wil blesse any other creatures as fish or flesh in stead of bread water or beere in stead of Wine seeing the word hath not sanctified these elementes for this purpose They are sanctified by the worde for the ordinary nourishment of our bodyes but they are not by any speciall worde sanctified for the vse of the Sacramentes If then it be simply vnlawfull to change any thing in the matter of the 〈◊〉 no pretence or necessity can 〈◊〉 make it lawsull And as when a lawfull Minister is wanting a pryuate person may not be taken so when the matter appoynted for the administration of this sacrament is missing an other may not bee assumed For as well may wee change the minister of the Sacrament into a pryuate man as the bread and Wine being the signes into another matter If the Sacraments cannot be had according to the precise and pure institution of Christ they may lawfully be deferred or omitted for the danger standeth not in the want as wee haue declared before so long as we are free from the contempt of them The fourth generall vse arising ioyntly from both the signes is if Christ deliuered and the Disciples receiued bread and wine as the outwarde signes of this Sacrament then we learne that the doctrine of transubstantiation is a dotage of mans inuention Though this deuise be now receiued in the Roman church as a matter of saluation as an Article of faith and a maine point of religion that by vertue of these words This is my body this is the cup of the new Testament the substaunce of breade and wine is gone and nothing remaineth but onely the shewes likenes and appearance of them yet if we examine the matter by the words of institucion by the nature of a sacrament by the proportion of faith by the true properties of a true humain body by force of reason by iudgement of the sences by confession of the aduersaries themselues and by the manifold contradictions among themselues we shall find it to be a late deuise inuention of the Papists first decreed and determined in the counsel of Laterane vnder pope Innocentius the 3. in the raigne of King Iohn of England not yet 400. years ago There it was hatched at that time and made a main matter of faith aproued in the church of Rome but yet not then receiud ouer al the world This error is a spice of the error of Marcus who went about to make his fellows and followers beleeue that he did trāsubstantiate wine into blood in the sacrament Thus do the church of Rome at this day he was he noted for an heretick by the fathers I wil not for shortnes sake bring all the reasons that might be broght to ouerthrow and ouerturn the turning of the bread into the body of Christ and the wine into his blood but alleage some few among many wherunto we require them to answer if they can Neither let thē pretend that they haue bin answerd already inasmuch as no sound and certain answer can be brought vnto them to satisfie vs or themselues Our reasons for the present shal be these First that which Christ took in his hands he brake that which he brake he gaue that which he gaue his Disciples he commanded them to eat that which hee commaunded them to eate hee calleth his bodye This appeareth by the testimony of the Euangelistes and coherence of the words But he tooke bread and brake it therefore he gaue bread he commanded to eat bread he saide of the bread This is my body Now if he tooke bread but brake it not or if he brake bread but gaue it not or if he gaue bread to his Disciples to eat but told them not this which he gaue them but some other thing beside that was his body the latter part of the 〈◊〉 starteth from the beginning and the middle swarueth from them both Secondly the Apostle after the words of consecration doth oftentimes call it bread as 1 Cor. 11. As often as ye shall eat this bread and drinke this cup ye shew the lords doath til he come And againe Whosoeuer shall eat this bread and drinke the cup of the Lord vnworthily shall be guiltie of the bodie and blood of the Lord. And againe Let a man examme himselfe and so let him eat of this bread and drinke of this cup. These men say it is not bread the Apostle saith it is bread whether of these we shall beleeue iudge you So in the former chapter hee saith the bread which we breake is it not the commanion of the body of Christ Likewise touching the other signe our sauiour expressely calleth it wine after the thanks giuing Mat. 26. I will not drinke hencefoorth of this fruit of the vine vntill that day when I shall drinke it new with you in my fathers kingdome This fruit of the vine is wine therfore the substance of it remaineth Now if the bread had bene turned into the body or the wine into the blood of Christ and if the Apostle would haue spoken properly he should haue said As often as ye shall eat not this bread but this body of Christ vnder the forme of breade the blood of Christ vnder the forme of Wine And againe he that eateth the body and drinketh the blood of Christ vnworthily And againe let a man examine himselfe and so let him eat and take in his mouth the very body of Christ his creator But thus the Apostle hath not spoken neither could he so speake truely properly and fitly therefore we do truely properly and fitly conclude that there is no 〈◊〉 Thirdly Christ speaking of the cup saith Take diuide it among you and of the bread he saith he tooke it and brake it But if the substance of bread be abolished or changed into the body of Christ and likewise the nature of the wine turned into the blood of Christ there could be no true distributing or breaking for the blood of Christ is not deuided into parts neither is his body broken Fourthly if the strength or force of transubstantiation depend vpon these words of institution This is my body This is my blood then there can be no reall change before these words be fully finished and pronounced to the end I herefore when they begin to say 〈◊〉 is What is it What mean they I say it is Is it any other then bread and wine by their owne confession till the wordes bee ended So then these sentences shall not be true when they say 〈◊〉 is my body this is my blood
except they meane this bread is the body of CHRIST this wine is his blood wherefore bread and wine remaine their nature is not changed and altered Fiftly these wordes This is my body must be vnderstood as the words following This cup is the new testament but the cup is not turned into the new testament nor into the blood of Christ therefore the other wordes must be figuratiuely vnderstood not 〈◊〉 for there is one respect of them both neither can any reason be rendred why a figure should be admitted in the one part rather then in the other The sixt reason Christ is said to giue to his Disciples that which he saide was his body If then this be properly taken we shall thereby make a proper Christ and make him a Monster of two bodies as they also make the church a Monster of two heads For so there must be one body which gaue and another body which was giuen But it is most absurde that he should giue and be giuen hold himselfe and beholden offer and be offered which differeth litle from the heresie of the Helcesaits who held ther were sundry Christs two at the least one dwelling in heauen aboue the other in the world heere beneath so these make Christ to haue a double body visible and inuisible a visible body sitting at the table and an 〈◊〉 body made of the substance of bread which as the papists hold 〈◊〉 giuen to the disciples as likewise they teach of the headship of the church that one head is inuisible to vs m the heauens another visible to vs vpon the earth The 7. reason it destroyeth the nature of a sacrament which standeth of an earthly heauenly part one out ward the other inward one seene the other vnderstood one a signe the other a thing signified of which we haue spoken before book 1. chap 3. But if there be an actuall transubstantiation then the outward part is abolished and disanulled The 8. reason in baptisme the substance of water remaineth though it haue words of consecration and be made a sacrament of our regeneration and therefore in the Lords supper the bread and wine are not changed and don away vtterly The scripture speaketh as highly of the one as of the other The ninth reason if bread be really turned into the body of Christ and the wine into his blood then the body and blood of Christ are really 〈◊〉 for the words are seuerally pronounced first of the bread then of the wine yea the soule of Christ should be separated from his body for the bread is turned onely into his body and not into his soule But his soule his body and his blood are not really separated The 10. reason if the bread be turned into his body indeede by force of a few words vttered by a priest then the priest should be the maker of his maker and so euery Masse-monger should be preferred before Christ as much as the creitor hath 〈◊〉 honnour then the creature the builder then 〈◊〉 house the work-man then the worke But they are not 〈◊〉 to publish it in their owne words and writings that the priest is the creator of his creator He that created you hath giuen you power to create him he that hath created you without your selues is created by you by the meanes of you These are the speeches of their wise-men if they be not ashamed of their owne words The 11. reason the bread in the Sacrament after the words of consecration is subiect to as many changes and chances as it was before the bread may mould putrifie and breede Wormes and was accustomably in many places burned the wine may being immoderately taken make drunken it may wax sharpe and turne into vineger yea both of them may be boyled and made hot both of them may be vomited vp as certaine lepers did both of them may be mingled with rank poyson as a certaine Monk gaue the poysoned host to Henry the 7. a noble Emperour of famous memory which when he had taken he dyed The like may be said of Victor the 3. a Pope of Rome who was poysoned after the same manner in the chalice as the Emperor was in the bread But the precious body and blood of Christ cannot be mingled with poyson but is an excellent counterpoison against the biting of the old Serpent and all infection ofsinne whatsoeuer the body cannot mould or putrifie the blood of Christ cannot become sharp or sowre as the outward signes may therefore the substance of bread and wine remaineth The 12. reason there is something in the sacrament materiall and substantiall which goeth the way of all meates according to that saying of our sauiour Perceiue ye not yet that what soeuer entreth into the mouth goeth into the belly and is cast out into the draught But none of the accidents as shape colour quality tast such like are auoyded because they are altered in the stomacke before they come to the place of auoydance and it were blasphemy to thinke that the body of Christ either entreth into the mouth or goeth downe into the belly or is cast out into the draught howsomany of them haue also maintained this monstrous impiety Therefore the substance of the bread and the wine remaine in their owne nature in the sacrament The 13. 〈◊〉 If there were a miraculous conuersion of the bread and wine it would appeare to the outward senses as Ioh. 6 The multitude saw his Miracles There was neuer Miracle wrought by any bodyly creature but sense iudged it to be so but seeing our eyes see and our tast discerneth that it is bread we cannot imagine there is any miracle The Miracles that Moyses did in Egypt when he turned water into blood and his rod into a Serpent The miracles that Christ did when he turned water into wine the eye saw the tast discerned heere was no deceit no fraud no collusion And thus euery hedge-priest should be a worker of Miracles that onely can read his portuise and say ouer his pater noster with an Aue mary This is an honor that may be chalenged but cannot be granted vnto them The 14 reason if there were any transubstantiation there shold be an actuall conuersion of the bread into the body of Christ but this cannot stand For when one thing is changed into another the matter remainetin the forme is altered but heere they make the forme to abide and the matter to be changed A strange Metamorphosis and fitting the fable of this counterfeit turning Now the matter of 〈◊〉 is not in the body of Christ because it is perfect in it selfe and so glorified that it can receiue no accesse Besides nothing can be conuerted or changed into a thing before being and pre-existing which was really before the change or conuersion as Christ turned the water into that wine which was not before Moses turned his rod into that
quality not circumscribed not visible nor any way sensible that being in heauē he is really and corporally on earth though not in the distance betweene heauen and earth nor in those places where the host is not which is to assigne innumerable bodies to our sauiour Christ and consequently to make him no body which is in esfect as much as to deny he is come in the flesh which is the very doctrine of Antichrist himselfe as Iohn speaketh Euery spirit that confesseth not that Iesus Christ is come in the flesh is not of God but this is the spirit of Antichrist of whom we haue 〈◊〉 And in his 2. Epistle Many 〈◊〉 are entred into this world which confesse not that Iesus Christ is come in the flesh he that is such a one is a deceiuer and an Antichrist But Orcam propoundeth this as the doctrine of the schooles that The body of Christ is euery where as God is euery where and that if there were an host that filled all the world the body of christ might be with euery part thereof when it should be consecrated And Holcot treading in the same stepes of the schooles not of the scriptures saith If there had beene a thousand hostes in a thousand places at the same time that christ did hang vpon the crosse christ had beene crucified in a thousand places But it is an vnseparable property of bodies to be locall and contained in place take away space of place and true dimensions from bodies and they are no where as Augustine teacheth Besides hence the fathers concluded the truth of Christs body becavse he might be seene and handled and because he had flesh and bones according to the 〈◊〉 Behold my hāds and my feete for it is I my selfe handle me and see for a spirit hath not flesh and bones as ye see me haue But if he be neither seene nor handled in the sacrament nor discerned to haue flesh and bones how shall his humanity be 〈◊〉 and maintained against heretikes impugning the same The 22. reason it taketh away iudgement from the senses and maketh the sacrament of truth to be a sacrament of forgery and falsehood for the senses of seeing of tasting of touching of handling and smelling do iudge bread and wine to be in the sacrament and not mans flesh truely and properly neither can all the senses be 〈◊〉 in their proper obiects as euen the phylosophers themselues do teach and that truely The 23. reason it is an horible act and vnnaturall cruelty for man to eate mans flesh and for man to drinke mans blood and therefore the papists are as humane as the Cyclops Canibals and other barbarous people It is more brutish and barbarous to eate mans flesh then to kill a man and to drink mans blood then to shed it Thus they make christian people eaters of mans flesh and bloode suckers which is beastly and horrible wickednesse The 24. reason the Apostle maketh an opposition between the table of the Lord and the table of deuils saying Ye cannot drinke the cup of the Lord and the cup of deuils ye cannot be partakers of the Lords table and of the table of deuils where he sheweth that to eate the flesh offered to idols is to bee partakers of the idols as the bread which we breake is the participation and communion of the body of the Lord. Hence he concludeth that they should not eate of those thinges which the Gentiles sacrifice to idols because they haue fellowship with the diuils that eate of them euen as they are vnited to Christ which partake of the bread in the supper If then the flesh offered to idols be not transubstantiated why fhold the sacramental bread be turned into the body of christ seeing it sufficeth to make vs partakers of the Lords body to eat of the bread as it was sufficient to make them partakers of the idols to eate of the thinges offered vnto them The 25. reason if the institution of Christ be a sufficient direction vnto the church what to hold in this questiō we shal easily giue this transubstantiation a fall We see in the cases of matrimony that did befall our sauiour bringeth them to the first institution and therby dissolueth the doubts and difficulties that arose saying Frō the beginning it was not so So when any controuersie ariseth about the Lords supper the ordinance of Christ is able to take it vp how great or grieuous soeuer it grow Now there is no sentence no word no sillable no iot no title in the discription of the supper that fauoreth or sauoreth of transubstantiation or signifieth and insinuateth any such matter True it is christ saith This is my body but to be doth not signifie to transubstantiate for then when he saith I am the true vine I am the dore the way and such like he shall be turned and transubstantiated into a natural vine into a materal doore into an high way from whence would follow infinite abuses and absurdities Besides if the word is in the institution fignifie is transubstantiated that is changed from one substance into an 〈◊〉 from bread into flesh from wine into blood then the change shold be made before all the words be vttered so that hence it would follow that it cannot be done by vertue of the words which goeth before the pronouncing of the words Last of al the maintainers of transubstantiation as the builders of babel haue their tongs diuided and their languages confounded they cannot accord together but vary and dissent one from another like the false witnesses that arose against christ First they knew not certainely whether the bread bee turned into his body or come in place thereof the substance departing Secondly some alow not these speaches bread is Christes body or bread is made christs body but wil haue it said christs body is made of bread others condemne this speach also that bread is made christs body Thirdly they know not what is broken whether bread or accidents or nothing others say the true body of christ is broken Fourthly they agree not whether their water in the chalyce mingled with wine be transubstantiated some say it is other say it is not some more sober then the rest are afraid what to say and aske who is able to decide the questiō Others say it is turned into the humors of his body others virknit the knot thus that the water is turned into the wine and then the wine into his blood and therefore are circumspect to giue this cautel that a litle water be mingled being afraid least if more water were put in then the wine the wine should be transubstantiated into water Fiftly they cannot agree with what words their consecratiō is wrought whether accidents be without their subiect whether the accidents norish no lesse then the substance of bread wine likwise what the rats mise do eat how srō whence the worms
are oftentims in gendred Eucharist and so consume it whether the shewes of bread be the body without the blood and the shews of wine the blood without the body It were infinite to note out all their contentions and contradictions these may suffice to shew how the enimies of God fight one against another and all of them with their own shadwoes And thus much of the late doting deuise of transubstantiation which is the soule and life of their popish religion the deniers or doubters wherof they pursue with fire and sword more eagerly then such as are enemies to the blessed trinity The last generall vse is this if christ deliuered both these signes not onely the bread but the wine also to his disciples then both kinds by the minister are to be deliuered and both kinds by the people are to be receiued not bread alone nor wine alone but bread and wine the bread in token of his body giuen for vs and the wine in token of his blood shed for vs. This is the ordinance of Christ this is a greeable to the scripture Notwithstanding the Church of Rome hath decreed that it is not necessary for the people to cómunicate in both kinds and holdeth them accursed that hold it necessary for the people to receiue the cup cósecraced by the priest Thus it appeareth they labor nothing more then to take from the faithful the sweete comfort of the Lords supper This is a sacrilegious corruption of christs institution deuised by sathan broached by Antichrist published by his adherentes in the corrupt times of most palpable darknesse as may appeare by these reasons Frist if none may drinke of the consecrate wine but the priest then none should eat of the bread but priests so that they must either exclude the people from both which I trust they dare not or admit them to both which as yet they do not For to whom Christ said Take and eate to those gaue he the cup and said Drinke ye Wherefore the signes being both equal all communicants must drinke of the one as wel as eate of the other there being the same warrant for the one that there is for the other and the let that would barre the one will hinder the other so as the thinges which God in his goodnesse hath ioyned together man without sinne cannot separate Secondly when Christ instituted this sacrament he said Drinke ye all of this and by all he vnderstood of the Communicants And the Euangelist Marke addeth They al drank of it to wit all that were present at his last supper who had before eaten of the bread of the Lord. This also appeareth by the Apostle 1 Cor. 12. They haue beene all made to drinke into one spirit This commaundement of Christ being generall imposeth a necessity vpon the people when he saith Take ye eate ye drinke ye do ye this These commaundements are perpetuall vnchangable and alwaies in force not arbitrary not temporall not repealed but bind the conscience to the end of the world against which no limitation or dispensation can be alowed being the commaundementes of God not of man Thirdly the cup is a part of Christes will and testament Now touching the nature of a testament or will the saying of the Apostle is knowne If it be but a mans testament when it is confirmed no man doth abrogate it or addeth any thing therto where he sheweth that the dead mans wil may not be changed nothing can be put to nothing taken out without forgery and salsehood This is the law of nature and Nations But the Lordes Supper is a sacrament proper to the new testament as Christ saith this cup is the new testament in my blood which is shed for you This testament the Lord Iesus made the night before he was betrayed he sealed it by shedding his most precious blood he hath giuen Legacies not of earthly and temporall but of heauenly and eternall goods And seeing he hath appointed the cup of this his testament to be deliuered and drunke of all those for whom his blood was shed it is intollerable boldnes and presumption to take away the vse thereof from the greater part of the Church and an infallible token of an vnshamefast and shamelesse harlot to alter her husbands will to defraud and defeat his children of that worthy portion which their father alotted 〈◊〉 and so to keepe backe part of their inhetitance and 〈◊〉 Fourthly the blood of Christ shed vpon the Crosse belongeth not onely to the pastors and teachers but to all the faithfull that come to the table of the Lord as appeareth by the wordes of Christ This is my blood which is shed for you and for many why then should the blood of Christ be denyed or the cup of the Lord be barred from them If then the blood of Christ were shed for the people as well as for the ministers surely the cup belongeth to one as wel as to the other If the people haue the greater who shall keepe them from the lesse If they haue their part in the thing signified who shall deny them of the outward signe For as the fruite and effect of the blood of Christ is common to the people with the pastor so should the cup also which is the communion of his blood shed for the redemptionof the peoples sinnes be diuided indifferently betweene the pastor and the people Fiftly the Apostle deliuered that to the Church which he had receiued from the Lord Iesus Now the Church ought diligently to obserue the written traditions and verities of the Apostles which are committed to posterity to be kept inuiolably But he hath deliuered how the Lord after taking blessing breaking and distributing of the bread likewise tooke the cuppe blessed and distributed it among them so saith the Apostle must the Churches do If then he receiued this from the Lorde to deliuer both kinds to the people let the Church of Rome consider with her selfe from whence she hath receiued the contrarye to withhold one of the kinds from the people for both cannot proceed from one and the same spirit of truth which is neuer contrary to it selfe Sixtly if all the faithfull that come to the Lordes Table must shew forth the Lords death vntill he come and this be done by them as wel by drinking of the cup as by eating of the bread then all the communicants must receiue the sacrament vnder both kinds vntill the second comming of christ But the faithfull must shew forth the lordes death by eating of that bread and drinking of that cup as the Apostle teacheth As often as ye shall eate this bread and drinke of this cup ye shew the Lordes death vntill he come Therefore all communicants must partake the sacrament vnder both kinds Seuenthly the Apostle giueth an expresse commaundemēt to 〈◊〉 whole church which al must obey that come worthily to this holy table Let a man examine himselfe
and so let him eate of this bread and drinke of this cup. Where he giueth a double commaundement first to appeare reuerently then to receiue worthily Now al that must proue and try themselues are commaunded not only to eate bread but to drink of the cup but al must try and examine themselues therfore al are commanded both to eat and drink at the lords table If this be a commaundement to examine then the wordes following of eating and drinking are likewise commandements There is no halting in these let them admit both or let them deny both Eightly if the faithfull take not the cup in the supper of the lord the condicion of Christians vnder the Gospel shal be worse then of the Isralites vnder the law For the people of Israell in the wildernesse hauing the same sacrament in effect with vs Did all drinke of the spiritual rock that followed them and that rock was Christ as the Apostle affirmeth But out condicion is not worser and weaker then theirs therefore all the faithful are to drink of the cup of the lord Bellarmine the Souldan of the Romish Synagogue answereth thus They drunke not water out of the rock when they did eate of the spirituall meate but in another place and at an other time But this is an answearlesse answer which cannot satisfie For albeit the sacraments of the Isralites as figures and types did represent the same graces that our Sacraments do yet it is not necessary they should in all pointes answer each other and in all respectes agree together Besides the Church of Rome at no time aloweth the people to drinke of the Wine a seale of the blood of Christ they keepe them from the cup of the Lord both when they giue them the bread and at all other times and thereby make their estate worse then the estate of the Iewes Indeed if they did at any time permit al the people to drink of the cup they might pretend this example of the Israelites but inasmuch as they vtterly deny them this part of the cup they ouerthrow themselues in their malice and yet in their blindnes they do not see it Lastly many of the fathers did both eate Manna and 〈◊〉 water out of the rock if not in the same place yet at one the same time inasmuch as they gathered thereof euery morning and it ceased not vntill they entred the frontiers and confines of the land of promise But they neuer alow without a toleration and dispensation the people in any place at any time vpon any occasion and in any respect to tast of the cup in the Lords supper Ninthly if the cup of the new testament may be taken from the Lordes people in like manner the water in baptisme may be taken away frō them For the blood of christ whereby remission of sins is purchased and procured is represented by the wine of the Lordes Supper as well as by the water in baptisme But the water in baptisme without great sacriledge cannot be omitted or neglected wherefore then should the cup be taken away Lastly if any part of the supper might be taken away from the people then like wise the word of God may be taken from them for in this point there is the same reason and respect of them both A Sacrament is nothing else but a visible word and a sealing vp of the word and the offence semeth to be the same whether a man break the seale or rent the writing But the word cannot be withdrawen frō Christian people it being the instrument of faith and the life of the Church Wherefore it is the greatest wrong and iniury done to the people of God to take from them the cup of saluation The answer to this reason must be to confesse the parts and yeeld the conclusion forasmuch as by forbidding the people the reading of the Scriptures they haue robbed them of the word of God and taken from them the key of knowledge neither entring themselues into the kingdom of heauen nor suffering those that would enter No marueile then if they take the cup of blessing from the people who haue taken from them the free vse of the word of God To conclude these reasons it is Antichrist who contrary to the doctrine of christ contrary to the institution of the supper contrary to the practise of the Apostles and contrary to the vse of the former churches hath excluded the people languishing and th●●sting after the blood of christ as the dry earth for the sweete shewers of raine from taking the cup of the lord and left them a dry cōmunion to eat the bread of the sacrament alone Hauing considered the truth of God by sundry reasons grounded in the scripture that the people haue good interest and title in the cup denied vnto them let vs answer the obiections of the aduersaries made against the former doctrine First they pretend that christ administred it to the apostles only and not to any of the people consequently the institution for taking the cup can be no general cōmaundement for al men thus the Rhemistes reason I answer first it may be doubted and disputed whether onely the Apostles were present at his last Supper For seeing diuerse were added vnto the church and professed the faith of christ seeing he had other disciples beside the twelue seeing many Godly men and women followed him to see his miracles and to hear the gracious words that proceeded out of his mouth why should we think that none of them were admi●ted to his table who had often heard his preaching and depended vpon him in their liuing Again the passeouer was celebrated in that house of a faithful man as may be collected by sundry circumstances now thē either the lord Iesus annexed that famely vnto his as the law in one case appointed or else we shall haue two passe-ouers at one time in one house which hath no warrant of scripture no colour of truth no probability of reason We read in the institution celebration of the passe-ouer of ioyning house to house and taking his neighbor next vnto him in case of the insufficiency of one houshold to eate the lambe but we neuer read of killing two lambes and keeping two passeouers vnder one roofe Besides the smal remnant of the faithful among the Iewes would no-doubt rightly and religiously obserue the passe-ouer after the example of their lord and maister rather according to the precept of Moses ' then aceording to the practise of the Iewes in imitation of christ rather then according to the tradition of the elders Furthermore we are to consider that in eating the passeouer they sorted thēselues together according to the number of the persons able to eate vp the lambe for they commanded to take A lambe without blemish a male of a yeare old if the houshold be to little for the lambe he shal take his neighbour which is next vnto
the word ofGod Again were not Christ and his Apostles as wise as they Were they ignorant of this vnion Did they not knowe this accompanying of the body with the blood and blood with the body Is the present church of Rome wiser then he in whom al the treasures of wisedom and knowledge are hid If they thinke so let them tell vs plainly if not let them lay their hands vpon their mouth and submit themselues vnto him who administred it in both kinds and commaunded his Apostles to do the like Moreouer Christ would haue vs in his supper consider his blood separated from his body and set his death before our eies and his precious blood shed out of his side so that deliuering the cup he said Drinke ye all of this for this is my blood of the new testament which is shed for many without which sheading there is no forgiuenesse of sins as the Apostle teacheth Wherefore seeing these two are contrary one to the other and cannot stand together to wit the blood to be in the body and to be out of the body to be shed sor vs and not to be shed and that the sacrament leadeth vs to the consideration of the death and especially of the piercing and pouring out of the blood of Christ we may conclude that this vnion of the body with the blood and blood with the body flatly crosseth and ouerthroweth the institution of Christ. And why I pray you do their sacrificing priests receiue the blood twice and the body twice drinking first the blood in the body and againe eating the body in the blood Nay doth not this vnion deuised alter the 〈◊〉 of Christ and confound the seuerall parts of it making him to speake otherwise then the euangelistes expresse For when he said This is my body they will haue him meane this is my body and blood Againe when he said this is my blood they will haue him meane this is my blood and my body Last of all this late inuention turneth and ouerturneth the nature of the partes distinguished one from the other while we eate the flesh they make vs drink the blood and while we drinke the blood they imagine we eat the body Thus to eat and to drinke shall be all one with them for wee shal eate liquid and moift thinges and we shall drinke dry and hard things And is not this drinking of flesh and eating of blood and inuerting euerting of the nature of things But thus God striketh his enemies with giddines of spirit For after they haue broken the pure institution of christ and brought in a carnal presence of his body one absurdity being granted a thousand follow infinite abuses haue ensued vpon heapes the flood-gats being set open wherof there is no end or measure Let thē therfore repent themselues of this sacriledge against god and iniury against his people restoring vnto thē the cōmunion vnder both kinds according ro the ordinance of christ and directō of the Apostles And thus much of the general vses arising from both the signs ioyntly considered Now let vs come to the particular vses offered vnto vs in each of the signes And first touching the bread Is bread simply considered the first signe in the lords supper Then it is not necessarily required that it be administred in vnleauened bread For bread is oftentimes named and repeated but the word vnleauened is neuer added Wherfore as it is in selfe indifferent whether the wine be red or white whatsoeuer the kind or colour be if it be wine so is it not greatly materiall whether the bread be leauened or vnleauened so it bee bread Which ouerthroweth the error of the church of Rome her fauorites who hold it neeessary that the bread vsed in the Sacra be vnleauened They pretend the institution of Christ who say they made the Sacra of vnleauened bread instituting it after he had eaten the passeouer which was to be eaten with vnleauened bread according to the law of Moses neither was there any leauen to be found in Israel 7. daies together Thus they charge vs to breake the institution of Christ. But see heere the 〈◊〉 and partiality of these proud spirits who fly to the institution and sticke precisely to circumstances of 〈◊〉 when it serueth any way to their purpose but when the question is of matters of substance not of circumstance as touching communicating vnder both kinds touching the necessity of eating drinking and of many receiuing together against their halfe communions priuate masses and reseruations they cannot abide to be tyed and yoked to the institution Indeed we deny not but christ might vse vnleauened bread at his last supper hauing immediately before eaten the paschal lambe This peraduenture is truely coniectured yet no such thing is expressed in the gospell nor prescribed as a rule necessarily to bee followed The Euangelists teach he tooke bread but make no mētion or distinction what bread he took nor determine what bread we should take no more then limit what wine we shal vse but leaue it at liberty to take leauened bread or vnleuened as occasion of time place persons and other circumstances serue so we take bread as their own prophets haue confessed 〈◊〉 their own coūsels haue concluded Wherfore to consecrate in vnleuened bread is not of the substance of the supper no more then to eat it at night or after supper as christ administred and the apostles first receiued it For if any would bring in a 〈◊〉 of that time as wel as of that bread which christ vsed we see as faire a warrant for the one as for the other nay we haue a more certain direction for the time which is expressed then for the kind of bread which is not defined Besides if Christ on this occasion vsed vnleuened bread it was because it was vsual common and ordinary bread at that time as we also should vse that bread which is vsual and common So the Apostle speaketh of that bread which was daily vsed among the Gentiles saying The bread which we breake he addeth neither leuened nor vnleuened but vnderstandeth that in common and continuall vse Thus then we conclude it is no breach of christs ordinance nor a transgression of the first originall institution of the Lords supper to eate either the one or the other Againe touching the other signe which is the Wine the church of Rome may iustly be charged with transgressing the ordinance of christ who by her sole authority would type vs to mingle water with wine for Great mistery signification especially for that water gushed with blood out of our Lords side So they condemne all those Churches as doing impudently and damnably that do not mixe 〈◊〉 with wine in the sacrament and say it cannot be omitted without 〈◊〉 sinne True it is the Church in former times where the wine prouided for the Lordes Table was of it selfe heady
the graue with them I thinke to declare it to all the world they wish Christ dead buried and forgotten for euer that the byshop of Rome might with his shauelings rule and raign as a God vpon the earth Can light and darkenesse can heauen and earth fire and water sweete and sower be more contrary then these vaine things to the institution of Christ Who neuer said keep it in vessels hang it vnder Canopies carry it in processions giue it to the dead lay it vp in their tombes bring it abroad in common iudgements but take ye eat ye drinke ye and by receiving eating and drinking shew yee forth the Lordes death vntill hee come to iudgement to iudge the quicke and the dead This Sacrament is an holy feast an heauenly banket and therefore not to be hidden in a box as a light put vnder a bushell but to be set on the lords table for all his ghuests to feede thereon Againe if the substance and essence of this sacrament stād in the lawful vse of eating and drinking then al eleuation holding vp of the sacrament ouer the priests head all adoration falling downe honoring it with diuine worship and calling the sacrament their lord and God as it is destitute of all antiquity so it is full of grosse and palpable idolatry For wheras it was accustomed to hold vp the almes offerings consecrated to God for the poore thereby imitating the heaue-offering of the Iewes and stirring vp the people to the like charity and deuotion degenerated to the lifting vp of the host and bread in the sacrament So that where Christ saith take ye eate ye these bread-worshippers haue changed it into looke ye gaze ye worship ye giuing his glory to dumbe and senselesse creatures True it is we confesse that the Sacramentes as mysteries sanctified to an holy vse as vessels of gods grace and as instrumentes fitted to worke great things are not to be contemned or refused but to be receiued with due regard and to be vsed with all sobriety 〈◊〉 yea we confesse that christ God man is to be worshipped euery where we honor his word we reuerence his sacraments Notwithstanding we put a difference between God and the sacrament of God the same honor is not due to the one that is due to other and therefore we cannot adore the elemēts with diuine worship for many reasons First because christ in the institution of his supper said take eate drink he said not worship fal down bow the knees before the Sacra and call vpon it in time of need We heard before in the case of vnleuened bread they appealed to the institutiō of cstrist why do they now fly from it turning eating and drinking into worshipping and adoring Wherefore is it not a great iniquity and wickednes to omit what christ commaundeth and do what he commaundeth not Secondly God only is to be worshipped with diuine honor as Math. 4 Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God and him only thou shalt serue And Exod. 20. Thou shalt not bow down to them nor worship them Now the sacrament is not christ it is an institution of christ it is not god but an ordinance of God for god is not visible but the sacra is visible that al may know it and see it with their eies the sacrament is eaten but God cannot be eaten and swallowed vp of vs whom the heauens and the heauens of heauens cannot contain or cōprehend Thirdly christ reproueth the Samaritans because They worshipped that they knew not but the Papistes know not the body of Christ to be contained vnder the accidentes ofbread and Wine for the scriptures haue not taught it CHRIST hath not deliuered it the Apostles haue not shewed it Besides they knew not the priests intent whereon they say the essence of the Sacrament dependeth so as if he had no purpose of consecration they cannot deny themselues to be idolaters and bread-worshippers Fourthly the true worshippers must worship God in spirit and in truth as Christ setteth downe Ioh. 4 24 that is not according to our owne imaginations and diuises but as God hath prescribed but to fall downe to the sacrament is a bodily sernice a new-forged worship and an humane inuention Fistly without faith no man can please God but saith commeth by hearing and hearing by the word of God which yet they could neuer shew vnto vs therefore they can haue no assurance of pleasing God in their wil-worship Sixtly if this sacrament be to be worshipped then it is vnited personally to Christ because adoration should not be due to Christ as man except God and man in the vnion of person were one Christ but there is no personall vnion betweene 〈◊〉 and the sacrament of Christ therefore not to be worshipped Seuenthly no man in his wits and right mind wil honor that with diuine worship which himselfe may take in his hand and eate with his mouth and which may be deuouied by Mise Rattes dogs Wormes or other venime for how shall that be adored as God that cannot defend it selfe from the teeth of men and beastes As Ioash answeared Will ye plead Baals cause If he be God let him plead for himselfe against him that hath cast downe his altar Lastly seeing they adore Christ in the pixe where the bread is and in the chalyce wher the wine is why do they not likewise worship him in the priest and in the faithfull people and euery man in his brother when they haue created and eaten him vp The same Christ that was surely inclosed in the pixe is by their doctrine really contained in the body of priest and people when they haue eaten and drunken their supposed sacrifice Why then adore they not the flesh of christ after that it is entred into the mouth of man as well as in the golden boxe or in the gilden chalice Nay why may he not be adored in the bodies of mise and vermin by them if it fall out that they eate vp their God Shall he be any where without honor Or wil they worship him wher they list and ouerskip him where they please Howsoeuer therefore Christ is to be worshipped yet we must take heed we worship not a piece of bread in stead of christ which is most grosse and 〈◊〉 Idolatry Moreouer if christ command the bread to be eaten and the wine to be drunk then they are not to be offered vp to God the father as is vsually wont to be done in the pageant of the Masse This is a deep dungeō of iniquity and a monster of many heads turning the holy sacrament into an vnbloody sacrifice for the quicke and the dead abolishing the fruite and remembrance of the death of christ disanulling his priesthood giuing him to his father wheras the father hath giuen him to vs and imagining thereby to pay a price to god which he should receiue as a fatisfaction for our sins True
it is the Lords supper may after a sorte be called a sacrifice not as the church of Rome meaneth but bycause therin we offer vp praises thanks giuings to god for that sacrifice of attonement once made vpon the crosse which is most acceptable to god and because such as come aright thereunto offer vp themselues wholly to god a reasonable holy and liuing sacrifice and lastly because thereby we cal to our remembrance 〈◊〉 bloody sacrifice of christ withal 〈◊〉 circumstances therof the shame of the crosse the darkenes of the heauen the shaking of the earth the renting of the aire the cleauing of the rocks the reproches of the Iewes the taunts of the soldiers the opening of the graues the conquering of the deuil For the christians in former times perceiuing that many both Iewes and gentiles refused to embrace the faith of christ and to ioyne themselues to the church because they pretend the want of sacrifices among them and nature engrafted in all nations this principle that we haue no free accesse to God no true peace to our selus without a sacrifice the fathers to win such as were without affirmed that the church had also a sacrifice and thereupon entituled the sacrament of the supper with the name of a sacrifice for the causes before remembred But for a mortall man whose breath is in his nostrils to presume in the prid of his hart vnder the formes of bread and wine to offer vp christ the son of God in the sacrifice to his father and to dare to desire the father fauourably to behold and accept his owne sonne is idolatry blasphemy and horrible impiety to be detested of all true hearted Christians Touching the originall of the word Masse it seemeth to come from an ancient custome of the church sending away such as communicated not For the deacon was accustomed to bid them depart that were nouices in the faith and such as by Church-discipline were remoued from the communion This dimission of them was noted by the word Missa signifieng a sending away and licensing to depart and thus some of the heathen vsed it The name then being in it selfe not euill is turned into an euill practise and therfore as it is vsed and vnderstood of our aduersaries we reiect both the name and thing it selfe for these causes First no angell no man no creature is of that dignity and worthinesse that he may offer vp and sacrifice the sonne of God for the priest is aboue the sacrifice they therefore that will be the priests to offer christ aduance and lift vp themselues aboue christ Secondly if christ be really offered in the Masse then he is killed truely and indeed for a reall sacrifice proueth a reall death and when christ was sacrificed really he dyed really as when the beasts were sacrificed they wer killed And Holcot one of the schoolemen saith If there had been a thousand hostes in a thousand places at the same time that Christ did hang vpon the crosse christ had beene crucified in a thousand places Wherfore they that really sacrificed our Sauiour Christ did in that act really and wickedly kill him so that the prieste s of Baal if they wil be sacrificers of Christ must acknowledge themselues therein the reall murtherers of Christ. Thirdly new sacrifices are not to bee instituted by men without commaundement of god as Moses teacheth Deut. 12. we must not do h what seemeth good in our owne eyes but take heede and heare all these words which he commaundeth vs. Now Christ neuer saide Sacrifice ye my bodie and blood to God Fourthly Christ tooke the bread and gaue it to his disciples he did not offer it vp to God the father he tooke the cup and bad them all drinke of it he did not turne himfelfe to God and desire him then to accept the sacrifice of his body and blood Fiftly if the bread and Wine remaine in their former substance in the Lords supper then bread and wine onely are offered not the body and blood of Christ but they remaine for christ deliuered bread to his Disciples and Paule teacheth that it is the bread which is broken that as ofren asthe 〈◊〉 eat this bread and drinke of this cup they shew the Lords death therefore their reall Sacrifice is reall idolatry Sixtly it appeareth in the institution of the Supper that Christ consecrated the Bread apart and the wine 〈◊〉 and afterwarde deliuered them both apart but the bodye of Christ was neuer sacrificed without the blood nor the blood without the flesh for Christ offered vppon the Altar of the crosse the sacrifice of his bodie and blood together this is the cause that he saide Take ye eat ye drinke ye not take ye to offer and to Sacrifice Seuenthly the Scripture teacheth vs one offering and Sacrifice for sin once performed and offered Heb. 10. Wee are sanctified by the offering of Iesus Christ k once made and ver 12. This man after he had offered one saerifice for sinnes sitteth at the right hnnd of God And the Apostle 1 Tim. 2. There is one mediator betweene God and man the man Iesus Christ who gaue himselfe a ransome for all men So 1 Iohn 2. If any man sinne we haue an aduocate with the father Iesus Christ the righteous and hee is the propitiation for our sinnes Likewise Heb 9. By his owne blood he entred in once vnto the holy place and obtained eternall redemption for vs not that he should offer himselfe l often as the high Priest entered into the holy place euerie yeare with other blood for then must he haue often suffered since the foundation of the worlde but now in the end of the worlde hath he bene made manifest once to put away sinne by the sacrifice of himselfe We haue plentifull testimonies of this truth in this Epistle as chap. x. Where remission of these things is there is no more offering for sinne If then we haue remission by the sacrifice of Christ all other sacrifices are superfluous and abrogat his al-sufficient sacrifice So Rom 6. In that he died he died for sinne once And 1. Pet. 3. Christ also hath once suffered for sinnes the iust for the vninst If then this perfect offering were once onely to be offered then he is not offered neither can be offered againe in the Masse And if the onely oblation of Christ once offered by himselfe be sufficient all other oblations and Sacrifices are vaine and superfluous For how is that perfect which is often repeated Eightly to make a lawfull sacrifice there is required necessarily a fit minister lawfully called of God for no man taketh his honor to himselfe but he that is called of God as was Aaron so likewise Christ took not to himselfe this honour to be made the high-priest but he that saide to him Thou art my sonne this day I begat thee gaue it him But Christ is the onely priest
of the new testament his priesthood is immortall and eternall he liueth for euer therefore the Popish priesthood is a plant neuer planted by the heauenly father the true husbandman and the popish priests were neuer called of God to sacrifice the body and blood of Christ he gaue vnto them no such authority therefore in time shall be rooted vp If they pretend the precept and planting of God let them shew their commission that we may see it and let them bring forth their charter that we may trie it otherwise wee must take them for vsurpers and counterfait Officers in the cittie of God Ninthlie the Apostle teacheth that without shedding of blood is no remission But in the vnblodie Sacrifice of the Masse there is not effusion of blood he doth not suffer he is not killed he doth not shed his blood he doth not die therefore in the Masse is no remission of any sins Tenthly if Christ be daily offered in the Masse then hee doth dailie satisfie for sinne for the end of his offering is to make satisfaction as Romaines 4. 25. He was deliuered to death for our sinnes and is risen againe for our instification And Gal 1 4. He gaue himselfe for our sinnes that he might deliuer vs from this present euill world But he doth not make satisfaction for our sinnes no more then now he dieth and riseth again for then Christ would not haue said It is finished nor the Apostle u He entered once into the holy place Wherefore no more sacrifice for sinne remaineth to be offered by such as iniuriously vsurpe the priesthood of christ Last of all all true christians are Priestes to offer vp their bodies an acceptable sacrifice to God which is their reasonable seruice of God and to offer vp a broken contrite spirit as 1 Pet 3 9. Ye are a chosen generation a royall priesthood and an holy nation And Reuel 1. He hath loued vs and washed vs from our sinnes in his blood and made vs Kings and priestes vnto God his father These are the Priests that now remaine this is the priesthood which we professe Whosoeuer maketh himselfe any priest of another order in the new testament abrogateth and abolisheth the Priesthood of christ being after the order of Melchizedech who was both king and priest Now then as they commit sacriledge against Christ that presume to offer him vp an vnbloody sacrifice to God the father to make peace and attonement betweene God and man so they adde another iniquity as drunkennesse to thirst making their oblation not onely profitable to take away the sinnes of the liuing but auaileable to clense the sinnes of the deade that are come to the ende of theyr daies Indeede we deny not but the Masse may be beneficiall to the rabble of Friers and sacrificing Priestes that make it gainefull to themselues who through their sale and merchandize of Masses dwell stately goe sumptuously fare delicately drinke wine in siluer and gold abound in pleasures and heape vp great aboundaunce of all riches shall we not now say the Masse is profitable But other profit of the Masses then these to the Masse-mungers we know none We know we find we feelethem otherwise many waies pernicious in themselues dishonourable to God and hurtfull to the people For first the Sacrament was instituted to no such end and purpose as to helpe the deade and to be a propitiation for their sinnes For Christ sayde take and eat this is my body drinke ye this is my blood but the deade cannot take any thing offered vnto them they can neither eate nor drinke wherefore this supper being spirituall meat and nourishment for the soule cannot auaile the deade who are neither fed nor nourished Secondly it profiteth as much to be baptized for the dead as to receiue the Supper of the Lorde for the deade for both Sacraments were instituted of Christ and there is the same respect of both But it can doe no good to baptize one for another the liuing for the dead therefore the living comming to receiue the Sacrament of the Supper cannot releeue the dead Thirdly there is no forgiuenesse of sinnes after this life we haue forgiuenes in this life or neuer Whatsoeuer is bounde on earth is bound in heauen Heere is the time heere is the place heere is the occasion offered to worke as the wiseman teacheth Ec 9 All that thine hand shall find to do do it with all thy power for there is neither worke nor inuention nor knowledge nor wisedome in the graue whither thou goest And Heb 3. To day if ye wil heare his voice harden not your harts Wherfore then is a sacrifice offred for the dead for whom there is no releefe no redresse no remission Fourthly it is vaine to offer for those that haue ended their daies and are already come to the ende of their race whose estate can neuer be changed The night commeth when no man can worke and Chapt 11 Are there not twelue houres in the day if a man walke in the day he stumbleth not because he seeth the light of this world If a man walke in the night he stumbleth because there is no light in him And Paule 2 Tim 4. I haue fought a good fight I haue finished my race I haue kept the faith from henceforth is laid vp for 〈◊〉 the crowne of righteousnes But this is the state of all the dead they are entred into iudgment they are not subiect to any chang Lastly if the sacrifice of the Masse could wash away the sinnes of the dead then the sacrifice of the Masse should surmount and exceede the sacrifice offered by christ himselfe vpon the Crosse. For this helpeth the liuing it auaileth not the dead and so we should haue other meanes to take away sinne then his oblation and there should be another propitiation for the sinnes of the world And thus much of the popish idoll of the blasphemous masse Furthermore did Christ deliuer his last Supper to all his Disciples that were present Did none stand by and gaze on while other receiued Then heereby fall to the ground the priuate communions of the popish Church where al is deuoured by the priest nothing deliuered to the people For whereas the ordinance of Christ and ancient order of the church was for the minister and people to receiue the Sacrament together among them the priest accompanied with his boy to make answer receiueth the sacrament himselfe alone without distribution made to others yea although the whole congregation be present and looke vpon him whereby God is dishonoured the communion is abolished the people of God are there by depryued and robbed of al comfort How is this a feast which the priest prepareth for himselfe not for others receiueth by himselfe not with his bretheren he speaketh to himselfe and not to the assembly he vseth a strange tongue and no man knoweth what he meaneth the people is
chew not the cud they should haue sinned because it was not sanctified and therefore albeit they had prayed for a blessing all the day longe and giuen thankes neuer so much yet could it not make their practise lawfull which the word of God had made vnlawfull Or if they had offered a cleane and holy sacrifice and not made humble and earnest prayers to God to accept them and their oblations it could not haue due effect but the worde of God had beene hindred by their vnworthynesse So in the administration of the Lordes sacred Supper we vse the word of God which warranteth vs to take the bread and Wine out of this word wee alledge the promises of God to the true beleeuer and heerevnto wee ioyne prayers and thankesgiuing that God would 〈◊〉 vs and 〈◊〉 vs in the participation of his owne ordinance Thus albeit we haue no forged transubstantiation wee haue a true consecration if the word of God and prayer of the church can worke it which are the meanes left vnto vs for this purpose if wee be any way deceiued it is the Scripture which hath deceiued vs. It remaineth now to marke the vses of this point for our farther instruction If by vsing the whole 〈◊〉 of Christ according to his commaundement we confesse a change and conuersion wrought in the vse of the signes then we are falsely charged and slandered to haue no consecration We pronounce the same wordes of consecration that christ pronounced we obserue the same thinges that christ obserued and charged vs to do we shew forth plainly the death of Christ as it he were described in our sight and among vs crucified we speak openly in a known tongue and the people vnderstand vs we pray vnto God to accept vs and render him thankes for the worke of our redemption lastly we take the outward elementes and ioyne the word vnto them and thus they are made to vs a sacrament Nay if to offer vp to God our selues our soules our bodies our almes for the poore our prayers and thanksgiuinges vnto God the father for our redemption be an oblatiou and a sacrifice We haue both a Sacrament and a sacrifice in our Churchés though we offer not vp Christs body to be a propitiatory sacrifice for the quicke and dead vnto his father We offer vp as much as Christ commaunded vs to offer but that sacrifice was once offered vp vpon the Crosse he wasthe priest hee was the altar he was the sacrifice there is no other sacrifice left to be offered for sinne and he which presumeth to offer him againe is an enemy to the Crosse of Christ treadeth the sonne of God vnder his foote counteth the blood of the new Testament vnholy and hath renounced saluation by Iesus Christ. Now if we cleaning precisely to the institution of Christ doe not consecrate what may be thought of the Popish priestes who whisper their wordes closely that no man heareth vse a strange tongue that no man vnderstandeth bring in pryuate Masses whereat none communicate deliuer dry Communions wherein no man drinketh exhorte no man speake to no man and if they doe consecrate they consecrate onelye for themselues and not for others Wherefore we detest the opprobrious and blasphemous speaches of the prophane pistes who in the spirit of Shemei and of Kahshaketh raile falsely vilely and slanderously against our communions affirming that they are no other then common bread and wine without grace without vertue without sanctification bare signes of Christ absent no better then our common breakfasts dinners and suppers Thus they speak basely proudly and scornefully of our communions but all the world knoweth they speake vntruely We hold an effectuall consecration in both the sacramentes though we deny a reall conuersion into the body and blood of Christ the water in baptisme is no more common water it is not void of a spirituall effect it is not without grace and sanctification So the bread and wine are changed not from one substance into another but from one vse to another not in themselues but to vs not in their owne nature but in their end and thus they are not the same they were before Againe are these signes sanctified and consecrated that are deliuered and receiued then heereby wee learne what is to be thought of the remnants and leauings remaining after the Lordes Supper For who seeth not heereby that the bread and wine of the holy vse and lawfull participation appointed are not a Sacrament They differ nothing from common bread and wine sold in other places and taken in our houses Therfore among diuerse the remainder was accustomably vsed to be burned among some it was giuen to little children that were in the schooles among others they did eate in the common assembly at their feastes of loue so that out of the sacred vse of the Sacrament they did eate it as common bread they did drinke it as common wine We see in baptisme the water remaining and not vsed is no part of the Sacrament but may be applyed to common vses So it is in the Lords Supper for the Sacramentes of the new testament are alike and of the same worthinesse no more is consecrated then is receiued and applied This also is euident by the rock in the wildernesse where the waters flowing from thence represented the blood of Christ to the Isralites that dranke thereof not to the beastes and cattell that were 〈◊〉 by it So much was consecrated water as they receiued not all the rest So when Iohn baptized in Iordan not all the Rvuer but all that which was applyed was sanctified So when he baptized in Enon because there was much water 〈◊〉 not the whole streame was hallowed but so much as he vsed Wherefore whatsoeuer remaineth after the celebration of the sacraments may be 〈◊〉 lawful y to common and ordinary vses Moreouer if the sanctification of euery creature whether in the sacraments or out of the sacramentes be by the word and prayer as appeareth by the Apostle it teacheth a profitable instruction namely that no creature of God is to be receiued no gift to be vsed no blessing to be enioyed tending to the health of the body or comfort of the soule without this duty of prayer and thankesgiuing to the Lord. Indeede euery creature of God in it seife is good and euery gift is holy yet if we partake them without praysing the name of the giuer and creator to vs they become vnholy vncleane and vnpure Now if this be needefull in vsing the common creatures and guiftes of God much more is it necessary in receiuing these pledges and 〈◊〉 of feeding our soules to eternall life Beholde heere the cause that moued Christ when he had taken the bread to giue thanks to his father wherin he sheweth what belongeth to the duty of the minister and of the communicantes to wit that we ought to lift vp our hearts to God
to praise him fo giuing his onely begotten Sonne to bee our redeemer and humbly to pray vnto him that our vnworthynesse hinder not the effectuall working of his Sacrametnes but that through his goodnesse and mercy they may haue their full force in our heartes for the pardoning of our sinnes for the increase of his graces for the confirming of our faith for the quickning of our obedience and for the preseruing of body and soule to eternall life Thus wee blesse God when we praise him and giue him the honour due vnto his name We blesse the meates we eate the drinkes we drinke the thinges wee receiue as Paule saith The cup of blessing which wee blesse when prayer is made to God that they may be healthfull to vs and we thankefull for them Lastly if in the Sacrament there bee a consecration and separation of the outward elementes to so holy an end it warneth vs to be carefull to vse and receiue oftentimes this Sacrament of the Lordes Supper For heere are not bare signes bare tokens bare figures without fiuite and without grace they are consecrated signes and hallowed elements effectually sealing vppe remission of sinnes And what is more plaine then that which the Apostle teacheth 1 Cor. 11. As often as ye shall eate of this bread and drinke of this cup ye shew the Lordes death till he come Thus the Lord Iesus speaketh Doe this as oft as ye shall drinks it in remembrance of me And haue we not many worthy and effectuall considerations to moue such as professe the same doctrine to resorte oftentimes to the same Table of the Lorde It is the commaundement of Christ so that we ought to make some conscience of this duty as of other commaundementes prescribed vnto vs. It is a commaundement of God Thou shalt not steale Few but to make some conscience thereof because it is Gods commaundement So is this heere often to come to the Lordes Table yet what little account is made heereof all the yeare long euery one seeth and the faithfull soule agreeueth The high God possessor of heauen and earth hath required and commaunded it yet who regardeth The Lorde hath spoken and yet who obeyeth If a father should command a duty of his son or a maister of his seruant he could not patiently endure to be disobeyed and shal we not thinke that God will require his lawes at our hands Againe to his commaundement he hath annexed a promise which maketh our sin and vnthankfulnes the greater if we shew not our selues ready in yeelding to this duty Besides seeing this sacra is a speciall prop to stay vp our faith and geth with it Christ and all his merits and heauenly treasurs we are vtter enemies to our owne selues to our own souls and to our owne saluation if we neglect ●o great mercy offe●e● vnto vs. Wherefore it is not left free vnto vs and committed to our discretion to receiue or not receiue this were no lawfull liberty but vnlawfull lycentiousnesse Heere in the faithfull find very great comfort and an effectuall meanes to strengthen their faith Euen as the sicke man that feeleth his sickenes and knoweth his own weaknes shoulde haue a speciall care to looke to his stomacke that therby he may receiue norishment gather strength so we are all spiritually diseased assaulted of Satan tempted of the flesh ouercome after●imes of sin and must seeke strength of saith from this heauenly nourishment God of his compassion hath set vp his Sacrament as a signe vpon an high hill whence it may be seene farre and neere on euery side to raise vp such as are fallen to strengthen such as stand to comfort such as are weak and to call vnto him such as run away from him whereby hee gathereth them vnder his winges It is as the brazen Sepent that comming vnto it with a faith to be healed we might liue and not perish It is a banner displayed that euery Ch●●stian souldi●r should resort vnto it as vnto his owne comfortable Supper to be had in often vse and continuall remembrance to put vs in mind of his continuall mercy laid vp for vs in the blood of Christ and to ratifie and seale vp the same farre more liuely then the ba●e word onely When the words of Christs institution are spoken This is my body which is broken for you this is my blood which was shed for you When these words I say are reade vnto vs our of the scriptures they confirme our faith but much more when the Sacrament is seene with our eyes that we behold the bred broken and looke vpon the wine poured out but most of all when we tast and handle when we eate and drinke the outwarde signes We see when one maketh a bare promise to another with wordes onely betweene themselues he beginneth to doubt to whome the promise is made of the performance thereof if he adde an oath for confirmation the promise is more assuredly ratified but if he giue his hande writing and seale it to the party the matter is made out of doubt Thus we doe reason and helpe our faith We haue the promises of God wee haue the oath of God we haue the wordes and writinges of God we haue the seales and Sacramentes of God these are not reserued in the Lords keeping but are put into our owne handes to see them to keepe them to vse them for our comfort and assurance I speake after the manner of men if wee haue a free promise from an honest man penned fairely in writing ratified vnder his owne hand and seale and all giuen vnto vs to locke and lay vp we doubt not of the possession Now let vs consider the Lords doing and see what hee hath done for vs who is not as man that he shoulde lie nor as the sonne of man that he should deceiue God sent his sonne into the world to take our nature vpon him to be like vs euen in his infirmities hee named himselfe Iesus that is a Sauiour because he shoulde saue his people from their sinnes after his death he sent his Apostles to preach the glad tidings of remission of sinnes and euerlasting saluation he ordained his last supper immediately before his death to testifie and assure them vnto vs not onely by sounding them in our eares but by beholding tasting smelling feeling and feeding to seale them in our hearts and also daily to be repeated and ministred vnto vs. Seeing then we haue both his promises and oath his worde and writings his seales and Sacramentes in our keeping what would we haue more He would not make halfe so much adoin assuring his promises if he loued vs not he would not set such authentike seals to his deede and obligations vnlesse he ment good earnest His bare worde and naked promise is verie good paiment but he respecteth our weakenes whose mercifull kindnesse must not be neglected through our vnthankefulnes
Thus much of consecration and the vses thereof Chap. 8. Of the first inward part of the Lords supper HItherto we haue spoken of the outward parts of this Sacrament by doing whereof confirmation is performed now follow the inward parts to be considered For in Sa. we must consider not what they be of themselues but what they signifie vnto vs These inward partes are foure in number to wit the father the spirit the body blood of christ and the faithfull All these haue a Sacramentall relation to the outwarde partes and declare the inwarde truth of them The actions of the minister are notes of the actions of God the father the word of institution is made effectuall by the holy spirit the breade and wine are signes and seales representing the bodye and blood of Christ the outward actions of euery receiuer do note out the inwarde actions and spirituall workes of the faithfull Thus then the agreement answeareth aptly and the proportion falleth fully betweene the parts As the Minister by the words of institution offereth vnto the communicants the bread and wine to feed thereupon corporally and bodily so GOD the Father by the Spirit offereth and giueth the body and blood of CHRIST to the faithfull receiuers to feede vppon them spiritually Now then let vs remember the sencible and externall actions of the Minister that thereby we may consider the spirituall and inward actions of God the Father And first of all the taking of the bread and wine into his hands and the consecrating or blessing of them by reapeating the promise by 〈◊〉 and thanksgiuings doth seale vp these holie actions of God the father by which he from all eternity euen before the foundation of the world did seperate elect ordaine chuse and call his son to performe the osfice of a mediator between god and man and when the fulnes of time came did send him into the worlde to performe that Osfice whereunto he was appointed This we see proued vnto vs in many places as Iohn 6. Labour not for the meat which 〈◊〉 but for the meat that endureth vnto euerlasting life which the sonne of man shall giue vnto you for him hath God the father sealed that is hath installed him into his office to reconcile men vnto God and to bring them to euerlasting life And Ch. Iesus gaue himself that he might deliuer vs from this present euill world according to the will of God euen our father so that whatsoeuer Christ did he did it by the will and appoinment of his Father According to the testimony of the Apostle Heb 5 Christ took not to himself 〈◊〉 honor to be made the high Priest but he that saide vnto him 〈◊〉 art my sonne this day I begat thee gaue it him And as the father ordained him to that office so in time he sent him as the Euangelist 〈◊〉 The spirit of the L. is vpon me because he hath annointed me that I should preach the 〈◊〉 to the poore bind vp the broken hearted preach liberty to the captiues c. So likewise 1 Iohn 4. Heerein is that loue not that we loued God but that he loued vs and sent his sonne to be areconciliation for our sinnes And Gal. 4 When the fulnesse of time was come God sent 〈◊〉 his sonne made of a 〈◊〉 and made vnder the lawe that hee might redeeme them that are vnder the lawe Thus we see the inwarde actions of God the Father aunswearing to the outwarde actions of the Minister Now let vs come to the vses of this part First of all this sealing and sending of his sonne serueth to confirme and assure vs of our saluation in Christ. For seeing GOD hath 〈◊〉 and appointed him into this office our faith cannot faile our confidence cannot fall our hope cannot make ashamd seeing the loue of God is thus shed abroad in our harts through the Holyghost who beareth Witnes with our spirit that we are the children of God and by whom we are sealed vnto the day 〈◊〉 redemption Againe let vs seeke saluation no where else then in him alone whome God the Father hath sealed and set apart to that end For euen as the body is norished by no other meates and drinkes then by such as God hath appointed to this purpose as a staffe to sustaine vs so is the soule fed by no other meanes then God hath before ordained The cause of our saluation is in the loue of God toward vs which is notably represented by the taking blessing of the outward elements He might haue left vs to our selues to work out our own destruction but his mercy is greater then his iustice Thirdly by these outward actions of the minister wee must seeke confirmation and strength of our faith being assured that God the father tooke his sonne and appointed him to these endes We must not wander and gaze about and thinke we haue nothing to do but when we take and receiue the bread and the cup into our hands we must in euery sacramentall rite consider the thinges signified and ponder in our hearts the fitnesse and agreement betweene them both So then as we behold with our bodily eies the minister representing the person of the father taking blessing and separating the bread and wine to that bodily vse so surely and certainely we must learne that God the father hath ordained and sent his only begotten sonne in whom he is well pleased to bee the meditator for the pardon of our sinnes Hence we see the infinite loue of God toward vs and let vs labor to comprehend the length bredth height and depth therof that spared not his owne sonne but gaue him for vs all vnto the death hence we see that exceeding compassion of the sonne that loued his enemies more then himselfe and accounted not his owne life precious to himselfe hence we see the gratious and glorious worke of our redemption wherin the mercy and iustice of God meete together and kisse each other teaching vs to take sweete delight and comfort in the meditation thereof day and night withal thanksgiuing hence wee haue assurance of saluation and consolation in all troubles and tentations hence we see the greatnesse of our owne sinnes that could not be pardoned but by the death of the son of God and therefore we must hate them with an vnfained hatred as our greatest most dangerous and deadly enemies and lastly hence wee see that if God the father thus loued vs we ought earnestly to loue him againe and to serue him in all duties of holynesse and true righteousnes neyther ought we to loue him onely but for him all our brethren as the Apostle reasoneth Brethren if God so loued vs wee ought to loue one another Thus we haue shewed how the taking of the bread by the minister signifyeth the fathers appointing of his sonne the ministers blessing the fathers separating and setting a
part his sonne to his office the minsters deliuering of the bread the fathers giuing of his sonne If then wee drawe neere to the Lords table with faith reuerence and repentance nothing can be more sure certain to vs then the taking receiuing of Christ for when we receiue the bred from the minister we with all receiue the body of christ offered by the hand of God the father Lastly the breaking of the breade pouring out of the wine and deliuering of them both into the handes of the communicants 〈◊〉 these actions of God his chastising of his sonne and breaking him with sorrowes vppon the crosse for our redemption offering him vnto all euen vnto hypocrites and giuing him truely to the faithfull with all the benefits of his passion Indeed the minister giueth the outwarde signes to all receiuers but God giueth and applyeth onely to the faithfull the shedding of Christes blood for their daily increase of their faith and repentance But heere it may be obiected that not a bone of him was broken as it was figured by the passeouer and performed at his passion the verifieng and accomplishment whereof we read Iohn 19. 36. I answere there is a dubble breaking of Christ one corporall whereof the places before do speak the other figuratiuely wherby is vnderstood he was tormented and euen torne with paines as Esa. 53. He was wounded for our transgressions and broken for our iniquities the chastisement of our peace was vppon him and with his stripes we are healed Lo what is ment by the breaking of the bread his soule was tormented his spirit was crushed his hands and feet were pierced he sweat drops of Water and blood and cryed out aloud vpon the crosse My God my god why hast thou for saken me Wherefore let these rights be rightly marked and obserued of vs for our comfort and consolation Let vs when we see the breade broken and wine poured out meditat on the passion of christ howe hee was wounded and torne for our transgressions Although not a bone of his body was broken in pieces yet he was broken with afflictions brused with sorrowes and tormented with bitter anguish of his soule by whose stripes we are healed by whose condemnation we are iustified by whose agonies we are comforted by whose death we are quickned Whosoeuer resteth in the outward works done before his eies neuer attaineth to the substāce of the sacrament Thus much of the first inward part Chap. 9. Of the second inward part of the Lords supper THe second inward part is the holy spirit who assureth vs of the truth of Gods promises As we haue in the word of truth the forgiuenes of sins increase of faith groweth in sanctification a great measure of dying to sin and a greater care to liue in newnes of life promised 〈◊〉 vs so doth the spirit worke these things in the hearts of all the 〈◊〉 This appeareth in many places Rom. 8. rehaue receiued the spirit of adoption whereby we cry Abba father the same spirit beareth witnesse with our spirit that we are the children of God To one is giuen by the spirit the word of wisdome and to 〈◊〉 the word of knowledge by the same spirit to another is giuen faith by the same spirit all these thinges woorketh one and the selfe same spirite distributing to euery man seuerally as hee will So then as wee are weake in faith and slowe to beleeue so we haue the spirit giuen vnto vs to helpe our infirmities and to open our heartes to receiue the promises This truth being cleared the vses offer themselues to be considered And first of all inasmuch as the spirite worketh these things in the harts of all the faithfull from hence we gather that such as neuer finde any chaunge or renewing of the mind or reformation of life after the receiuing of the Sacramentes may iustly suspect themselues whether euer they had faith or not and whether ever they repented or not and therefore ought to vse the means to come by faith and repentance For the worke of the spirit accompanieth the outward worke in the elect of God as also we see in the hearing of faith preached hee must open the hart that is closed vppe before wee can receiue with meekenes the worde that is grafted in vs which is able to saue our soules Indeed euery person present may heare the wordes of institution may see the Wine poured out may eate of that bread and drinke of that cuppe as they may also hear the sound of the voice that commeth vnto them but the whole force effect and power resteth onely in the Spirite of GOD sealinge vppe the truth and substance of those things in the harts of all the children of God Againe seeing these thinges are done and performed by the working of the spirit they are confuted and cōuinced that thinke they cannot be made partakers of the bodye and blood of Christ and be vnited to his flesh vnlesse his body be shut vp vnder the accidentes of bread and shewes of wine and so his flesh be giuen vnto vs carnally that we may eate him with our mouthes and conuey him into our stomackes But we see heere the Holy-ghost is the bonde of this vnion hee worketh in vs faith which pierceth the heauens and layeth hold on Christ. It is saide of Abraham the Father of the faithfull that he reioiced to see the day of Christ he sawe it and was gladde For as we cannot see him with our bodily eies nor hear him with our bodily ears nor touch him with our bodily hands no more can we tast or eat him with our bodily mouths By the hand of faith we reach and apply him by the mouth of faith we receiue and eate him Let vs beleeue in Christ and we haue eaten Christ let vs not prepare our teeth and our belly but a liuely faith working by loue Wherefore albeit the humane nature of Christ goe not out of the highest heauens yet we that liue vpon the earth are partakers of his bodye contained in the heauens and his flesh and blood are communicated to vs as truely and effectually as if he were there on the present with vs. If any say How can this bee can that which is absent from vs be present with vs can heauen be in earth or earth bee in heauen He ere vnto I may moste iustlye aunsweare although this bee a great mistery and marueilous in our eyes yet we must confesse and consider that the Holy-ghost is the author of this vnion and as it were the conduit-pipe of this coniunction who by his diuine power ioyneth togither things that are seuered in place and begetteth faith in vs which is the instrumenr and hande whereby we receiue and applye Christ with all his gifts vnto our selues as Iohn 17. Father I pray thee for such as shall beleeue in mee that they may be one as thou
O father art in me and I in thee that they also may be one in vs. He ereunto commeth the saying of Paule Ephe 3. Christ dwelleth in our hearts by faith Like wise Act 13. Byhim euery one that beleeueth is iustified that is absolued and discharged And Iohn 3. so many as beleeue in him shall not perish but haue euerlasting life Thus we see our fellowship with christ is from the spirit and by our 〈◊〉 The spirit is the principall worker faith is the meanes and the instrument Neither must this comunction seem vnto vs impossible throgh the great distance and distinction of place We see the sun daily with oureies which though it be scituate in the heauens and seperated from vs in place communicateth his effect and power vnto vs that dwell vppon the earth neither doe we maruell thereat and yet is the sunne but a creature subiect vnto vs and distributed to all the people vnder the whole heauen to serue their vse Shall not Christ then the sonne of righteousnesse make vs truely partakers of his flesh by the vnsearchable power of his spirit and the supernaturall gift of a liuely faith who can as easily ioyne together things farre off as those that are nigh Are not the faithfull seuered in place and scattered through the world ioyned as neerely together as the members are to become one body where of Christ is the head As the Apostle teacheth That which we haue seene heard declare we vnto you that ye may also haue fellowship with vs and that our fellowship also may be with the father with his son Iesus Christ. We see this like wise lively laid out before vs in the estate of 〈◊〉 though the husband and wife be sundred for a time and separated one farre from another yet the band of matrimony doth so ioyne and vnite them that the wife is one flesh with her 〈◊〉 albeit he be a thousand miles distant from her so is it betweene Christ and the faithfull he loued the church and gaue himselfe for it and they are members of his body of his flesh and of his bones which coupling and combining together with Christ is wrought as we haue shewed by the spirit principally by faith instrumentally by both most effectually We need not therfore any carnall and bodily presence of Christ to ioyne vs to him seeing it is truely and certainely perfourmed by these meanes whereby we grow to a perfect man in him For as the Sunne is more comfortable to the world by his refreshing beames and sweete influence being absent then if his naturall body and compasle lay vpon the earth so the flesh of christ being in the glory of his father much more comforteth and refresheth our soules and bodies by his heauenly grace and spirituall influence then 〈◊〉 he were present fleshly before our eyes And as the Sunne not discending from heauen nor leauing his place is not withstanding present with vs in our chambers in our houses in our hands and in our bosomes so christ being in the highest heauens not comming downe nor forsaking his glorious habitation yet neuerthelesse is present with vs in our congregations in our heartes in our praiers in our meditations and in the sacraments But of this we shall haue occasion to speake more in the chapter following and we haue already spoken of it in the former bookes Chap. 10. Of the third inward part of the Lords Supper THe third inward part is the body and blood of christ that is the body of our Lord deliuered vnto death for vs and his blood shed for the remission of sinnes and consequently whole christ This is the chiefest part of this sacrament For the bodie and blood of Christ are thus made and separated to be the liuelie meat of our soules and haue that force and efficacy of 〈◊〉 in our soules which bread and wine haue in our bodies This is the cause why Christ often calleth himselfe the bread of life Ioh. 6. I am that bread of life this is that bread of life vvhich commeth dovvn from heauen that he vvhich eateth of it shold not dye I am that liuing bread if any man eate of this bread he shall liue for euer Thus euery receiuer is giuen to vnderstand that as God doth blesse the bread and Wine in his Supper to preserue strengthen and comfort the body of the receiuer so Christ apprehended and receiued by faith doth nourish vs and preserueth body and soule vnto eternall life Hee died in the flesh that he might quicken vs and he poured out his blood 〈◊〉 hee might clense vs from our sinnes Wherefore whensoeuer as the Lordes ghests we see the bread on the Lordes table we must set our mindes on the body of Christ when we behold the cup of the Lord we must thinke vpon the blood of christ when we looke vpon the bread broken and the Wine poured out we must consider how the body of chirst was pierced punished crushed crucified torne tormented and his blood poured out for our sakes when we feele that by bread our bodies are nourished and strengthned and by the wine our vitall spirits are comforted and refreshed we beleeue that by the body of Christ deliuered to death for vs we are fed to euerlasting life and that by his blood poured out vpon the crosse our consciences are sāctified and we fele his quickning power which doth confirme vs in our communion with him Thus is this part of the supper spiritually to bee applyed thus are the bread and wine made a sacrament to vs and not bare signes thus the memorall of christs death is repeated whichalbeit it were once finished on the crosse and now his passion is past long ago yet to the faithfull in regard of the force it is stil fresh and alwaies present Now it is not without cause and good consideration that Christ would haue the bread first deliuered as a signe of his body and then afterward the wine as a signe of his blood seuerally and apart administred because his body and blood are not represented to vs as his humanity now dwelleth glorious in the heauens but as he was offered vp a sacrifice on the crosse his blood being 〈◊〉 out of his body For to the end it may be nourishment to vs it must be crucified For as corne of it selfe is not fit foode for vs vnlesse it bee threshed winnowed ground and baked for vs so is it touching christ he must suffer be crucified and dy that we may liue by him and raigne with him This is the truth which in this point is to be considered Now let vs lay open the vses which of vs are to be learned Is christ the inward part of the Lordes Supper represented by the bread and wine offered to all but rcceiued onely of such as are faithfull then his body is not inclosed in the bread or in the accidents ofbread nor his blood included in the wine or vnder
bridegroome shall be taken from them and then they shal fast But if he were remainning on the earth and contained in the pixe the bridegroome could not nor would not be taken away And the same Euangehst chap. 26. saith Ye haue the poore alwaies with you but me ye shal not haue alwaies Like wise Iohn 13. When Iesus knew that hie houre was come that he should depart out of this world vnto the father heeriseth from supper and chap. 14. I goe to prepare a place for you but I wil come againe if I go away to prepare a place for you I will receiue you vnto my selfe that where I am there may ye be also and verse 28 ye haue heard how I said vnto you I go awaie and will come vnto you And chap. 17. Now I am no more in the world but these are in the world and I come to thee Againe act 1. ye men of Galile why stand re gazing into heauen this Iesus which is taken vp from you into heauen shal so come as ye haue seene him go into heauen If then Christ according to his humane nature be not on earth how can his 〈◊〉 body be on euerie altar how can they eat him with their 〈◊〉 how can they swallow him downe their throat Ninthlie such an eating and 〈◊〉 of the bodie and blood of christ must be holden as is profitable and comfortable to the receiuers for nothing is more 〈◊〉 and fruitfull then these being rightlie receiued 〈◊〉 thereby remission of sinnes assured and eternall glory sealed vp vnto vs. But no fruite to our faith can come vnto vs by this kind of bodilie eating the bodie carnall drinking the blood of christ for wicked men haue as great a portion in this as the godly Nay by their owne doctrin it may be eaten of birds of beasts of Mice of Dogs of hogs of vermine to whom no profit no comfort no benefit can come whereas God woulde haue the flesh of the sonne of man to be eaten of those to whom it shal be auailable to life and saluation I am the liuing bread which came downe from heauen if any man eat of this bread he shall liue for euer and the bread that I will giue is my flesh which I wil giue for the life of the world Tenthly nothing can be more grosse barbarous or inhumane then to deuour mans flesh and to drinke mans blood What doth more transforme men into sauage and 〈◊〉 beasts Nay worse then beastes which deuour not their owne kind what is more contrarie to the purenes holines of Gods law then this The words of the Lord are pure words as the siluer tryed in a furnace of earth fined seuen fold The feare of the Lord is clean the law of God is spirituall holy iust and good And the gospell bringeth saluation to all degrees and teacheth vs that we should deny all vngodlines and worldly Iustes and that we should liue soberly righteously and godly in this present world But what can be more repugnant to godlines sobernes and righteousnes then to teare wirh the teeth and iawes mans flesh and to drink his blood from which the Capernaits abhorred what more crosseth the Religion of Christ the law of god and the light of nature then mā to deuour man and the bowels of one to be in the bowels of another And are not their stomackes strong to digest this meat did not god in the law command to abstain frō eating the blood of beasts and from strangled did not the Apostles for a time renue it amōg the christiās in respect of the weaknes of the Iews because Moses was read in their sinagogue euer saboth day to what 〈◊〉 should this be done if the church had tasted the blood of ch with their mouth or swallowed his body in their bellies And do not the Scythians and al the gentiles that are not vtterly voide of 〈◊〉 abstain from mans blood and 〈◊〉 deuouring his flesh wherefore these men are worse then the Scithians barbariās and Gentiles yea worse then the Canibals Indies that eat their enimies but these deuour ch whom they cal their L. and maist like Actcons houndes to compare one fable with another onely heer ly the differences they deuourd their Lord vnder the shape of a stag or Hart they eat their maist vnder the formes of bread and wine these fastned their mouth vpon their maister because they thoght him absent and not present vnder that shape they openly confesse their maister to be present and yet 〈◊〉 professe to deuour him with their iawes and swallow him in their stomacks wherefore these men are more cruell Eleuenthly if Christ be present in the Sacramant bodily and carnally in what body shall he be present Whether in his glorified body as he is in the heauens or in his mortall body as he was vpon the earth In one of these he must be present necessarily if he be present fleshly Whatsoeuer they answer they are taken onboth hands are stroken downe as with a sword that hath two edges Dare they saie he is thus present in his mortall bodie This cannot be For it is certaine he hath not now a mortall bodie but a glorified bodie this corruptible hath put on in corruption this mortall hath put on immortality and death is swallowed vp in victory This the Apostle confirmeth this the Scripture teacheth this Christian faith beleeueh Christ being raised from the dead dieth no more death hath no more dominion ouer him For in that he dyed he dyed once to sinne but in that he liueth he liueth to God Like wise Heb. 7. 25 This man because he endureth euer hath a priesthood which cannot passe from one to another seeing he euer hueth to make intercession for them And chapter 9. of the same Epistle he is entred into heauen not that he should offer himselfe often but he was once offered to take away the sins of many These testimonies duly considered he cannot be present in a mortal body What then will they be helped to say he is present in his glorified body Then he cannot nowe be present in the sacrament of the supper as he was present to the Apostles sitting at the table with them and preaching vnto them of his death he cannot be present in the same body that he did deliuer to his Disciples in the institution of his last supper For the body of Christ was then mortall and not glorified then he had not suffered death vpon the Crosle he was not risen and ascended into the heauens to sit at the right hand of his father so that they must seeke another place then these wordes of Christ This is my body this is my blood to build their reall presence and transubstantiation for they pointed out his mortall body because his body was not yet glorified when the sacrament was instituted Besides what a uniserable glorified body should this be to be
institution of the Supper and therefore coulde not be referred vnto that which as yet was not so that Christ speaketh of spirituall eating not of carnall by faith not by the mouth whereby wee abide in him and he in vs but many eate the Sacrament of his bodie that haue not him abiding in them not themselues in him Againe without this eating of his 〈◊〉 heere spoken of no man can attain eternal life but manie haue eternall life that neuer are partakers of the Lords Supper Besides how absurd is it for those to imagine that Christ naming bread speaketh of the Sacrament of the altar for they would haue no 〈◊〉 of bread to remain but one lie the figure shew and likenesse of bread so that according to the deuise of their new-found doctrine hee might more 〈◊〉 say I am no breude or I am the sher es of bread then as he doth I am the true bread Moreouer it christ promising to giue bread for the redemption of the world had pointed out the Sacrament of his Supper then he shuld haue giuen his flesh for the saluation of mankind not vpon the crosse but in his last Supper Wherefore then serued his death What neede was there to shed his blood on the crosse Furthermore if these words be referd to his Supper then the svpper maie bee celebrated without materiall breade and Wine without giuing of thankes without blessinge without consecration without breaking and distributing of the bread without pouring our and deliuering of the wine and without remembrance of the death of christ For in this place we haue no mention of these things And shal we imagine that the sacrament is spoken off where neither the matter nor forme nor word of institution nor minister nor externall rite is once remembred Lastly to eate the flesh of Christ and to drinke his bloode is nothing else but to come to Christ and to beleeue in Christ as appeareth in the text I am that bread of life he that commeth to me shall not hunger and he that beleeueth in me shall neuer thirst And speaking of faith hee faith No man can come to me except the father which hath sent me draw him This his truth is so cleere and euident that manye of the aduersaries are driuen to confesse it howsoeuer som of thē seeke to cast mistes before the eies of men that they may not espy it among the which are Sanders and Bellarmine And as we haue shewed before how the Schoolemen and Doctors of the church of Rome are together by the eares in sundry controuersies about the supper so are they about the true interpretation of Ioh. 6. some vnderstanding it of the sacramentall eating some of the spirituall eating and some of both Thirdly they obiect the omnipotency of God that he is able to turne the bread into the body and the Wine into his blood he is able to make it really present in heauen and earth and wheresoeuer Masse is said he is able to make a body to be in many places at once and yet not occupy a place I answer when all other reasons faile they flye to gods omnipotency as vnto a sanctuary and place of refuge But this will not proue a reall presence For albeit God be omnipotent and almighty must he therefore do al things yea offer violence to his owne body to maintaine their absurd and hereticall opinions of the reall presence and of transubstantiation Must his power attend vpon their fansies and dreames Cannot he be omnipotent except their positions and assertions be graunted There is no feare of Gods power albeit we withstand their carnall presence For touching the omnipotency of god we must obserue these two rules and conclusions First gods power is neuer to be opposed and set against his expresse wil plainly and certainly known for God is not contrary to himselfe Now then it is not enough to proue that God can turne bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ vnlesse they proue he will turne them into his flesh and blood We our selues can do many things which we do not and which we will not do so we must know it is with God he could haue added winges to man he might haue made many worlds if it had pleased him Christ of the stones could haue raysed vp children vnto Abraham Christ covld haue praied to his father in his afliction to send him more then 12. legions of angels but how then should the scriptures be fulfilled Wherefore we are not to reason of his power vnlesse wee bee assured of his wil reueiled in his word as we see Christ 〈◊〉 against the Saduces saith Ye are deceiued not knowing the scriptures nor the power of God Where we see he ioyneth the scriptures and the power of God together so 〈◊〉 he is truely said to be omnipotent because he can bring to passe whatsoeuer he will neither can the effect of his will be hindered or resisted Now it is the knowne will of God that christ should haue a true body that he might be a true man with his quantity and dimensions The second rule to be remembred is that in God there is no contradiction that whatsoere necessarily implieth a contradiction is an argument not of power but of weakenesse This the scripture decree this the fathers deliuer this their own schoolmen determine For in God is not yea and nay he abideth faithful he cannot deny himselfe he cannot dye hee cannot lie he cannot deny his word he cannot sin he cannot deceiue he cannot be deceiued These and such like 〈◊〉 cannot do which if he should doe he were not omnipotent For this were a token of impotency not of omnipotency of debility not of ability of want and weakenesse not of strength and power For in euery contradiction there is falsehood and a lie which cannot agree to God who is truth it selfe and therfore hee cannot make affirmation and negation truth and falsehood yea and nay to be true together which things are imposible Yea the popish schoolmen confute this popish fansie of the real presence when they teach that God cannot doe any thing wherein a contradiction is implyed and that all other things he can do and therefore is omnipotent Now who seeth not that herein is a manifest and notable contradiction that christs body is made visible and inuisible together finite and infinite circumscribed and vncircumscribed to haue dimension and to want dimension to be compassed in one certaine place and to be in a great number of Sacramentes in many places to be included in a little bread on earth which is contrary to that nature of a mans true body not to be contained therin as 〈◊〉 in heauen and there hauing the naturall properties of a true body which cannot 〈◊〉 brought within so narrow a compasse as the wafer cake Wherfore the absurd conceit of the reall presence cannot be maintained
messe of pottage before the blessing and as the Gadarens who preferred theirswine before christ therfore besought him to depart out of their coastes But let vs learne better thinges for all these shall vanish and come to nothing And what shall it profit a man if he win the whole world and lose his owne soule Let vs not labour for the meate that perisheth but for the meate that endureth to euerlasting life which the Sonne of man shall giue vnto vs. Therefore let vs remember whensoeuer we come to his table to be partakers of this Supper to come with a great longing after life and saluation from him as we desire bodily meate when we are hungry and drinke when we are thirsty then shall we by him be satisfied and saued otherwise we cannot lay hold on him we may receiue the outward signe but we cannot receiue the graces of christ offered vnto vs. Thus much of the third inward part of this Sacrament Chap. II. Of the fourth inward part of the Lords Supper THe last inward part of this sacrament of the supper remaineth which is the faithfull and christian receiuer As euery communicant sensibly and outwardly taketh the bread and wine giuen vnto him eating the bread and drinking the Wine for the nourishment of his body so the faithful receiuer apprehendeth and layeth hold on christ by the hand of faith and applyeth him particulally that the feeling of his true vnion with christ may daily be increased according to that saying Ioh. 1. As many as receiued him to them he gaue prerogatiue to be the sonnes of God euen to them that beleeue in his name And 1 Cor. 10. The cup of blessing which we blesse is it not the communion of the blood of Christ The bread which we breake is it not the communion of the body of Christ Wherefore when we do faithfully and worthily take the bread and the cup into our hands we must consider that withall we take and receiue Iesus christ himselfe offered vnto vs. When we eate the bread and drinke of the cup and so apply them to our bodily vses we must consider that we apply christ Iesus to our selues euen to our soules particularly that he is meate indeede and that he is drink indeed vnto vs if we bring with vs the hand of saith For faith is like the mouth of a vessell if you poure Lyquor vppon it all the daye longe vnlesse the mouth of the vessell bee open to receiue it the Water is spilt on the ground the vesselremaineth empty so may a man come to the lords table euery month receiuing the bread wine that represent whole christ yet except he bring with him faith which is the mouth of the soule hee receiueth not Christ vnto a spirituall life to be his righteousnes and sanctification And this is the reason why we receiue a little portion and a small quantity as well of bread as wine because the end of our eating and drinking serueth for the sanctification of the spirit not for the silling of the body Now let vs see what vses are offred to our consideration in the meditation of this truth First seeing onely the faithfull are partakers of the things signifyed in this Sacrament we see all doe not receiue alike there is a difference to be made among receiuers But as you snatch after the leaues of the tree and let go the fruit want the profit of their labour so is it among many men in this worlde who take the signe of Christ but let goe Christ. Nowe as Moses intreating of thinges cleane and vncleane noteth out foure sorts of beasts some onely chew the cud and some onely diuide the hoofe some neither chew the cudde nor diuide the hoofe and some both chew the cud diuide the hoofe or as in the dayes of the Gospell some were circumcised in heart not in flesh as Titus some were circumcised in the flesh not in the hart as Iudas some were circumcised neither in flesh nor in the spirit as the gentiles and some were circumcised both in the flesh and in the spirit as Timothy so is there a difference among receiuers some receiue Christ onely spiritually not sacramentally some onely sacramentally not spiritually some neither receiue him spiritually nor Sacramentally and some receiue him both spiritually and Sacramentally Of these we will speake 〈◊〉 and in order as they haue bin propounded The spirituall eating is by faith whereby we are made one with Christ and partakers of his benefits without the Sacramentes where of Christ speaketh He that eateth my 〈◊〉 and drinketh my blood dwelleth in me and I in him Thus to eat him is to beleeue in him and therfore he vseth these words as being of one force to beleeue in him and to eat him to drinke him and to come vnto him This is the 〈◊〉 of God that ye beleeue in him vvhom he hath sent I am that bread of life hee that commeth to mee shall not hunger and he that beleeueth in me shall neuer thrist Againe Christ attributeth the same fruit and effect to them that beleeue in him that hee doth to them which eat his body drink his blood therefore by eating and drinking hee meaneth nothing but beleeuing He that eateth my flesh and drinketh my blood hath eternal life And in the 40. verse of the same chapter he saith This is the will of my father that euerie one that beleeueth in the sonne should haue cternall life and I vvill raise him vp at the last day Heerby we may see that Christ attributeth the same to beleeuing which in the other place hee did to eating and 〈◊〉 so that the meaning of Christ is that to beleeue in him is to eat him And thus many receiue Christ eating and drinking his body and bloode that neuer came to the Sacramentes Heere 〈◊〉 some will obiect If this doctrine be true then are the Sacraments needlesse For if we may 〈◊〉 christ by faith spiritually without any vse or comming to the Lordes supper to what ende serueth the Supper It seemeth by this to be made void and superfluous God forbid for the sacraments are the holy ordinances of Christ by his blessing appointed for our help and benefitte so that the most perfect christians of the strongest faith haue need to seeke the strength ofsaith against weaknes and wauering in the promises of God Notwithstanding we must confesse to the glorie of god and the great comfort of manie persons that the faithfull soule maie and doth often feed vpon christ to saluation beside the vse of the sacrament For the spirituall grace is not of necessitie tied to the outward signes as if without them God cannot or doth not sometimes bestow the same We see in the acts of the Apostles Cornelius and his company was sealed with the spirit of God before the receiuing of the outwarde sacrament Abraham beleeued the
promise being stronge in faith and vnder hope beleeued aboue hope before circumcision was giuen vnto him Thus also the beleeuing theefe vpon the crosse though he did nener receyue the sacrament of christ yet he did eat the body and drinke the blood of christ to eternal life so that he beleeued in him and was the same day with him in paradise He was not crucified for the profession of christ but was condemned for the merit of his transgression neither did he suffer because he beleeued but he beleeued while he suffered He was not baptized he receiued not the Lords supper yet his saith saued him spiritually eatinge the true food of euerlasting life Rom 10. With the hart man beleeueth vnto rightcousnesse and with the mouth man confesseth vnto saluation for the scripture saith whosoeuer beleeueth in him shall not be ashamed According to that in the prophet The iust shall liue by faith And Iohn 11. I am the resurrection and the life he that beleeueth in me though he were deade yet he shall liue and whosoeuer liueth and beleeueth in me shall neuer dy This ministreth great comfort in trials and tribulations to consider that howsoeuer by sickenes by persecution by imprisonment we may be seperated from the Supper of christ yet we cannot be seperated from christ though we may bee hindered from eating him sacramentally yet we cannot be hindred from eating him spiritually though we may bee kept from eating the bread and drinking of the cup of the Lord yet we cannot by the malice of Satan or violence of his instrumentes be kept from feeding vppon christ by faith to saluation Againe other receiue christ onely sacramentally and not spiritually who are partakers of the outwarde Elements of bread and wine and so receiue the bare signes of the body and blood of Christ. For as they are said to eat the true body of christ spiritually which receiue christ with the mouth of the soul that is by a true faith and are truely ioyned to him so they eat him sacramentally that handle eate and drinke the signes and seales of his true body but because they want faith they want the means to receiue christ himselfe Thus many haue bin baptized that were neuer regenerated and inwardly purged as appeareth in Simon the sorcerer whose hart was not vpright so that albeit he were partaker of the Sacrament of regeneration and repentance yet he remayned in the gall of bitternes and in the bond of iniquity So many haue resorted to the Lords Supper that neuer drew nourishment or strength of Faith from him to life and saluation and thus many thousands in the worlde come to the sacraments 〈◊〉 some neither receiue Christ spiritually nor sacramentally and such are they that neuer come to christ nor receiue the sacraments of christ such are they that liue out of the bosome of the church as it were out of the Arke of Noah as Infidels Iewes Turks Saracens Persians and such like these mast needes perish in the deepe floodes of Gods endles iudgements For as christ is the fountaine of life and the wel-spring of all heauenly treasures that accompany saluation and the Sacraments his instrumentes whereby these graces are conueyd vnto vs and the church the parties to whome both these belong so such as are without Christ without the sacramentes without grace without the church and consequently without the priuiledges that pertaine to the heires of his eternall kingdom lye in darkenes and in the shaddowe of death and are as Dogges to whome the childrens bread doth not belong Lastly other receiue Christ both spiritually by faith and sacramentally with the mouth who are partakers both of the signes and of the things signified who eat of the bread of the L. the bread which is 〈◊〉 L. And thus the apostles thatsat at the table with christ at his last supper did receiue him applying the outward part to their bodies and the inward part to their souls Also thus al the faithful that come to the table of ch to the end of the worlde do receiue him spiritually and sacramentally to the great comfort of their own souls thus must euery one of vs seek to come to ch whensouer we come to the sa of ch Wherfore we see what difference and distinction is to be made between those that receiue christ that we be not deceiued in the manner of the receiuing of him Againe seeing onely the faithfull are the inward part of this sacrament it is not to bee administred to such as shew themselues vnfaithfull and vnrepentant so farre as they may be known so to be Such as are without faith without repentance without sanctification haue no right and interest in this blessed communion For if euery one should without difference be admitted and receiued the Church of God which is a blessed fellowship of Saintes should be turned into a stye of vncleane Swine a stable of vncleane beastes a cage of 〈◊〉 birdes and as Christ speaketh the house of God should bee made a 〈◊〉 of theeues God did shut out of his sanctuary euery stranger vncircum cised in heart and in the 〈◊〉 he commaunded also the priestes to put a difference between the holy and prophane betweene the cleane and vnclean 〈◊〉 her to belongeth that saying of Christ Math. 7. Giue ye not that which is holy to Dogs neither cast ye your pearles before svvine least they tread you vnder their 〈◊〉 and 〈◊〉 againe all to rent you If therefore such as remaine in grosse and open sinnes of blasphemy swearing contempt of Gods worde adultery 〈◊〉 vncleanesse wantonnesse drunkennesse maliciousnesse and such like offer themselues at any time with the rest of the members of the church to partake this supper and as it wer insectious leapers come into the Lords host to be admitted to the sacrifices it is the Pastors duty to vse the power of the keies and barre them from this Sacrament vntill there appeare in them the testimonies of repentance and the confession of their offences Should not the shepheard feuer the rotten and 〈◊〉 sheepe from the fold Doth not a little leauen sower the whole lump Wil an housholder admit into his house euery one that vanteth himselfe to be of the houshold The Idothers by the light of nature would not suffer all to approch to their sacrifices their heathnish sacrifices but cryed out that prophane persons should be packing and get them thence and not presume to offer with vnwashen hands Such as haue a very cleere 〈◊〉 aine and spring of Waters committed vnto them if they see 〈◊〉 swine come to warde it must not suffer them to trouble the spring and annoy the water Shall they then that haue the sacred and hallowed spring not common water but of the precious blood of Christ springing vp to eternallife committed vnto them suffer such as are notoriously 〈◊〉 with sinne to prophane the bloode
christ our sauiour they neither eate his flesh nor drinke his blood Wee must open the eyes of our faith to beholde him and the mouth of our soule to receiue him for by faith onely we are made partakers of him which the vngodly want he that drinketh of the blood of christ shal neuer be more a thirst Thirdly we know that satan the prince of darknes ruleth in all the harts of the children of disobedience sitteth in their consciences as the God of this worlde and filleth them full of iniquity as wee see in the example of Iudas Now if these receive the body of Christ then christ and the deuill shoulde dwell in one subiect togither and bee ioynt-possessors of one and the same house but this cannot be these cannot be at one these can neuer be friends reconciled there is no fellowship between righteousnes and vnrighteousnes ther is no communion between light and darkenesse there is no concord betweene Christ and Beliall Fourthly the Apostle teacheth that where christ is he worketh mortification and dying to sinne Rom. 8 If any haue not the spirit of Christ the same is not his and if Christ be in you the body is dead because of sin but the spirit is life for righteousnes sake But the wicked are not dead to sin they are dead in their sinnes and trespasses and they haue sinne not onelie remaining but raigning in them therfore christ cannot be in them Fiftly where christ is there are all things necessary to saluation and to whom God giueth his sonne to him he giueth iustification sanctification redemption repentance remission of sinnes and eternall life as Rom. 8. If God be on our side who shall be against vs Who spared not his owne sonne but gaue him for vs all to death how should he not with him giue vs all things also But the wicked haue not these gifts accompaning saluation they are not iustified they are not sanctified they are not regenerated therefore they cannot haue christ from whom these flow Sixtly we are charged to try and proue our owne hartes whether Christ be in vs or not that thereby we may discerne of our estate and standing in the faith 2 Cor. 〈◊〉 Proue your selues whether ye are in faith examine your selues know ye not your owne selues how that Iesus Christ is in you except ye be reprobates To what purpose serueth this tryall and examination if christ may bee in vs and yet remaine reiected Wherefore Christ cannot be in vs if we bee not approued but refused of God Lastly the Apostle chargeth the Church of the Corinthians not to eate things sacrificed to idols in the idols temple because they cannot be partakers of christ and the Dinels nor drinke of the cvp of Christ and of the cup of Dyuels 1 Cor. 10. 20. 21. These thinges which the Gentiles sacrifice they sacrifice them to Diuels and not vnto god and I would not that ye should haue fellowship with the Diuels ye cannot be partakers of the Lords Table and of the table of Diuels Where hee sheweth that a man may come polluted with idoll sacrifices to the Lords Supper but then he cannot be partaker of Christ indeede and in truth Thus we see the doctrine of the church of Rome striken to the ground which hold it as a principle of their faith and teach it to others that wicked men do receiue and eate christ himselfe in the supper making christ indeede to be no Christ. For whereas wee haue shewed that this sacrament consisteth of the outward signs which are bread and wine and the inward truth represented by them which is Christes body and blood according to the doctrine of the holy scripture and the common consent of all antiquity the Romanists haue turned this trueth topsie turuie and haue laid a new plat-forme of the 〈◊〉 of the Supper Hence it is that they haue abolished the signes of bread and wine and make Christ Iesus an outward parte as it were thrusting him out of the dores to be receiued of all both good and bad and the grace of Christ to be the inward part taken only of the faithfull Thus they make a deuorcement and a separation between Christ and his sauing graces which can neuer be parted and deuided For whosoeuer receiueth Christ pertaketh the merits and graces of christe and whosoeuer enioyeth the graces of christ imbraceth withall christ himselfe Besides if christ be the signe and the sanctifying graces of Christ the thing fignified according to the rule of the church of Rome what shall we say of the accidents and shewes of bread and wine whereunto shall they be reduced what parte shall they act and play in this comedy wherefore we hold it as a strong trueth which we haue euinced by sundrie reasons that wicked men are not made partakers of christ Chap. 12. Of the first vse of the Lords supper HItherto we haue spoken of all the partes of this sacrament as well outwatde as inwarde which is the first 〈◊〉 to be considered in the doctrine of them as we shewed before now we are to handle the vses or endes of the Lordes Supper which are principally these three first to shew forth with thanksgiuing the death crosse and sufferings of christ Secondly to teach vs our communion and growth with and in christ thirdly to declare our communion and growth in and with our brethren In these three standeth the knowledge of those rich and greate benifites which are bestowed vponall worthy communicants which haue sactified and prepared their heartes for this holy action These thinges being duely considered doe directly condemne the church of Rome who burying these true ends of the Lords Supper the commemoration of his passion the merit of his crosse our communion with Christ and our fellowship one with another haue altered it like the ship-mans hose into all forms and fashions and make it profitable for all purposes for peace and war for tempestes and calme weather for the fruites of the earth and distemperature of the ayre for the whole and sick for men and beasts for the liuing and for the dead And to begin with the last as none of the least corruptions of this Sacrament it was concluded in a Counsel that as a prayer therin is made for the liuing so the remembrance of the dead is to be made in all Masses It is adiudged an excellent remedy against storms and tempests of the sea and therefore al sea-men are warned in times of danger to call to their mindes and remember to sing the Masses d which are accustomed to be sung for tēpests And as they make it good in storms so they make it serue turn in the day of battell to saue them from the sword of the enemy for the Priests are charged to say the Masses vsed for them that go to wars Besides these abuses they make it auaileable to purge and cleer offendors suspected of any crime
and pricked with vnfained sorrow for all our iniquities This is the right vse the true end and the sound comfort following and flowing from the death of christ To conclude we must learne and hold for euer that we haue the beg nning and chiefe cause in our selues which did crucifie christ and crush him with most bitter sorrows let vs then be reuenged of our sins and do al despite we can vnto them let vs endite them arraigne them accuse them condemne them and naile them to his crosse let vs kil thē mortifie them and bury them in his graue for euer This is the first end of the supper which is sanctified by the breaking of the bread and pouring out of the wine declaring vnto vs that as the body of our lord was broken and by violent meanes afflicted so his blood gushed out and flowed plentifully out of his gaping and bleeding wounds This must be our meditation whensoeuer we come to the lords table Chap. 13. Of the second vse of the lords supper THe second vse of the lords supper is our spirituall vnion and communion with christ This the Apostle declareth The cup of blessing which we blesse is it not the communion of the blood of christ The bread which we breake is it not the communion of the body of christ Whereby he meaneth that the faithfull which come conscionably worthily to the lords table are ioyned and vnited to whole Christ by the bread Sacramentally by faith instrumentally by the holy ghost spiritually and by them all most effectually For we take the bread into our hands and likewise we take the cup into our hands as christ commaunded saying Take ye eate ye drinke ye diuide ye Neither do we lay them apart or hide them aside or reserue them in a boxe or abstaiue from them but when we haue taken them we eate we digest them we are nourished by them and they are turned into our substance So christ being eaten of the Godly by faith is vnited to them by his spirit as we haue shewed before whereby they are made one with christ and he one with them And as meate plentifully prepared daintily dressed and only seene vpon the table doth not nourish the body or take away hunger so if the gospell be preached and the sacraments administred except we apply the promises of the gospel and beleeue that christ withal his gifts is ours they prosit nothing towards our saluation Such therefore as lawfully and worthily come to the lords supper as to a table richly furnished and to a banket liberally prouided must not onely generally beleeue that Christ suffered in the flesh and dyed for sinners but particularly for themselus yea communicateth himselfe and al his gifts to them aboundantly as certainly as themselues eate of the bread and drinke of the cup. This vnion and communion is neere and wonderfull great and therefore the apostle fitly calleth it a mistery euen a great mistery speaking of christ and of the church For what vnion can bee greater then that which is betweene the thing nourishing and the thing ' nourished We haue nothing in Adam but that which conueyeth death vnto vs so that is is needefull to be ioyned to one which maie giue life to vs that as we die in Adam so wee may liue in him This vnion cannot by reason be expressed or fully vnderstood As Christ in the daies of his flesh had a dubble kindred one earthly and carnal kindred the other spirituall that by faith receiued his worde and beleeued in his name of whom he said Behold my mother and my Brethren for whosoeuer shall do my fathers will which is in heauen the same is my brother sister and mother so is it in this vnió and felloship with him one is outward and bodily which al mankinde hath with him in that he is partaker of our flesh and blood the other inward and spirituall whereby we are made partakers of him and of al his sauing graces to euerlasting life As Christ was borne of the Virgin Mary and vnited our nature to him taking vpon him not the Angels nature but the seed of Abraham euery reprobate hath this vnion with him in that he tooke vpon him the shape of a man but there is a mysticall and marueilous vnion whereby he dwelleth in vs by faith whereby we are truely coupled to him made partakers of him deliuered from sin and made heires of euerlasting life quickning and sustaining vs as food which preserueth the life of the bodie If the arme ioined to the body haue no life no sence no benefit of vitall spirits it is no part of the bodie though it be vnited to it so the wicked liuing without faith are as it were sencelesse they haue no forgiuenes of sinnes no sanctification no saluation and therefore are no true members of Christ. If he poure not life and grace into them they are not his members if he kill not sinne in them they are not vnited spirituallie vnto him The bodily vnion with him shall profit nothing it is the spirit that giueth life Seeing then the receiuing of the bread and wine which turne into our substaunce teacheth the misticall vnion between Christ and his members we learne first from hence that all the faithfull and godly are truly made partakers of Christ and his graces as the members receiue life from the head and the tree moisture from the root For euen as the wife ioyned to her husband in marriage is thereby made partaker of his body and goods hath interrest with him in the commodities of this life and loketh for norishment food fellowship protection and gouernement from him so being made one with christ we are indued with his he auenly gifts and blessings This must be our comfort in all dangers and tentations in all tryals and assaults to consider that we are one with christ we are not only dear vnto him but nearely ioyned with him as members to the head as the wife to the husband and as the braunches to the vine and therefore can neuer be seperated from him in life or death Secondly this streight vniting of the faithfull to Christ sheweth that the vngodly haue no part nor fellowship in him and with his graces though they be ioyned to a communion of the same nature and haue many common gifts of knowledge and vnderstanding yet Christ neuer dwelleth in them with his sauing graces and with his spirite of sanctification he possesseth not their harts he worketh not in them a particular perswasion of their reconciltation to God neither an hungring desire aboue all things to bee at vnity and peace with him neyther a distaste and dislike of sinne neyther the comfortable spirite of grace and prayer all which are in some measure in all the saithful Wherfore although they may bee cloathed with the flesh of Christ they cannot be said to be couered with the grace of Christ although they be
in examining ourselues before we come No great thing can bee done well without good care and endeuour In all humane things of any importance nothing is attempted or atchiued without some preparation more or lesse going before according to the nature of the matter Before men sit downe to eat or drinke their ordinary food before they sleepe before they wash before they walke before they work some preparation goeth before Before the ground is tilled it is prpared Before the law was deliuered before the Saboth was sanctified before the sacrifice was offered before the Passeouer was killed before the worde was receiued before prayers were vttered the heart was in some sort prepard One of the greatest duties required of vs is to dy well whereunto all our life should be a preparation and euery day should be a meditation of death that we may not be found vnready and vnprepared when the bridegroome shall come So the Supper of the Lord being an excellent misterie and the food of our soules whereby we receiue Christs body and blood there is required of euery one a trying prouing and examining themselues least seeking comfort by their comming they bring vpon themselues iudgement through want of preparing This trueth deliuered hath the witnesse and consent of many Scriptures for the confirmation thereof The Prophet 2. Chron. 35. saith Kill the passeouer and sanctifie your selues and prepare your Brethren that they may do according to the word of the Lord by the hand of Moses And the holy man Iob when the daies of the banketting of his children were gone about sent and sanctified them and rose vp earely in the morning and offered burnt offerings according to the number of them all Also the wiseman 〈◊〉 4. Take heede to thy foote when thou enterest into the house of God and be more neare to heare then to giue the sacrifice of fooles for they know not that they do euill Likewise the prophet Ieremy Lament 3. Wherefore is the liuing man sorrowfull Man suffereth for his sinne let vs search and try our waies and turne againe to the Lord. To the same purpose the prophet Dauid saith Psal. 4. Tremble and sinne not examine your owne heart vpon your bed and be still and Psal. 119. I haue considered my waies and turned my feete into thy testimonies The Apostle Paule is very direct in this point as Gal. 6. 4. Let euery man proue his owne worke and then shall he haue reioycing in himselfe onely and not in any other Also 1 Cor 11. Let a man examine himselfe and so let him eate of this bread and drinke of this cup where he speaketh of purpose of the Lordes Supper So then it is a duty required of all persons that come to the Lordes Table or any other exercise of religion to search their owne heartes and consciences narrowly how they bee affected and disposed touching the discharge of this duty And if wee would farther consider the necessity of this examination we fhould finde it standeth vpon many sufficient reasons and causes as vpon certaine foundations that cannot be remoued Doe we not see men when they come into the presence of some honourable and Noble person to addresse themselues to doe it with all renerence Ioseph being sent for to come before Pharaoh King of Egypt shaued his hed and changed his raiment and pro 23. When thou sittest downe with a ruler at meate consider diligently what is before thee Therefore when wee sit at the Lordes table to sup with him and are admitted to be his welcome ghuests we ought much more to be caresul to sanctifie our soules with al solemnity Consider with me a little our own practise We will not put our ordinary meates in a dish vnwashed nor our common drinks into a cup vnclensed and shall we put the signes of bread and Wine which are chosen instruments to conueigh Christ vnto vs into vnsanctisied soules vnprepared heartes and 〈◊〉 consciences Doth not our sauiour Christ reproue such hy pocrisie when he saith Ye can discerne the face of the skie and 〈◊〉 you not discerne the signes of the times And if that vpper chamber wher the supper was first administred were trimmed and garnished should not our hearts be prepared into the which it is receiued Shall Christ himselfe offer to come into our houses and shal not we sanctifie our harts to entertain such a ghest This were to great carelesnesse and contempt Moreouer waigh with me the profit that commeth to our selues to moue vs to this examination The comfort is great the fruite is excellent the benifit is vnspeakeable to those that partake the mystery of the Supper worthily they receiue christ they receiue remission of sinnes they receiue saluation they receiue assurance of eternall life For if the woman diseased with an yssue of blood loe twelue yeare comming behind Christ and touched onely the hemme of his garment was made whole then assuredly the spirituall receiuing of the body and blood of christ shal not bring lesse profit if the faith be equall which notwithstanding is wholly lost without preparation Ponder with me also how by neglect of this triall of our selues not onely this profit is lost but the Sacrament it selfe is after a sort defiled For howsoeuer it be in it selfe by the ordinance of God an holy and heauenly banket yet to the vngodly vnregenerate and vnsanctified it becommeth vnholy and wholly earthly as the prophet Haggai teacheth Chapter 2. If a polluted person touch an holy thing it shall be vncleane The person must be holy that will haue sound profit by the holy thinges of God the man that is vnholy defileth every thing he toucheth the polluted Person polluteth all thinges For as to the pure all thinges are pure but vnto them that are defiled and vnbeleeuing is nothing pure but euen their mindes and consciences are corrupted so the prophane Person defileth all thinges and turneth wholesome meate into noysome poyson We must therefore vse sanctifyed thinges with sanctfyed hearts and for spirituall meate we haue spirituall vessels Furthermore marke the great danger punishment that is procured and purchased by this want of preparation For the vn worthie receiuer is guilty of the body and blood of Christ as the Apostle specifieth 1 cor xi Whosoeuer shall eate this bread and drinke the cup of the lord vnworthily shall be guiltie of the body and blood of the Lord. And againe He that eateth and drinketh vnworthily eateth and drinketh his own iudgement because he 〈◊〉 not the lords body for this cause many are sick and weak among you and manie sleepe Where he teacheth that such as come vnworthily vnreuerently and otherwise then such misteries should be handled doe despise and treade vnder their feet Iesus Christ himselfe prouoke the Lords 〈◊〉 and bring on themselues swift damnation Not that he is carnally and bodily present but because the reproache which is vsed in the signes
toucheth the bodie and bloode of Christ signified by them Euen as if a man shoulde rent disgrace deface spit vppon tread and trample vnder his feet and villanouslie abuse the image seale and letters patents of a Prince he should be adiudged guilty of a grieuous crime against the person of the Prince himselfe not which hee receiueth but despiteth so such as come vnthankefully and vnworthily to this supper are guilty of his body not which they haue eaten but which they haue refused and reiected being offered vnto them and therefore are guilty of their owne death inasmuch as God with the signes offereth his owne sonne Wherefore seeing the presence of God moueth seeing our owne profit perswadeth seeing our owne practise furthereth seeing the defiling of the Sacrament and the danger of vnworthy receiving teacheth and lastly seeing our owne iudgement in humane affaires when the daunger is not so great nor the losse so certaine cryeth out for this necessary preparation it standeth vs vpon before we enter into this holy worke whereunto of our selues wee are more vnfit and vnto warde and which in it owne nature is most profitable to set our selus before the Lord who shal examine and iudge the quicke and the dead to search into our owne wayes and to keepe a sessions in our own soules to looke into our secret and hidden corruptions how wee haue gone forward or backward in golinesse to try whether we haue a knowledge feeling and disliking of our sinnes and whether we haue any feare of Gods iudgments or faith in his promises or hope in his mercie to iudge our selues that we may not be iudged of the Lord to labour to find out our speciall sinnes striuing against them by earnest praier to God and condemning them for euer in our selues If we would thus iudge our selues wee should not be condemned with the world Let vs be grieued for our naturall blindnes Let vs acknoledge confusion of faces to be due vnto vs. Let vs deepely imprint in our owne harts the horror of our sins past and present The more wee perceiue and discerne our own vnworthinesse the greater shal be our fitnes to come to this Sacrament and the lesse we espy our owne imperfections the more we incuire the danger of Gods iudgements So then to touch vs with true 〈◊〉 and to break our stony hearts in pieces with remembrance of our daily offences let vs often meditate on the death and passion of Christ who was forsaken scorned buffeted and crucified for vs he was led as a lambe to the slaughter and shunned not the shame of the Crosse then the powers of heauen 〈◊〉 wer moued Iudea was darkned the earth quaked the stones claue in sunder the the graues opened the Sunne was in the ful-moone eclipsed the vaile of the temple was rent the dead were raysed the theese repented the centurion glorified God and the whole order of nature was changed All these thinges 〈◊〉 set before vs the he inousnesse of our sins and the greatnesse of gods wrath which could not be appeased but by crucifieng of the body and by shedding of the blood of Christ which is represented to vs as in a glasse in this Supper Thus wee haue shewed by testimonies and effectuall reasons that as in the passe-ouer they were commanded to chuse them a lambe on the tenth day but to kill him on the fourteenth so that they had 4. daies liberty betweene the separating and the killing of him for preparation and sanctification of themselues in like manner in the supper which is the same to vs that the passe-ouer was to the 〈◊〉 the spirit of God chargeth this duty vpon vs that we prepare our harts reuerently thereunto Now as we haue seene the necessity of this examination let vs consider what vses are to be made thereof Is it required of all communicants that come to the Lords table 〈◊〉 to examine themselues Then from hence it follo weth that all men are bound to know the word of God and to be skilfull in the scripture that thereby they 〈◊〉 be able to try their owne hearts and examine themselues by that rule But if the rule be vnknowne the tryall spoken off cannot be made the examination commaunded cannot be practised Especially there is required of vs the knowledge in the doctrine of the law not onely to be able to rchearse the words but to know the end and mcaning of them the speciall branches of them what are the duties commaunded what are the sinnes condemned for by the law commeth the knowledge of sinne and the Apostle had not knowne sinne but by the law for hee had not knowne last except the law had sayd thou shait not lust As then he that will try Golde from copper must haue his touch stone so he that will rightly examine his obedience must familiarly be acquainted with the Canon of the scriptures This our Sauiour teacheth Ioh. 5. Search the scriptures for in them ye thinke to haue eternalllife and they are they which testisie of me 〈◊〉 then we search them they will giue vs light to search our 〈◊〉 And the Apostle requireth the Colossians to haue the word of God dwell plentifully in them in al wisedome Wherefore he that said examine your selues ment we should also know the scriptures and especially the law of God which must be the glasse of our liues to behold our offences and the very ground-worke of this examination Againe we are charged to try out our waies and examine our selues Then we learne from hence to acknowledge a difference between baptisme and the lords supper For baptisme is due to the whole church and euery member thereof whether old or young to all infants who are the children of faithful parents that haue giuen their names to Christ and are entred into the profession of the Gospell And howsoeuer confession of faith fruits of repentance are required of the elder sorte as wee haue shewed yet touching infants it is susficiēt if they be born in the church of such as are members of the church But the Supper of the Lord belongeth only to such as are able to examine themselues to try their owne harts and to remember his death which things cannot agree with children As we see in the passe-ouer not all the children of the faithfull were admitted thereunto but onely such as could enquire and require a reason thereof and did desire to be instructed of their parents and such as had learned to make the law a frontlet before their eies and a signe vpon their hands that so the doctrine of God might not depait out of their mouths Besides if we consider the outward workes in both the Sacraments aright we shall plainely see the truth of this diuersity For in Baptisme the action of the minister is to wash the body with water which requireth not discretion in him that is to be baptized fo rasmuch as we
can clense and wash the things that are without reason without vnderstanding without sense and without life But in the sacrament of the supper a reuerent giuing an attentiue hearing a certaine vnderstanding of that which is spoken a wise receiuing and eating and a carefull considering of whom to take and what to take is required into the outward work how much greater iudgement is required to know that God the father giueth the body and blood of his sonne to be receiued by faith Thus then this examination maketh a distinction betweene both the sacramentes of the new testament and sheweth that it is not necessary to the saluation of infants that they com to the Lords table Thirdly seeing no man must presume to come thither without a serious examination of himselfe it debarreth from the Lords supper fiue sorts of persons to wit children furious and mad men ignorant persons prophane persons and all sorts of insidels First of all if there be a necessity of searching and trying our selues it excludeth all infants and children in age who vnderstand not what the holy spirit speaketh in this Sacrament what God the father offereth what the Sonne performeth and what faith receiueth they know not what it is to eate christ spiritually and to be nourished by him effectually Secondly all foolish furious and mad men being such as want the vse of naturally gifts of reason wit descretion and iudgement the defect whereof whatsoeuer they are in age and yeares maketh them as children in gifts not being able to examine themselues are to be separated Thirdlyly howsoeuer many haue yeares of discretion and the common vse of naturall gifts of vnderstanding yet if they neither haue the knowledge of God nor the knowledge of themselues nor the knowledge of the doctrine of the Sacramentes and other fundamentall points of religion they are not to be admitted but refused Fourthly if they haue all these things and want neither ripenesse of age nor yeares of discretion nor vse of reason nor knowledge of the doctrine which is according to godlinesse yet if they remaine prophane vngodly vnrepentant stubborne malicious reuenging open contemners of God of godlinesse and of his word idolaters adulterers blasphemers drunkards and such in whom appeareth no amendment of life these and such like are not interessed in this Sacrament Lastly it excludeth and shutteth out all such as are without God in the world all Atheists Insidels Turkes Iewes and Heretikes all such as haue not yealded themselues to the Church of GOD and haue not made profession of their faith and such as are worthily excommunicated from the Church by the power of the keies Whereby we see that al infants and children that want years all furious and foolish persons that want the vse of reason all blind and ignorant persons that want the knowledge of God and of themselues all vnrepentant persons that bring not with them faith and repentance all infidels and vnbeleeuers with others that are out of the bosome of the church are to bee kept backe from this Supper being such as either cannot or will not submit themselues to this holy necessary duty of examination thereby hauing no right or title to come to his table For such as haue not the church to be their mother cannot be nourished with this meate of the church to wit the Supper of the Lord. Fourthly if all persons are to prepare themselues to this Sacrament then none are willingly and wilfully to abstain and refraine from comming vnto it For as such sinne grieuously who present themselues vnworthily to this blessed communion so do they greatly offend on the other side that ofset purpose absent themselues from this spirituall banket prouided for them God is dishonored both these waies as well by receiuing vnreuerently as by abstayning carelesly from this Sacrament For he lyeth vnder an heauy curse deseruedly that doth any of the Lords works negligently Euen as the patient which being sicke maketh no account of the dyet which the Physition hath prescribed is no lesse blame worthy then he that abuseth it disorderly in as much as both sorts do it oftentimes to their danger and destruction so is he no lesse faulty that maketh that reckoning of the receit which the chiefe Physition of our soules the Lord Iesus hath appointed then he that misuseth and misapplyeth the same because both do it with great perill and hazzard to themselues We know that such as being bidden by the King to the wedding of his Sonne made light of it and refused to come were destroyed as wel as he that came without his wedding garment We know when the word of God is preached which is the power of God to saluation to all that beleeue such as absent themselues from the hearing of it perish iustly as wel as they that come without faith and repentance We know when the passeouer was celebrated such persons as were negligent to obserue and keepe the same according to all that the Lord had commanded Moses were to be cut off from his people Because they brought not the offering of the Lord in his due season they shal be are their sin In like manner such as neglect to come to this communion and abstaine from it for feare of communicating vnworthily depriue themselues of great comfort And this is the very cut-throat of al godlines and religion For why doe they not by like proportion of reason refrain from inuocation and calling vpon the name of god for feare of praying amisse And why may they not absent themselues from hearing the word of God fearing to hear amisse So that if this pretence were a lawful warrant to abstaine from the Lords Supper for feare of vnworthy receiuing we might bid all godlines farewel in asmuch as it openeth a gap for men to abstaine from performing all duties of piety and godlines Wherfore let not such persons flatter themselues with vaine excuses and lying words that cannot profit neither daube with vntempered morter saying we are vnworthy we cannot come rather let them labor to shake off their vnworthines and to cast away euerything that presseth down and the sin that hangethso fast on that so they may be worthy receiuers Let them not contemne the commaundement of christ which saith take ye eate ye do this in remembrance of me Christ hath commanded we must obey he saith come shall we be so vnthankfull to say we will not come He calleth shall we not answer He biddeth his ghests shall we make excuses He sendeth his messengers and prepareth his feast shall we not prouide and prepare to eate thereof He offereth himselfe vnto vs shall we contemne the blessed remembrance of his death and passion euen the price of our redemption and shut our selues from the communion which the faithfull haue with him and one with another So that wee are to perswade our owne hearts that God is prouoked to anger as well by negligence in abstaining as by
vnworthinesse in receiuing the Supper Chap. 16. Of the knowledge of God the first part of examination AS we haue waighed the necessity of preparing and examining our selues so let vs consider the manner how it is to be performed Such as will in an holy manner prepare themselues to celebrate the Lords Supper to the glory of God and comfort of their owne soules must diligently acquaint themselues with these 4. pointes with knowledge faith repentance and reconciliation to those whom they haue offended It is required of all persons that come to this Sacrament to know the grounds of religion and vnderstande the doctrine of the sacramentes Secondly to beleeue in christ and to looke for saluation in him alone inasmuch as there is no other name vnder heauen by which we must be saued So then we must come with faith which is the hand to apprehend christ Thirdly to abhorre and detest our sins to hate them with an vnfained hatred as our deadly and most dangerous enemies and to haue godly sorrow for them which may cause repentance not to be repented off Lastly to loue our bretheren truely and sincerly yea euen our enemies If we find not these things in our selues we must carefully vse al holy meanes appointed for this purpose to begin them in vs otherwise our estate will proue to be fearefull and dangerous We must with al sincerity conscience and zcale vse prayer the word read and preached conference meditation and such like helpes as may further them in vs. If we do find them in vs though feeble and in great want and weakenesse we are not to abstaine from the sacrment but to come thereunto to seeke strength of faith encrease of obedience Wherfore our sauiour calleth such vnto him come to me all ye that are weary and sore laden and I will ease you take my yoke on you and ye shall find rest vpon your soules for my yoake is easie and my burden is light And Chap 12. A brused reede shall he not breake and smoking flaxe shall he not quench till he bring forth iudgment vnto victory Touching the first we are to obserue that such as wil come aright to the lords Supper must haue the knowledge of Gods word which is the foundation and ground-work of faith We must know what to beleeue and must learne the doctrine of saluation out of the Scripture Our Sauiour Christ in that heauenly prayer which he made a little before his passion vseth these words to his father This is eternall life to know thee to be the onely very God and whom thou hast sent Iesus Christ. We must know how miserable all men are of themselues that we are seperated from God the children of wrath by nature as wel as others and the very firebrands of hel They that want this knoledge cannot iudge aright of the partes and vses of this Sacrament nor desire this heavenly meate which nourisheth to eternall life So then knowledge must necessarily go before faith for it is the nature of faith to beleeue that which it knoweth and therefore where there is small knowledge there is a little faith and where there is no knowledg ther can be no faith according to the doctrine of the Apostle Roman 10. Faith commeth by hearing and hearing by the word of God The knowledge required of vs when we approach to this Sacrament standeth in these two pointes first in the knowledge of God Secondly in the knowledge of our selues In these two braunches standeth the first part of examinarion And these two pointes are so neerely ioyned and knit together that no man can throroughly know God vnlesse he know himselfe and no man can haue the perfect knowledge of himselfe except he know God in whom he liueth moueth and hath his being Vnder these two heads many particular points are containd necessary to be known of those that offer themselues to bee partakers of this sacrament First that there is onely one God that hath made himselfe knowne in three persons the Father the sonne and the Holy-ghost Secondly that God made man and all other creatures good and gouerneth all thinges well Thirdly man did fall through the entisement of the Deuill and his own wilful disobedience in breaking the commandements of God Fourthly there are ten commaundements diuided into two tables where of the foure first commaundements concern our duties to God the sixe last our dutyes toward our neighbour Fiftly we cannot keepe these commandements nor any one of them but we breake them daily in motion in thought in worde and in deede the breache where of deserueth the cursse of God that is all miseries in this life death in the ende of this life and Hell fire after this life Sixtly there is no meanes or remedy in ourselues or in any creature but onely in Iesus Christ the eternal son of god who is god man God that he might ouercom death and man that he might die for our sins He hath pacified gods wrath fulfild the righteousnes of that law sanctified our nature adopted vs to be the children of god and maketh our duties though weake acceptable to his father Seuenthly all haue not deliuerance by him but onely such as beleue in Christ whose obedience and righteousnes is made ours by a liuely faith whereby we are perswaded that through him our sinnes are forgiuen and wee made the children of God Eightly faith is a gifte of God applying Christ and al his merits particularly to our selues and teaching that he is a Sauiour vnto vs. Ninthly beeing saued by christ thrugh faith we may not liue as we list this vnspeakeable mercy teacheth vs to deny all vngodlinesse and all worldly and sinfulllusts to to liue soberly righteously and godly in this present euill world and to walk in newnes of life because no vnrighteous person shal enter into the kingdome of heauen Tenthly this faith which bringeth forth a reformed life is wrought in our heartes by the Holy-ghoaste through the preaching of the word being truely expounded and profitably applyed with doctrin confutation exhortation correction reformation and consolation and it is encreased besides by reading praying and receiuing of the sacraments Eleuenthly touching prayer we haue a perfect platforme left vs by Christ in the Gospell which containeth sixe petitions the three firste concerning the glorie of God and the three last concerning the necessities of our owne bodies and soules 12. the sacraments are another help to strengthen and increase faith which are outward signes and seales ordained of God to assure vs that Christ all his sauing graces are giuen vnto vs. These are two in number Baptisme the Sacrament of our regeneration and new birth assureth vs by the washing of water that our sins are for giuen by the blood of Christ and wee borne a new to god The Lords supper assureth vs that by bread and wine giuen and receiued according to gods ordinance
receiuing and laying hold vppon Christ and all his benefits Euen as the hand stretched forth layeth hold vpon a thing and pulleth the same vnto it so doth saith apply the sauing promises of the Gospell to the soule as the Apostle teacheth Gal. 3. That the blessing of Abraham might come to the Gentiles through Iesus Christ that wee might receiue the promise of the spirit through faith Where he teacheth that we embrace and receiue the precious promises of saluation and forgiuenesse of our sinnes by faith beleeuinge the same to belong vnto our selues The scripture calleth Christ a redeemer indefinitely Iob calleth him his redeemer particularly Iob 19. I knowe that my redeemer lyueth The Scriptur setteth out the lord as the god of his church Thomas vpon a special feeling of Christs fauor toward him acknowledgeth him to be his Lord and his god Iohn 20 Thou art my Lord and my god The Scripture propoundeth Christ as the Sauiour of his people the blessed virgin taketh this as spoken to her selfe an accounteth him her sauiour Luke 1. My spirit reioyceth in god my sauiour The Scriptur maketh Christ the L. and protector of his church Elizabeth maketh a speciall application thereof calling him her lord Luk. 1 Whence commeth this to me that the mother of my Lord should come vnto me It is an Article of our holy and christian faith to beleeue the forgiuenes of sinnes this must euery one beleeue this must euery one hold this must euery one apply as christ did to the sick man of the Palsey Mathew 9. sonne be of good comfort thy sinnes are forgiuen thee It is the hardest thing in the worlde thus to beleeue whether we respect Christ or our selues It is an easie matter for a man when he neither knoweth nor feeleth the burden of sin to say he hath faith and beleeueth in gods mercy but when Satan shall fift him when his owne hart shall accuse him when sinne shall he heauy vpon his soule when the vnsupportable and vnsufferable anger of God shall presse his conscience to the nethermost hell and the flame thereof consume his bones and turne his moisture into the drought of Summer if then he can stand vpright and build himselfe vpon the rock when the floods come when the winds blow and beat vpon his house and when the ground shaketh vnder his feet this man with boldnesse and confidence may truely say and seale it vppe for an euerlasting truth My sinnes are forgiuen me For if then he can comfort himselfe in his God and apply his gratious mercies to his owne fainting hart and cry out Though the Lorde would kill me yet still I wil trust in him this is the property of a sounde faith against which the strongest gates of hel shal not preuaile This appeareth euidently vnto vs in the example of Abraham who beleeued that of his old weake withered and as it were dead body should spring children like the sande on the sea-shore and like the starres of heauen for multitude and that he should haue a seede in whom himselfe and all the nations of the world should be blessed If hee had consulted with flesh and blood what discourses might a naturall man alledge to 〈◊〉 the crediting of this promise yet hee doubted not hee disputeth not the matter but beleeued that the weake shoulde bee made strong that the barren should be made fruitfull and a ioyfull mother of children that the dead should be made aliue to dwell with a family springing out of his owne body which was to reason as vnlikely and vnpossible as for a dry and dead tree pulled vp by the rootes to bud bear and bring foorth plentifull 〈◊〉 So what can bee more difficult and hard then for vs to beleeue and be perswaded that by the death of Christ we shall haue euerlastinge life by his shame and dishonour we shall haue glory and praise that by his wounds and reproaches we shall haue the curing and healing of our 〈◊〉 that by his agonies and bloody sweate wee shall haue peace and rest by his condemnation we shall haue saluation Is not this after a sort in hell to see heauen in cursing to see blessing in humiliation to see exaltation in death to see life in condemnation to lay holde of saluation in feeling of sin to beleeue the pardon of sinnes lastly in out vnrighteousnes and misery to bee both righteous and accepted to eternall life and in the breach of the lawe to beleeue the fulfilling of the law This is indeede to haue the sauing faith of Gods elect And to say that this is an easie matter or a small thinge is plainely to betray and difcouer that wee never knew what true faith meaneth For this faith let euery one of vs labour that we may specially and particularly apprehend the promises as the Apostle declareth Galatians 2 I am crucified with Christ but I liue yet not I any more but christdiueth in me and in that that I nowe liue in the flesh I liue by the faith in the sonne of God who hath loued mee and giuen himselfe for me And againe I haue fought a good fight I haue finished my course I haue kept the faith hencefoorth is 〈◊〉 vppe for me a crowne of righteousnesse which the Lorde the righteous iudge shall giue vnto me at that day Where wee see a speciall application to himselfe of the benefits of Christ and therefore it is not sufficient to beleeue that Christ came into the world that he was crucified died was buried rose againe from the dead and ascended into heauen for this is a general faith this is the faith of the reprobates yea the Deuils know it and haue as great a part and portion therein as we yet they tremble at the remembrance of their iudgement to come as Iames sheweth Thou beleeuest there is one god thou doest well the deuils also beleeue and tremble There is more required of vs then to beleeue the Histories and doctrine of the scriptures to be true and to make an outward profession of it to vnderstand and assent vnto the couenant of grace made by christ that it is certain and shal be verified in the members of the church we must besides this generall and confused faith apply and appropriate vnto our selues the promises of saluation We must not onely see them a farre off but feele them in our harts We must beleeue not onely that christ is a sauior but that he is our sauior and our redeemer Thus we must euery one of vs for his owne part make proper to himselfe all the riches and graces that are in chist Iesus because in giuing himselfe to vs he giueth al his benefits in that he is God he maketh vs after a sort partakers of the diuine nature being heir of al things in heauen and earth and Lord of the world he maketh al things ours whether life or death whether things
present or things to come recouering in him the possession of those thinges which wee lost in Adam being the beloued sonne of the father hee maketh vs acceptable and wel pleasing vnto him leading captiuity captiue and giuing gifts to men hauing Dominion ouer the Deuil sin hell the world the flesh and all our enemies hee protecteth vs that they cannot ouerthrow vs and hath made vs kings and Priests to god euen his father in that he is happy and immortal he maketh vs partakers of his blessednes and immortality When we shall seuerally and particularly apply al the actions and benefits of Christ our lorde vnto our selues we may boldely come to the lordes table where wee shall fiude christ and enioy him to our endlesse comfort Neither are we to abstaine and hang backe from comming to the Supper nor to dispaire of our selues nor to be to much cast downe when wee feele sundry defectes and wantes in our faith For there is a weake and feeble faith which is yet a true faith as well as the stronge faith There are two degrees offaith profitable to be knowne and comfortable to be considered The weake faith is an earnest and vnfained desire to be reconciled vnto GOD in christ which willing desire in vs GOD accepteth as the deede it selfe hee accounteth the defire of faith as faith it selfe the desire of reconciliation and forgiuenesse of sinnes by the death of CHRIST shall be auaileable to worke out our attonement and redemption The stronge faith is a full perswasion and assurance of the mercyes of GOD when the faithful can truely say with the Apostle Rom. 8 38. 39. I am perswaded that neither life nor death nor thinges present nor thinges to come neither Angels nor principalities nor powers neither height nor depth nor any other creature shall separate vs from the loue of GOD which is in Christ Iesus our Lord. This is the greatest measure and highest degree of faith this is the top strength and full ripenesse of faith heereunto wee are to striue and indeuour and neuer to giue rest vnto our soules vntill wee bee resouled and setled in our consciences that all our sinnes are assuredly pardoned and wee accepted to euerlasting life This greatenesse of faith was in Abraham who was not weak but strengthened in faith being fully perswaded He that had promised was also able to doe it All that liue in the bosome of the Church doe not attaine to this full measure of a perfect faith but euen as it is in the estate of the body we are babes before we come to be men of ripe yeares first we be weake before we be strong first we are fed with milke before we can digest strong meat We see corne first is in the grasse then in the blade before it come to the stalke and to haue ripe corne in the eare There must be in all thinges a beginning before there can be a proceeding to perfection The tree sendeth forth his tender braunches and putteth forth his leaues before the fruit commeth So is it with euery christian Man and Woman first they are babes in Christ and haue certaine seedes and beginnings of faith springing in them to eternall life afterward they grow from strength to strength from grace to grace from degree to degree and from faith to faith vntill they come to a full perswasion and assurance without wauering which ariseth after many experiences of Gods ' manifold mercies and fauours in the course of our liues as we see Psal. 23. Doubtlesse kindnesse and mercy shall follow me all the daies of my life and I shall remaine a long season in the house of the Lord. Wherefore let vs not be 〈◊〉 ed and discouraged when our faith is feeble for a feeble faith wil apply Christ as well as a strong faith it wil draw Christ home to dwell in our hartes through whom we shall not perish but haue euerlasting life Hee that had but a weake eie and a dimme sight to behold the brasen Serpent in the wildernesse was healed from the deadly stinging of the fiery Serpents as wel as he that saw cleerly and perfectly a farre off He that hath but a Leprous and sickly hand is able to hold that which is offered vnto it as well as a sound and strong hand So hee that hath a little faith in the Sonne of God shall neuer haue his saluation denied nor forgiuenesse of his sinnes kept from him if with an humble heart he pray to God to haue them pardoned The Apostles beleeued that Christ was the Sauiour of the world yet they were ignorant of his death and resurrection which are the chiefe meanes of saluation and they are saide to be men of little faith So our sauiour when the Disciples had asked increase of their faith declareth that if our faith be in quantity but as a graine of mustard-seede it should be powerfull and effectuall seeing he will not quench the smooking flaxe nor breake the bruised reede but cherish the least sparke and measure of grace giuen vnto vs from aboue This likewise was the faith of that father whose child was possessed with a dumbe and deafe spirit when christ said to him If thou canst beleau all things are possible to him that beleeueth straight way he cryed with teares saying Lord I beleeue help mine vnbeleefe Christ doth not reiect him for his weaknes of knowledge and faith to teach that we should not dispaire or be dismaid when we finde wauering wantes distrust and imperfection in our selues but rather confessing our frailty with that father in this place pray to be strengthned and to haue our faith increased For whosoeuer vnfainedly desireth any grace of God tending to saluation shal receiue it if he continue knocking at the gate of his mercy it shall bee opened and his prayer shal be granted as Christ hath promised I wilgiue to him that is a thirst of the wel of the water of life Thus if wee long after the graces wanting vnto vs as the earth after a great drouth for the comfortable shewers of refreshing rain vsing the meanes appointed of God to attaine them as earnest praier reuerent attending on the continuall hearing of his word diligent receiung of the sacraments being carefull to giue honor and glory to him for his gifts we haue already of his onely mercy obtained and enioyed wee shall be satisfied and replenished for then He that hath 〈◊〉 his good worke in vs will perfect the same in our harts vntill the day of Iesus Christ. Thus much of faith the sec. part of true examination which is the instrument whereby wee lay hold vpon Christ and are made liuely members of him withont which whosoeuer come to the Lords Supper depart away without fruit and comfort Chap. 18. Of Repentance the third part of examination THe next thing in this tryall to be considered is repētance which is a
promise the partakers of the same hope the members of the same bodye and the professors of the same faith to contend and striue one against another to delight in brauling fighting quarrelling and to norish hatred malice rancour spite enuy biting and backbiting one of another If Ephraim be set against Manasses and Manasses against Ephraim if Brother be diuided against brother if we bite one at another let vs take heed least we be consumed one of another The sonnes of God are renewed into the image ofGod to resemble their heauenly father in true holines and doe all weare the same cognizance and liuery For the Sacraments are the marks of Ch. sheepe whereby they are knowne and discerned so that all our discentions diuisions railings reuilings disgracings and defacings one of another tend to the reproch and dishonour of our common father and do giue an heauy testimony against our souls with God and his elect Angels For how do we approach vnto God how do we come into his presence With what harts do we pray before him and vnto him Are we not taught to aske forgiuenes of our sins as we forgiue the trespasses done vnto vs It then we be malicious and enuious and carry the fresh remembrance of wronges in our hearts to pursue them with reuenge do we not pray against our selues Do we not beseech God to poure out vengance vpon vs Do we not open our mouths to our owne destruction For when wee vse our tongues to say Lord forgiue vs for euen we forgiue is it not asmuch as if we should pray forgiue vs not Lord for we do not we will not forgiue others Therefore after the forme of prayer giuen to the Disciples Christ addeth If ye do forgiue men their trespasses your heauenly father will also forgiue you but if ye do not forgiue men their trepasses no more will your father forgiue you your trespasses And as he exhorteth that when they stand and appeare before the Altar they must forgiue so when we appeare at the Lords table we must forgiue if we haue any thing against any man that our father also which is in heauen may forgiue vs our trespasses Now if we woulde be directed to knowe whether this loue be is vs or not wee may try our owne hearts by these holy properties and blessed effectes described by the Apostle 1 cor xiii Loue saith he suffereth long it is bountifull loue enuieth not loue doth not boast itselfe it is not puffed vp it disdaineth not it seeketh not her owne things it is not prouoked to anger it thinketh not euill it reioyceth not in iniquity but reioyceth in the truth it suffereth all things it beleeueth al thinges it hopeth al things it endureth al things Heere we may see what manner of loue ought to be in vs. Euery one of vs must indeuour that all the parts of this description may rightly agree to euery one of vs and truely be found in vs toward all men euen our enimies as we see Iesus Christ hath left vs an example of his loue when he praied for his enimies that crucified and cruelly entreated him father forgiue them for they know what they do and this did stephen to those that stoned him Lord lay not this sin to their charge This is the way let vs walke in it this was their practise let vs follow it Thus we haue shewed the necessity of examination of ourselues before we come to the Lordes supper and declared the parts wherein it standeth and the manner how it is to be performed If we come furnished with these things with sauing knoledg with iustifieng faith with vnfained repentance with a louing and longing reconciliation towarde our brethren among whom we liue hauing as much as is possible Peace with all men yea euen our enimies let vs not abstaine from the Lordes table by reason of some frailties and infirmities in vs for God couereth them and will not bring them into remembrance as we see 2. Chron 30. A multitude of people had not clensed themselues yet did eate the passeouer but not as it was writen wherfore Hezekiah praied for them saying The good God be merciful toward him that prepareth his whole hart to seeke the Lord god the god of his fathers though he be not clensed according to the purification of the sanctuarie and the Lord heard Hezekiah and healed the people Where we see that because their hart was vpright and sincere their wants and imperfections were not imputed vnto them For God respecteth the truth of the inward partes and pard oneth their sinnes that thus prepare their harts to seeke him So then they were greatly deceiued that thoght they honoured the Sacrament by abstaining from it it is not honoured but dishonoured not hallowed but prophaned not regarded reuerently but reproched greeuously by our wilfull abstinence as the Apostle teacheth 1 cor 11. let a man examin himself and so let him eat of this bread and drink of this cup. He doth not say let him proue himselfe and so let him abstaine For the Sacrament is abused as well by forbearing hauing examined our selues as by not examining our selues and receiuing vnworthily And thus much of examination and the manner to be obserued therein Chap. 20. The conclusion containing an abridgement of the whole treatise THe effect of that which hath bene deliuered hitherto in these Books may thus be gathred into a short sum and abridgement We haue declared that God in al times and ages of the church from the first being of our first parents hath to his word and promises anexed sacraments as seales of assurance for the confirmation of them therby magnifieng his owne mercy toward his people shewing our weaknes and vnworthines and condemning such as oftentimes desire to come to the Lordes table but esteeme little of the preaching of the word whereas the word and Sacraments haue one and the same author they are instruments of the same grace their whole force and effect dependeth on God they require faith to be mingled with them they profit not alway at the very moment of hearing and receiuing Notwithstanding some differences wee find betweene them as namely in the greater necessity of the worde then of the Sacramentes Infidels were neuer barred from hearing the word when they would become hearers thereof and whereas the word affecteth one only of the sences to wit the hearing the Sacraments 〈◊〉 offered to the eies as well as to the eares and so in some sort become more effectuall then the word Touching the worde Sacrament it is drawne from martiall discipline and properly signifieth the Souldiers othe whereby hee bindeth himselfe to his Captaine which worde being vsed by the olde Latine interpreter is now become ordinary and common in the Church which is not mentioned in so many sillables in the Scriptures And howsoeuer the word be often taken in a large and generall signification yet
as we take it in these bookes a Sacrament is a visible signe and seale ordained of God whereby Christ and all his sauing graces by certaine outward rites are signified exhybited and sealed vppe vnto vs. This discription being 〈◊〉 teacheth vs these pointes first that the force of the Sacramentes dependeth not on the worthynesse or vnworthynesse of the Minister but vpon the ordinance of God so that an euill Minister may deliuer the good thinges of God And this was the cause that Christ Iesus baptized none but his Disciples baptized that he might learne not to esteeme of the effect of the sacraments by the fitnesse or vnsitnesse of the Mynisters Againe none must adde vnto them none must take ought from them none must any way abuse them contrary to the institution and ordinance of God Lastly we learne from hence that the Sacramentes are not bare and naked signes of Christ absent but sure seales of Gods promises and of the righteousnesse of Christ who is offered to all but receyued onely of the faithfull so that the presence of vngodlye men meeting vs at the same Table cannot hurte vs in our worthye receiuing In a Sacrament we are to consider two thinges his partes and his vses The partes of a sacrament are partly outward and partly inward The outward partes are these foure First the Mynister lawfully called is necessarily required 〈◊〉 then the Mynister 〈◊〉 not administer them or if pryuate persons wil administer them they sinne against God the one for not perfourming the dutyes of his calling the other because he runneth beyond the boundes of his calling The second outward parte is the word of institution consisting of a Commaundement and a promise so that it is required of vs to vnderstand the wordes of insti●ution to ioyne the word with the sacramentes and to discharge those from the number of sacramentes which want the warrant of the word The third outward part of a Sacrament is the signe for wheresoeuer there is a Sacrament there must of necessity bee an outward element so that neither must wee make an Idoll of the signe by aduancing it to high nor cleane abolish it as the Church of Rome doth by their doctrine of Transubstantiation The last outward part is the receiuer so that the Sacraments without their lawfull vse are no sacraments at all so long as the signes are reserued and not applyed The inward partes also are r foure first God the father offering and applying Christ Iesus as surely as the Minyster doth the outward signe which is a great comfort to such as come to the Sacraments The second inward parte of a Sacrament is the holy spirit working by the worde so that wee can neuer heare the worde or receiue the Sacramentes aright without the speciall direction and inspiration of the spirit of GOD neyther must wee hang vpon extraordinary reuelations which openeth a wide doore vnto all disorders inasmuch as the spir●t is not separated from the word The third inward part is Iesus Christ who is the truth and the life of all Sacramentes now if God the father haue giuen him vnto vs how shall hee not with him giue vs all thinges else Let vs therefore laye hold vpon him especially in all discomfits and troubles when our faith is assaulted by the enemies of our saluation The last inward parte is the faithfull receiuer for except wee send out saith to bring CHRIST home to dwell with vs in our heartes wee shall in vaine looke to receiue profit by the Sacraments so that the reprobate who are vessels of wrath and the Children of perdytion cannot receiue Christ albeit they partake the signes of Christ. As for the elect who are the Lordes sealed vp to the day of redemption before their conuersion and gathering into the sheepefold of Christ they also onely receiue the outward signe without Christ inasmuch as they are without faith but after they are called with an holy calling effectually and haue receiued to beleeue vnfainedly they are partakers both of the signe and of the thing signified These are the outward and inward parces Now there is a fit proportion and agreement betweene these partes each very aptly answering the other For euen as the minister by the word of institution offereth and applyeth 〈◊〉 the outward element to the body of the receiuer so the father by the spirit offereth and applyeth Iesus christ inuisibly to the faithfull receiuer We shewed before that in a sacrament wee are to obserue two pointes his partes and his vses Hitherto wee haue spoken of all the partes both such as are outward and such as are inward Now it remaineth to handle his vses The vses of a sacrament are chiefely three first to strengthen faith secondly to scale the couenant between God and vs thirdly to be a badge of our profession and as a banner displayed to witnesse our warfare vnder our chiefe captaine Christ 〈◊〉 If these be the true vses and endes of a sacrament then wee learne to take notice of our owne failinges and infirmities of faith that GOD refuseth none for weakenesse and wauering of faith that there is an assurance of faith to be attained vnto in this life that as God euermore keepeth his promise with his people who is not as man that he should lie nor as the son of man that he should deceiue so must we be careful to keep the articles of agreement betweene God vs namely to beleeue his word to loue our bretheren to obey his will lastly as our priuiledges are great to beare the badges of Christ our Lord so it teacheth that we are not our owne but are bought at a great price not with corruptible thinges as Syluer and Gold but with the precious blood of Christ as of a lambe vnspotted and vndefiled Hitherto of the nature of the Sacramentes now of the number of them as we vnderstand the word for such as are seales of our communion with christ The sacraments of the new testament are two baptisme and the Lords supper neither are there any moe left vnto the Church For Christ taught no moe sacraments to the Apostles the Apostles deliuered no moe to the churches who yet were faithfull witnesses and reueiled the whole counsell of God without concealing and keeping backe of anye doctrine which themselues had receiued Besides these two Sacramentes are altogether perfect and sufficient both to enter a Christian 〈◊〉 the church and to retaine him continually in the same From this number of two sacramentes we learne 〈◊〉 to acknowledge the great loue of God toward vs who hath eased vs of the heauy burden of infinite Cerimonies prescribed in the law and deliuered vs a few sacramentes in stead of many Secondly wee see heereby the difference betweene the olde Testament and the New and betweene the sacramentes of the olde
testament and the new they had sundry significant signes and Ceremonies whose interpretation was not easily knowne vnto them Thirdly seeing God hath giuen vnto vs two signes and added two seals to his word and writings we ought to haue the stronger faith in his mircyfull promises For wherefore hath he doubled the signes but that wee should encrease in faith and as it were double our assurance of his graces Lastly this number of two ouerthroweth the number of seauen sacramentes maintained in the church of Rome which iust number was first broched by Peter Lumbard afterwarde ratysied in the Counsell of Florence and lastlye established in the Counsell of Trent and is now become the common doctrine of that counterfect church For besides baptisme and the Lords supper which wee receiue they haue instaled into the number of sacraments Confirmation Penance Matrimony Orders and extreame Vnction contrary to the doctrine of the scriptures contrary to the nature of Sacramentes and contrary to the euidence of sundry reasons And firist of all confirmation cannot bee lifted vppe into the seate of the Sacramentes or sit downe in this Chaire of honour because it wanteth the institution of Christ it wanteth an outward signe it hath no word to warrant it or promise of blessing for howsoeuer the Apostles by imposition of hands gaue the holy ghost those miraculous gifts are now withdrawne from the church of God Lastly they haue aduanced it aboue baptisme they administer it in a strange tongue and halow the greazy oyle to purifie soule and body Secondly their popish penance instituted by bodily chastisements to make satisfaction for sinne to God is no sacrament of the new testament nor any sacred thing being thus vnderstood For we acknowledge no other satifaction for sinne wherein God delighteth and the conscience of man 〈◊〉 but only the death and obedience of christ Besides true repentance hath beene preached and practised from the beginning of the world after that sinne entred into the world Furthermore their penance hath no visible signe as baptisme and the supper of the Lord haue Thirdly matrimony albeit it be a diuine ordinance honourable among all estates yet can be no Sacrament of the church of christ because it was instituted before the law it is ratified among the infidels which are no members of the church it hath no promise of grace and saluation ioyned to it and albeit it be honorable in all yet it is not necessary in all Lastly the Roman church esteemeth it as an vnclean thing a prophanation of holy orders a liuing in the flesh so that as with one hand they aduance it to a great dignity with the other hand they cast it downe with great disgrace and contempt as vnworthy of the high and holy priesthood Fourthly orders come in the next place which are the offices and ministry of the church but no sacrament or sacraments of the church For then according to the number of orders we should multiply the number of sacraments Neither haue they any outward element and visible signe Lastly we are come to extream vnction which we suffer not to maske vnder the name of sacraments but pul off the vizard thereof because the church had the vse of anoynting so long as it retained the miraculous gift of healing Besides it hath no word ofinstitution to warrant the continual practise of it vntill the second comming of christ Wherefore seeing the word of God teacheth the number of two sacraments onely and the church of Rome instructeth her children in the number of 7. sacraments neither moe nor lesse they must pardon vs if we harken rather to the scriptures then to their traditions rather to God then to man rather to the truth then to the spirit of error Hitherto we haue spoken of the Sacramentes in generall of their parts their vses their number now we come to speake of them in particular first of baptisme then of the Lords supper And howsoeuer baptisme hath sundry significations yet as it signifieth that washing with water which serueth to seale the couenant of the new testament it is the first sacrament wherein by the outward washing of the body with water once in the name of the father of the son and of the holy ghost the inward clensing of the soule by the blood of christ is represented This descrption teacheth that such as are not yet baptized are not to be admitted to the lords table that albeit dipping be not necessary to the being of baptisme yet washing with water is of the essence of this sacrament that such as are once baptized are not to be rebaptized albeit they haue beene baptized by heretickes and that whosoeuer is baptized hath made a solemne couenant to professe the Christian religion Now q wee are to consider in Baptisme as wee did before generally in a Sacrament these two thinges his partes and his vses The partes of baptisme are outward and inward The outward partes are these foure The first outward part is the Minister as the Messenger of God For baptisme is a part of the Minystry and God hath ioyned the ministry of the word sacraments togither Wherfore the minister must be carefull and not carelesse in the execution of his osfice who is to sanctifie the Water and to wash the party Moreouer the people are directed to whom to resort when they haue children to be baptized Lastly the Church of Rome prophane baptisme when they appoint mid-wiues and priuate persons to baptize children The second outward part is the word of institution which is as the forme of this sacrament The third part is the element of water which is the matter whereof baptisme consisteth Whosoeuer therefore baptiseth with any other liquorthen with water as with blood with sand with snow with milk or such like matter doth frustrate Baptisme and maketh it an idell ceremony Againe all Popish corruptions added and annexed to this sacrament contrary to the simplicity of the gospel as creame crosses censors tapers spettle salt and such like vnsauory trumpery are 〈◊〉 hauing also a superstitious opinion of holinesse and worship ioyned with them Also if water be an outward part the want of washing with water cannot hinder the saluation of such as dye without baptisme All perished not vnder the law that died without circumcision God is not more rigorous vnder the Gospell This therefore is a bloody and discomfortable doctrine to be abandoned and abiured of all parents of all childeren of all Christians The fourth outward parte of baptisme is the body that is washed Novv such as are to be baptized must be within the Couenant these are eyther men and Women of riper yeares or else the infantes of such vvho haue interest in Baptisme as vvell as their parentes This condemneth the Romyshe practise of baptizing bels and serueth to set forth the great loue of God to all
misrable people led by such blind guids O miserable guides of such blind people What a wofull condition is this that a man shal liue al the daies of his life in the bosom of their holy mother the church yet her sons and daughters can neuer assure themselus to haue bin baptized thogh they make the want therof a mark of reprobation or euer to haue receiued the Lords supper or euer to haue bin 〈◊〉 or absolued seeing al hangeth vpō the priests intention obseruation ordination This is the lamen table condition of all those that liue vnder the heauy yoake and greeuous bondage of superstition Ther is no peace no comfort no ioy of hart in such a doubtful and doleful religion Wherfore as the Holy ghost saith Go out of her my people that ye be not partakers of her sinnes and that ye receiue not of her plagues Now among all other abuses of the church of Rome and prophanations of the blessed sacrament of the bodye and blood of Christ none is more notable and notorious then that great Idoll of the Masse being indeede a masse of many abominations And howsoeuer it be greatly liked of those that are enamored of it as the things that are not faire yet seeme faire to them that are in loue it is knowne to the true church to be an heape of errors a lumpe of confusions a bottomlesse gulfe of all blasphemies and an engine that ouerturneth the foundatiō of religion They make the Lordes Supper to bee a sacrifice not a sacrifice of praise and thansgiuing but propitiatory to be offered by a masse-priest for the quicke and the dead to saue man and not onely to saue man but sometimes their Pigs and their Swine from diseases For they haue a masse commonly called the Masse of Saint Antony Yea if a poore womans hen be sicke and ready to be lost shee may procure a Masse to be said for it And heereby although no good redounde to the party yet some gaine shall returne to the Priest who if he see no money wil say no Masse And are not these more beastly and vncleane then swine yea more mad then mad men thus to abuse the holy ordinance of Christ and to turne that to their owne profit which was instituted for the peoples comfort Do they not by this means make the death of Christ of none effect while they offer vp a new that only sacrifice which being once offered hath sanctified vs for euer and yet behold more abhominations then these The right ends of the institution are basely esteemed they make it of speclall force against tempests against sicknes against Warres auaileable to saue cattell to cure the feauer to restore lost things yea profitable for the deade and that Ex opere operato sine bono motu vtentis that is onely being present at the worke done though there be neuer a good motion brought thereunto by him that is present Thus they make the Masse deuised by Antichrist more precious then the holy supper instituted by Christ. Touching the word Masse we must vnderstand that neither the name nor thing ment by the name by the Church of Rome is found in the Scripture nor in any 〈◊〉 and approued Writer for foure hundered yeares after Christ to call the Sacrament or sacrifice by that name Tertullian Cyprian Ierome Augustine Lactantius knew it not these Lataine fathers vsed it not Againe the fathers of the Greeke Church Chrisostome Basill Nazianzene Gregory Nissene and other were neuer acquainted with it they passe by it as a stranger vnto them But as there go many forged and 〈◊〉 Writings vnder the names of the fathers so I deny not but the word Masse may be found in such base and bastard bookes as in Augustines Sermons de tempore Ierom on the Prouerbs which books were neuer made by them but are of another style and of a later stampe And howsoeuer some would deriue it from the Haebrew word Missath which signifieth an oblation yet it seemeth rather to be all one with Missio which importeth a sending away and a licensing to depart and therefore Saint Cyprian saith remissa peccatorum in stead of remssio For this was the order and custome of the Church in former times Nouices and such as were newly planted in the Church being conuerted srom paganisme to Christianity and from infidelity to the faith of Christ and not yet baptized till they were able to giue an answere to such as asked of them a reason of their profession were not suffered to come to the Lords table Likewise such as denying the faith by sinking and shrinking vnder the heate of persecution or committing some other heinous offence were enjoyned to make satisfaction to the church whom they had greeuously offended no withstanding they might be present at the publike praiers the church and at the preaching of the word yet might not be present at the administration of baptism nor receiue the sacrament of the lords supper Wherefore after the prayers were finished and the sermon ended the deaconsaid to such as wer barred either by age or want of susficient knowledge or their owne offence from the sacraments Ite missa est that is Go ye hence ye may depart Moreouer such as would not communicate with their bretheren were willed to depart not to trouble the rest of the church that staied to communicate Of this dismissing and sending away al nouices 〈◊〉 and carelesse persons which either might not or 〈◊〉 not communicate and of this proclamation of the deacon the whole action of the holy communion in processe of time was called the Masse that is a dismissing of all such persons as wer not to communicate But whē through negligence of the people or couetousnes of the priests this order was altered yet the name was retained and now it is vsed for another thing to wit for that solemne action whereby the sacrament is made a sacrifice and offered vp to god to take away the sins of the quick and dead And in this sense we haue iustly abolished both the name and the nature of the Masse inasmuch as it hath frustrated the death of CHRIST and taken from vs the comforte of the Lordes Supper And albeit we deny not but the Lords Supper may truely be called a sacrifice being a memoriall of the real sacrifice of christ offered vpon the crosse being a thaks-giuing to god for the worke of our redemption being a presenting and giuing vppe our selues our soules and bodies to God a liuing holy and acceptable sacrifice and being ioyned with almes and releefe to the poore according to euery mans ability which is a testimony of our thankfulnesse to God yet as they vnderstād it to be a real external bodily and vnbloody sacrifice in the natiue and proper signification and themselues to be truely and propely priests according to the order of Melchisedech to offer
vp the very body and blood of Christ to god the father for the sinnes of the liuing of the dead we receiue it not but condemne it to the pit of hell from whence it came For Christ offered vp himself but once And if they be priests properly to offer him they must likewise be the murtherers of him forasmuch as when he was offered he was killed Moreouer they make his al-susficient sacrifice to bee vnperfect which notwithstanding maketh vs perfect and themselues to be after a sort mediators betweene god and man and so depriue themselus of the sweet mediation of Christ. Thus much of the gainefull Marchandize of Masses vsed in the church of Rome and of the oblation or rather abhomination thereof These and many other errors are discouered and opened in this Treatise which I commend vnto thee good christian reader desiring thy farther instruction in the truth I know it cannot but grieue thee to hear of contentions and dissentions especially in the matters of God wherein wee should al think and speak one thing Wherefore thou must remember that it cannot be auoided but offences wil com but wo be to him by whom they come The apostle saith There must be euen haeresies among you that they which are among you may be knowne For my part I haue labored to doe no more then to quench the fire which other haue kindled and to plucke vp the weeds which other haue planted The successe of this worke I commit to the Lord the examination and fruit thereof to thee Read it with iudgement Try al things and hold fast that which is good Lay al partialy aside and weigh the doctrine set before thee with the ballance of the Sanctuary The Lord of heauen and earth bring vs all to be of one mind and of one hart in the truth and giue vs the spirit of vnderstanding that we may be able to discerne light from darkenes and truth from errour and that we may not be caried away with euery 〈◊〉 of false doctrine but that we may knowe what is the good and acceptable wil of God and may grow vnto a perfect man in Christ Iesus to whose mercifull direction and protection I commend thee Amen FINIS The Principles of Christian religion set downe in Questions and answers shortly for the remembrance and plainely for the vnderstanding of all persons requisite to be learned and knowne before they be admitted to the Lords Supper Q. What is true religion A. It is the knowledge of gods wil to the end we may serue him in holinesse and righteousnesse Ioh 17 3 Eph 4 23 24. Q. How many parts are there of religion A. Two repentance and faith Mar 1 15 Act. 20 20 21 Q. What is repentance A Repentance is a turning from al sin vnto righteousnes act 3 19 Ezek. 18 21 Q How many things haue we to consider in repentance A Two thinges the parts of it and the meanes whereby to attaine it Esa 1 16 xvii xx Q What are the parts of repentance A Two partes first a for faking of sin with an hatred and sorrow for it Secondly a betaking of ourselues vnto righteousnes with a loue and liking of it 2 Cor. 7 x xi Q What are the meanes to come to repentance A Two meanes first the knowledge of our sins by the law Secondly the consideration of the punishments due to sin Reuel 2 5 Q How many commaundements are there in the law A Ten Exod. 34 28 Deut. 4. xiii x 4 Q 〈◊〉 how many tables are the 〈◊〉 deuided A Into two tables Mar xii 30 xxxi Exod xxxi xviii 34 1 Q What 〈◊〉 the first table concerne A Our duties toward God contained in the 4 first commaundements Math xxii 36 37. 38 Q what is the 〈◊〉 commaundemant A Thou shalt have none other Gods but me Deut 5 7 Exod 20 3 Q what is the summe of this law A We must not account that as God which by nature is no God but haue and chuse the true God onely for our god Mar. 12 29 Q What is the second commaundement A Thou shalt not make to thy selfe any grauen image Exod 20 4 Q What is forbidden and commaunded in this law A We must not worship the true god falsely but worship god as he hath appointed in his word Ioh. 4 24 Iosh 24 15 Esa. 29 13 Q What is the third commaundement A Thou shalt not take the name of the lord thy God in vaine Exod. xx 7 Q What is forbidden and commaunded in this law A We must not bereaue god of the honor due to him but vse his titles word and works with al reuerence Math. 5 33 34 35 36 37 Q What is the fourth commaundement A Remember the Sabbath day to keepe it holy Exod xx 8 Q What is commaunded and forbidden in this law A We must 〈◊〉 the sabbath with the works of the sabbath and not 〈◊〉 it with our owne works Esa. 58 13 Neh 13 xv xvi c. Q What are the workes of the 〈◊〉 A 〈◊〉 as are holy and of present necessity Luk 14 3 4 5 Act. xx 7 Q 〈◊〉 must keepe the Sabbath A 〈◊〉 thy son thy daughter thy man thy maid and thy stranger Exod xx x Q 〈◊〉 of the first table what doth the second table concerne A 〈◊〉 duties toward our neighbors in the sixe last commaundementes Rom. 13 8 9 Q Who is our neighbour A Our neighbor is euery one of our owne flesh yea our enemies Esa 58 7 Luk. x 35 36 37 Math 5 44 Q What is the first commaundement A Honor thy father and thy mother Exod xx 12 Q who is our father and mother A Al superiors set ouer vs of god for our good Rom 13 1 2 Eph. 6 1 2. 3 Q what doth the word honor 〈◊〉 A It 〈◊〉 reuerence obedience and maintenance whether they be worthy or vnworthy that are our superiors Math xxii xxi Q what is the first commaundement A Thou shalt not kil Exod. xx 13 Q what is forbidden and commaunded in this law A We are charged not to hurt our owne life or our neighbors but to preserue and tender it as our owne 1 Ioh. 3 15 Math 5 xxii xxiii 24 Q what is the seuenth commaundement A Thou shalt not commit a dultery Exod 20 14 Q what is required in this law A we must kepe our bodies and soules chast from consenting to vnclean lustes Math 5 8 29 〈◊〉 Col. 3 5 Q what is the eight commaundement A Thou shalt not steale Exod 20 15 Q what is forbidden and commaunded in this law A we must not 〈◊〉 or hurt our neighbors goods but maintaine and preserue them Eph 4 28 1 Thess. 4. 6 Q what is the ninth commaundement A Thou shalt not beare false witnesse against thy neighbor Exod 20. 16 Q what is forbidden and commaunded in this law A we must not diminish or hurt the good name of our neighbor but 〈◊〉 his credit and estimation Exod
be holy and seperated from the prophane of the world 2 cor 6 xvi xvii Q what meane you by calling it catholicke A I beleeue that the church is not tyed to one time or place but spreadeth it selfe throughall nations vnder heauen whomesoeuer God shall cal act x xxxiiii Reuel 5. 9 Q what are the gifts giuen to the church A Two fold first in this 〈◊〉 secondly after this life Act 2 46 47 Q what be the gifts in this life A Two the communion of saints and forgiuenes of sins 1 Iohn 1 7 Q what means you by communion of Saints A I beleeue that howsoeuer the faithfull by distance of place are far seperated one from another yet there is such a mutual compassion and fellow-feeling each of others condition that they are a like both greeued and ioyfull at each others aduersity and prosperity Act. 4 32 1 cor x. i. 25 26. Rom. xii xv xvi Q what meane you by forgiuenes of sinnes A I beleeue that Iesus christ hath already suffred for my sins and therefore they shall be freely pardoned and the punishment of them forgiuen vnto me i. Iohn 2. i. 2 Psal. xxxii 5 Q what be the gifts bestowed on the church after this life A Two the resurrection of the body and life euerlasting i. cor xv 42. i. Thess. 4 xvi xvii Q what beleeue you of the resurrection of the flesh A I beleeue that the dead bodies of al such as haue dyed from the beginning of the world shall in the end be raised again and be vnited to their soules i cor xv xxii Li Q what beleeue you of euerlasting life A I beleeue that after the body and soule bee ioyned together againe in one person the godly shal go into euerlasting ioy and felicity and the vngodly shal be cast into endles 〈◊〉 and misery Dan xii ii Q Is it sufficient to haue that Faith which beleeueth these Articles to be true A No we must haue a iustifieng faith to apply them to our selues Phil. 3 8 9 Q what is that faith A Faith is a gift of God whereby we apply to our selues particularly the promises made to vs in christ Gal 2 xx act xv x xi Q what be the meanes whereby this faith is attained A They are two the be getting and the continual nourishing of it Eph 4 xi xii xiii Q what are the meanes whereby faith is first begun and hegotten in vs A The word 〈◊〉 Rom. x xiiii Q How is this faith nourished in vs and increased A By the same preaching of the word by praier and by the sacraments act 242 Q what is prayer A Prayer is a calling vpon God alone in the name of his son Iesus christ Ioh 〈◊〉 23 Q How many kinds of praier be there A Two petition and thanks-giuing Psal 50 15 1 Tim 2 1 2 Q Haue we no rule prescribed to direct our praiers by it A Yes we haue a forme of praier which christ taught his disciples commonly called the Lords prayer Math 6 9 Luk xi 1 2 Q What haue we to consider in this prayer A Three things the entrance the petitions and the conclusion of the prayer Q What is the entrance of the praier A Our father which art in heauen Q What meane you when you say our father A Heereby I beleeue he tendreth vs as a louing father doth tender his owne children and therefore is most ready and willing to heare and to help vs Math 7 xi Esa. 49 xv Q What meane you by this that he is said to be in heauen A I learne that because he is in heauen his power is almighty and therfore he is fully able to do vs all good Luk 1 37 Rom 4 21 Dan 3 xvii Q What consider you in the petitions A Two things First they are set downe Secondly they are considered by reason Q How many petitions are there set downe A Sixe Q How are these petitions divided A The three first concerne gods glory the three last petitions concerne our owne selues Q What is the first petition A Hallowed be thy name Psal 111 1 Dan 9 7 Q What do we desire in this first petition A We pray that the name of God may continually be vsed of vs in thought word and deed with all reuerence Psal 48 xi Q What is the second petition A Thy kingdome come Q What do we desire in this second petition A We pray that God throwing downe the kingdome of sin and Satan would raigne in vs by his word and spirit and hasten vnto perfection his kingdome of glory Reuel xxii 20 Q What is the third petition A Thy will be done in earth as it is in heauen Psal. 40. 7. 8 Mar. 26 42 Q What do we desire in this third petition A We pray that the reueiled wil of God may be done willingly sincerely and readily by vs men on earth as the Angels and saints in heauen do it Deut. 29. 29 Psal 103 20. Q What is the fourth petition A Giue vs this day our daily bread Gen 28. xx 30. 8 Q What do we desire in this fourth petition A We pray not onely for a competent measure of all commodities seruing both for necessity and christian delight but also thar God wold blesse them to our seuerall vses Psal. 127 1 Leuit xxvi xxvi Q What is the fift petition A Forgiue vs our trespasses Dan. 9 5 8. 9. x xi Q What do we desire God in this petition A we pray that God would freely pardon our sinues committed against him and the punishments due vnto them giuing vs peace of conscience and iustifieng vs in his Son Psal 51 1 7 8 Q Why are these wordes added as we forgiue them that trespasse against vs A For two causes First as a reason to perswade God to forgiue vs seeing euen we which haue not a drop of his infinite mercy in vs are ready to forgiue such offences as are committed against vs. Luke xi 4 Secondly to assure our owne harts of forgiuenes at the handes of god if we from our harts forgiue our brethren Math 5 7 I am 2. xiii mat xviii 32. 33. 35 Q What is the sirt and last petition A Lead vs not into tentation but deliuer vs from euil 2 Cor 12. 7 8 9 Math 26. 41 Q What do we desire in this last petition A we pray not onely to be deliuerd from the power of Satan sinne and the world but also to be directed by the spirit of god in the wayes of true obedience i. cor x xiii Q How are these petitions strengthned and confirmed by reason A For thine is the king dome and the power and glory for euer Q What is the meaning of this strength of the reason A It containeth a thanksgiuing wherin the gouernment and ordering of al things to gither with the power and glory of the same is ascribd wholly and onely vnto the Lord 1 chron 29 xi Q what signifieth this word Amen in the conclusion of
the prayer A It signifieth So be it Deut 27 xv xvi Q what vse is there of it A It sheweth both our feruent desire to obtaine and an assuraunce to our hearts that we shall obtaine that which wee aske 2. Cor. 1. 20. Q what is a Sacrament A It is a visible signe and seale that Christ and all his benefits are giuen vnto vs. Rom 4 xi Q what is to be considered in a Sacrament A Two things his parts and his vses Math. 3 xi Q what are the parts of a Sacrament A Two the outward parts and the inward Rom. 4. xi xii Gen 17 xi 1 cor x 1 2 3 Q How many are the outward parts A Foure the Minister the word the signe and the receiuer Math. 26 26 27. Q How many are the inward parts A Foure God the father the spirit Christ and the faithfull Math. 3s15 16 Q what proportion is there betweene these parts A Euen as the Minister by the worde offereth and applyeth visibly the element vnto the body of the receiuer so the father by the spirit offereth and applyeth Iesus Christ inuisibly vnto the faithfull receiuer Act. 1 36. 37 Q What be the vses of a Sacrament A Three first to norish faith Rom. 49. x xi Secondly to be a seale of the couenant between god and vs Gen 17 Thirdly to be a badge of our christian profession Eph ii xi xii xiii A How many Sacraments are there A Two Baptisme and the Lords Supper 1 cor xii xiii and chap x 1 2 3. 4 Q what is baptisme A Baptisme is the first sacrament wherein by the outwarde Washing of the body with water once in the name of the father of the sonne andof the holy-ghost the inward clensing of the soule by the blood of Christ is represented Math 28 29 Q What is to be cosidered in Baptisme A Two things his parts and his vses Q What are the parts of baptisme A Outward and inward parts Act 2 38 Q How many are the outward parts of baptisme A Foure the Minister the word of institution the element of water and the body washed Math. 28 19 Q How many are the inward parts A Foure God the father the holy spirit Christ and the soule clensed Math 3. 15 16 Mar 16 16 Q What is the proportion betweene these parts A Euen as the minister by the word of institution applyeth the water to the washing of the bodye so the 〈◊〉 through the working of the spirit applyeth the blood of Christ to the clensing of the soule Luk 3 16 Ioh 1 33 Q What are the vses of baptisme A Three first to seale vp the remission and forgiuenesse of sinnes act xxii 16 Secondly to shew our setting and engrafting into the body of christ Gal. 3 27 Thirdly to teach vs to dy to sin and rise againe to righte ousnes Rom. 6. 1 2 3 4 Q What is the Lords Supper A The Lords supper is the second sacrament wherein by visible receiuing of the bread and Wine is represented our spirituall communion with the body and bloode of Christ 1 Cor. 10. 16 17 Q What things are to be be considered in the Lords Supper A Two things his parts and his vses Math 26. xxvi xxvii xxviii Q What are the parts of the lords Supper A Two outward and inward 1 Cor x xvi Q How many are the outward parts A Foure the minister the word of institution bread and wine and the communicant Luk xxii 19 xx Q How many are the inward parts A Foure the father the spirit the body and blood of christ and the saithfull i cor xii xiii Ioh. 6 xxvii Q What is the proportion betweene these parts A Euen as the minister by the word of institution offereth bread and wine vnto the communicants to feede thereupou bodily and corporally so the father by the spirit offereth giueth the body and blood of christ vnto the soule of the faithfull to feede vpon them spiritually i cor xi xxiii xxiiii xxv xxvi c. Q What be the vses of the Lords supper A three first to shew forth the death and sufferinges of christ with all thanks giuing i cor xi xxvi Luk. xxii xix Secondly to teach vs our communion and groweth in Christ 1 Cor x 16 Thirdly to declare our communion and agreement with our bretheren 1 cor x. 17 c. ch xii 13. Q How may wee come aright to the lords table A By preparing and examining ourselues i cor xi 28 Q What is the right manner of preparing our selues A First we must haue a knowledge of God of mans fall and his restoring againe into the couenant by Christ. Ioh xvii iii. Secondly true faith in christ ii cor xiii 5. Thirdly repentance from al dead workes daily renued for our daily sinnes Psal. xxvi 6. Lastly reconciliation to our brethren yea euen our enemies Math 5 23 xxiiii Now to him that is able to keepe you that ye fall not and to present you faultlesse before the presence of his glory with you to God onelie wise our sauior be glorie and Maiestie and Dominion and power both now and for euer Amen Iude verse 24 25 Gentle Reader I am to desire thee to amende these escapes with thy pen either altering the sence or hindering the vnderstanding The rest I remit to thy fauourable construction and correction page 6. line 13. read is heere full P. 18. l 17. and not make p. 19 l. xxi vnfitly p 37. l 3. that they are no. p. 83. l. 36. a connterfect word is fit enough for a counterfect sacrament p 88 l 7. and not accepted p. 〈◊〉 l 33 dele which is good p 136. l xv and euil workers speed p 148 l 6 by the practise and xiijj but reach eth not p 155 l 32 to baptisme P 163 lin 〈◊〉 they were admitted P 165. l. 1 accesse p 170 l xxi are not able p 179. l 22 an assurance P 201 l 1 escape vnpunished and xxii as an and 13 thus much P 209l 4 naming the P 238 l 29 and 31 change P 240 l 29 yet was he 250 l. iii inhumane P 253 l 4. all the. P. 228 l 24 in the cup. P 285 l. 22. out of the holy vse p 290 l. 4. consecration a 2 Thes 2 b Luke x 1 c Ephe 4 `8 d Ro. 1 16 e 〈◊〉 18 f Titus 1 1 g Mat 13 25 h 〈◊〉 pet 5 2 i Plutar. in vita 〈◊〉 k 1 cor 3 〈◊〉 l Ezeck 33 m 〈◊〉 4 17 Gen 28 o Psa. 138 Iuuenal li. 3. Saty. 2 p 1 sam 2 Senecade remed for 〈◊〉 Senec. de Benef. lib 3 cap 1 Cicero de offic lib. 3 Persi sati 1 1 tim 4 8 Act. xx 32 a the number of them c Vses are three d preparation to the worke consisting in Examination of our selues chap. 15 wher in weigh two things a God alway gaue his sacraments to his Church b Gen. 2 9. c Gen. 6 14. d Gen. 17. 11. e Rom. 4 11 b
4. 5 r Ezek. 16 8 Hos. 2. 19. 20 f Such as haue beene baptized by heretikes are not to be rebaptized t act 19. 5 u Ioh 13. 8 Rom. 11 29 a 2 Tim 2 19 20 b Psal. 51 10 〈◊〉 c 1. Ioh. 2. 〈◊〉 d 1 Ioh. 3. 9 e The vse of the fourth part of the description of baptisme t 〈◊〉 20. 16 g The vse of the last parte of the description of baptisme a In batism 2 things are to be considered his parts and his vses b 1 Pet. 3 21 Mar 1 1 Act. 2 38 Vse 1. c Gen. 17 23 〈◊〉 d act 22. 16 18. 8 e Bernard epist. 77 f Luk. 7 30 g 〈◊〉 48. 10 h 〈◊〉 32. 9. 10 Gen. 23. 16. 17. 18 i Baptisme not pricisely tyed to a certaine day k Gen. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 l Exod 4. 〈◊〉 m 1 Tim. 3 5 Vse 3. n Gen. 17 12 13 27 o 1 Cor. 7 22 p Exod. 12 3 q 〈◊〉 11. 21. 23. r Gal. 3. 〈◊〉 Col. 3. 11 Vse 4. s They are to be reproued that depart out of the church before baptisme be solemnized t Luk. 1. 58. 59. u 1 Cor. 11. 〈◊〉 a 1 cor 5. 4. b Reasons rendred why the 〈◊〉 should remaine altogether 〈◊〉 Baptisme be 〈◊〉 c christ is after a sort preached in 〈◊〉 d Gen. 4 5 compared with Heb. 〈◊〉 4 Iudg. 13 20. 1 King 18. 〈◊〉 2 chr 7 〈◊〉 e math 3. 16. 17. f 1 cor 12. 23 g Luk. 3. 〈◊〉 Act. 22. 16 h 1 COI 1426 40. i Ezek. 46. 10 k Concil Trid. sess 7. can 1. l The baptisme of Iohn and of Christ are in substance one the same m Mar. 1 4 n Eph 4. 5. 6 o Act 18. 25 16 p Ioh. 4. 1 1 q Math. 3 15 Luk. 7 29 r Difference betweene Iohns baptisme and christs wherin s Obiections answered t Bellar. lib. 1 de Bapt. cap. 20 u Heb 5 4 a Math. 21 25 b Ioh. 1 6 c Math. 3 11 d bellar lib. 1 〈◊〉 bapt cap. 21 e Luk 3 15. 16 f Bellar. lib. 1. de bapt c. 22. g Act. 19 2 3 4 5 6 7 h august de doct christ i Men de k Math. 3 11 Mar. 1 8. 9 Act. 1. 5. 6 l act 18 25 Math. 21 25 Mar. 1 4 m act 8 14 15 16 17 n act 1. 6 Math. 20 28 Luk. 22 24 a act 8 17 18 19 10 44 45 47 and 19 6. b Ioh 1. 32. 33. q 1 cor 1 13. 14. 15 r 1 cor 16. 8. s 2 Pet. 3 16 t The sum of this chapt 18 set downe a Foure outward parts of baptisme b Lu. 3 15. 16. c act 2 38. 8 12 38 10 47. 48. 16 32 33 22 16 d 1 Cor. 1 17 Math. 7. 22 23 Math 10. 1. 2. 3 Math 23 1 2 3 Ioh 4 i ii f Reasons rendred why the Minister onely may baptize g Mat 28 xix Heb 5 4 Math xix 6 h i cor xiiii 34 35. tim 2 xi xii i Reuel 〈◊〉 k Iudg. 4 4 1. Sam. 2. 2 2 King 2 2 xiiii act xxi 9. l act 22 3 m Heb 7 7 n 1 Pet. 3 7 Eccle. 7. 29. 30 o 1 Tim 2. 13 14 Gen. 3. 6 p The people cannot with comfort assure themselues to 〈◊〉 Sacrament at the hands of priuate persons q Beza lib de Quest. in sacre 〈◊〉 140 141. r 2 Sam. 3 27 and 20 10 1 King 2 5 s Numb 625 7. 8 Math 26. 51. 52 Rom. 13 4 a Exod. 20. 13 b Deut. 13 8 c Terent. in Adesp ast 5. sce. 3 d calu lib Epistot Pag. 85 e Exod. 4. 24. 25 26. f Bellar. de sacra bap cap 7. g Ouid. Etist 2 careat successibus opto quisquis ab euentu fact a notanda putat h 2 King 17. 25. Vse 1. i What are the actions of the Minister Vse 2. vse 3. i Epiph here 42 k Epiph. cont her 〈◊〉 l 1 Tim. 2 xi 12 1 cor xiiii 34 m Num. 16 9 〈◊〉 106 17 18. n 2 Sam. 6. 7 o 2 king 15. 5 p Nah. 1 2 Eccl. 8 11 12 13. q Ioh. 10 10 a Word of institution is the forme of baptisme b Eph. 2 26 Math. 28 19 c Gen. 48 19 Vse 1. Vse 2. Vse 3. Obiection Answer d 1 cor 11 23 e act 10 47 and 19. 2 f Math. 28 19 a Water another outward part of bapt b Math. 3 xi Vse 1. Obiection c Rom 13 1 7 Answere d Eph 4. 5 e 1 Cor 11. 21 22 f Gal. 3 28 g No other signe ought to be vsed in baptism then water h Lent x. i. 2 i Leuit i. 3 x xiiii k Iocl i. 9 vse 2 l Act 10 47 m 2 cor 10 4 Eph 6 12. n Hosii confes de ritib. bapt cap. 37 o Al perished not vnder the law that died before circumcision p Ezek. 18 23 q Iosh. 5 5 r Leuit. 12 2 3 Gen. 17. 12. 21. 4 s 2 Sam. 12. 18 19 20. 〈◊〉 23 t 2 Tim. 2. 15 u Rom. 9. 11. 13 Mal 1. 2 a act 10 〈◊〉 b Luk. 23 43 c Luk. 19 22 d Socra lib. 5 cap. 22 Bellar. de sacra bap c. 26 e Tripart hist lib 3 cap. 12 f Orat. de obit 〈◊〉 g Cen. 17 14 Obiection Answere h Rom 5 13 i caletan 〈◊〉 cap. 7 genes k Iohn xiii 〈◊〉 l 1 Cor 11. 30 31. m Psa 55 24 n Deut. 13. 5 9 o Exod. 12 15 19 p 1 cor 5 2 〈◊〉 q Ioh 3 5 Obiect 2. r Bellar. lib 1 de bapt c. 4 s Hosij Confess cap. 35 Answere t Ioh. 3 11 u Ioh. 7 38 36 4 11 a Ioh. 6. 53 b Decret Gregor lib. 3. tit 42. c. 3 c Lumb sent lib. 4. dist 4 d Let none obiect the opinion of Augustine for he thought it necessary to saluation that children should receiue the Lords Supper as well as baptisme De peccator mer't lib. cap. 24. e Gen. 17 7 f Mar 16 16. a The last outvvard part of bapt is the body washed b Who are in the couenant c Rom 14. 4 d Heb. 2. 4 Rom. i xvii Gal. 3 xi Heb. x 38 e Ionah 4. xi f act 8 36 g 1 cor 7. 14 h We must hope well of the seed osthe faithfull and therefore we batize them i Rom. xi 16 Gen 17. 7 k act 16 30 31 l Luk. 19. 9 m act 16 14 3 15 1 Cor. 1 16 Ioh. 4 53 2 Ioh verse 1 n Psal. 133 2. Vse 1. o act 8 36 22. 16 Vse 2. p church of Rome propha neth bapt by baptizing bellcs q Bellar. de sacra bapt lib. 1 cap. 27 r Durand lib. 1 Enchirid cap. 4 s Math. 17 2 Eph. 6 13 14 xv xvi Vse 3. t Gcn. 17 1 2 7 Vse 4. a Deut. 1 39 Luk. 1. 15. 44 Iohn 4 11 b Reasons waranting the baptizing of children c Gen 17 12 Leuit 12 3 Phil. 3 5 d col 2. 11 Obiect 〈◊〉 e Wherein
cor 10. 17 l act 2 41 42 m August in Ioh tract 26 n Chrysost in Eph. 1. hom 26 o august ad 〈◊〉 epist. 119 p Pro 9 4. 5 q Rom. 2 5 r Cbrysost in Eph. hom 3 s Numb 9 13 t Numb 16 12 u Luk 14 20 24 a 1 cor xi 23 24 25 Math. 26. 〈◊〉 28 29 b Foure outward parts of the Lords Supper c Foure actions of the minister d Psal. 22 16 〈◊〉 53. 5 e Math 26 26 act 2 42 1 cor 10 16 vse 1 f stella Clericorum serdisc serm 3 g creatur a vobis mediantibus vobis Vse 2. h Numb 3 〈◊〉 Heb. 5 4 i Two obiections answeared pretending that 〈◊〉 men may deliuer the supper k August tract 〈◊〉 in Iohan 〈◊〉 l Aristot. metaphis lib. 7 cap. 7 m Bellar. lib. 4 de Euch cap 2 concil Trid. sess 13. can 4. 7 n beza 〈◊〉 vesp de sacr o Ioh 6 54 55 56 57 58 p If they do not thus the sacrament receiud 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 them a The words of institution are the 2 outvvard part of the Supper b 〈◊〉 cont Marie lib. 4 August contr Adimant c 12 c 1 cor 10 xvi d Iohn xix 36 Obiection Ansvvere e The words of institution are variably set dovvne f Math. 26. 26 g Mark 14 22 h Luk. 22. 19 i 1 cor 11. 24 k Math 26 28 l Mark 14 23 24 m Luk 22 xx n 1 cor xi 25 i Ierem. in cap. ad Galat. k The words of institution expounded briefely truely plainely Vse 1. l Arist. rhetor ad 〈◊〉 lib 3 cap. 6 Cicer. de 〈◊〉 lib. 3 m Hieron Contra Lucifer in Cap. 1 ad Gal. m Disparata o Gen 17 10 11 p Exod. 12 〈◊〉 13 14 q 1 cor 10. 4 r a paraphrase vpon the words of institution Vse 2 s Math 2 6 t Math. 4 10 u al change in the words of institution makes not the Sacraments void vse 3. a concil Trid. sess 22 c. 9 b plin natur 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 10 cap. 43 c Celius Rhodiginus d Bellar lib. 2 de 〈◊〉 cap. 12 1 cor 147. 8 f 1 cor 14 5 xi xii 16 xiiii xviii 19 26 Psal 67 4 117 1 150. 6 Esa 45 23 act 2 xi Rom. xiiii xi g Psal 114. 1 Rom. i xiiii h chrysost in 1 cor xiiii hom 35 i Strabo Geograph lib. 1 k 〈◊〉 in prolog asinar 〈◊〉 de Tristib lib. 5 Eleg. 10 l Iohan. Beleth paris Theol. explice diuin offi in proaemio Nicol. lyra in 1 cor xiiii ad verb. vers xvi 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 tom 3 tractat xv a Bread and wine are the outward signes of the Lords 〈◊〉 b Math. 26 26 Mar. 14 22 Luk. 22 19 act 2 41 42. 20 7 cor 10 16 c 1 cor 11 23 26 27 28 d Math. 26 29 Mar 14 25 Luk. 22 18 Gener. vse 1 e Why we haue tvvo signes in the Lords supper and only one in baptisme f Difference betweene baptisme and the Lords supper Gener. vlc 2 g Against the bare shewes of bread and wine and accidentes without subiect h Arist. phis lib. 1 cap. 3 i Psal. 10 2. 26 k Accidentis esse est 〈◊〉 l porphyr cap 5 de accidente m Aimoin exadem lib. 5. cap 19. Gener. vse 3. n The bread and wine be-the matter of the Sacramēt may not be changed in the Lords Supper o 1 cor 14 32 p 1 cor 11 25 q Psal 104 14 15 Pro 31 6 Iudg. 9 13 〈◊〉 10 19 r arist Metaph lib. 7. cap 7 plato in 〈◊〉 s Leuit 10. 1. 2 t Ioel 1 9 19 u 1 Tim. 4 5 Genera vse 4. a Aagainst transubstantiation b Concil trid sess 13 cap. 4. c Anno. 1215. d barth Carenza summa concil e Iren. lib. 1. cap. 9. Epiphan haeres 34. f The bread and wine remain in their proper nature g Math 26 26 Mar 14 22 Luk 22 19 h 1 cor xi 26 27 28 1 cor x. 16 i Math 26 29 k Luk 22 17 19 c 〈◊〉 de fabul 〈◊〉 lib. 2 August de 〈◊〉 cap. 34 m Iren. lib 4 contr 〈◊〉 cap 34 n Math. 26 26 1 Pet. 3. 20. 21 o stella clericorum p Creatura vobis mediantibus vobis q Hesych in Leuit. l. 2. c. 8 Humbert cont Nicet r Bernard de monte polotiano de Domcastro platin in vita clem 5 s Hermannus Contractus t Math 15 17 u Origen in math cap. 15 a Ioh. 6 26 b August de Trinit lib. 3 cap. 10 c Exod. 4 3 Ioh. 2. 8 Gen 19 26 d 1 cor 12 27 e Ioh. 652 60 f Mat 28 5 g Reuel 1 7 h Luk. 21 16 1 cor 11 24 i August de quod vuit de k 1 Ioh 4 3 2 Ioh. 7 l Occam in cen tilo theol conclus 25 26 m Holcot in 4 lib. sentent quest 3 n August epist 57 ad dardan o Luk. 24 39 p arist lib 2 de anim cap. 6 q August de doctr christ lib. 3. cap. 16 cyril anat 11 r cor 10 20 21 s Math 19 3 4 8 t Math. 26 26 u Ioh. 15 1 10 7 14. 6 a Mark 14 56 b Thom. p 3 qu 75 art 8 c Canon conuertantur d durand lib. 4 e see D. sutl de Miss lib. 5. cap 16 Gener. vse 5. f christs people must receiue the supper vnder both kinds g cone Trident sess 21 cap 2 h Math 26 26 27 i Math. 19 6 k Math. 26 27 Mar. 14 23 1 cor 12 13 l 1 cor 14. 37 m Gal. 3 15 Heb. 9. 16 17 n Luk 22 20 o Math 26 28 Luk. 22 20. p 1 cor 11 23 q 1 cor 11. 26. r 1 cor 11 28 s 1 cor 10 4 t bellar lib. 4 de euchar C. 27 u exod 16 21 a Iosh. 5. 12 b Luk. xi 52 c Obiections for taking the cup from the people of god d rhem test vpon Math. xxvi Mar. 14 e Math xvvi● 17 18 f Exod xii 4 g Exod 12. 6 h Ioh. 13 1 cum 18. 28 i Exod. xii 4. 5 k Arist bistor animal lib 6 cap xxvii plini hist. natur lib. 8 Cap 48 l Exod. xii x m Math xxvi 30 n Ioh. 19 xxvi 27. o 1 cor 1 2 p 1 cor xi 26 Obiect 2. q act 2 42 xx 7 Answer r Esa 58 7 Lam 4 4 Math 15. 33 Luk. 24. 30 act 20. xi s 1 cor 12 13 t Act. 20 7 u 1 cor 11 26 27 28 29 a 1 cor 11. 20 29 33 Obiect 3 b concomitantia Answer d Gal. 3 27 e Heb. 3 14. 15 Eph. 3 17 f Col 1. 19 2. 3 9 g Math. 26 27 28 h Heb. 9 12 i Concil Trid sess 3 can 3 k arist 〈◊〉 lib 〈◊〉 cap. 2. 3 partic vse 1 l Bellar. lib. 4 de Eucha cap. V m Exod. xii 8 xviii n Gregor i in Registr o concil Florent sess vlt p 1 cor x xvi part vse 2 r Rhem. Test.
fol. 452 nu 23 s Barthol Caranza sum concil Florent 〈◊〉 458 t polid Virg. de inuentor rerum lib. 5 cap 9 u Math 26. 29 a Papists are neere of kin to the old hereticks called 〈◊〉 b Matt. 21 23 c 1 cor xi 23 d Math. 17. 5 e Cyprian epist. 74 a The 4 outward part are the communicants b Math. 26 26 c con Trid 〈◊〉 3 can 5 d Reu. 13 8 e Exod. 12 x f Exod. 16 19 g Math. 28 29 h hosij consess de eutharift cap. 39 i Math. 26 26 27 1 cor xi 26 k Concil Trid sess 13. cap. 5 l origem in Leuit homil 5 Vse 2 m Guil. alan de sacrific euchar cap 41 bristo 〈◊〉 26 n The Sacrament is not to be adored o Math. 4 10 p 1 king 8 27 Acts. 7 48 49 q Ioh 4 22 r Iohn 4 24 s Heb xi 6 t Iud 6 31 32 Vse 3 4 Conc. triden sess 22 c 1 a In what sense christs supper may be called a Sacrifice b The fathers of the church liuing among the gentiles called the supper a sacrifice c See more in the end of the booke d The originall of the word Masse e polid Virgil de inuent rerum lib. 5. cap 10 f sueton in caling cap. 25 g Holcot in 4 lib. sent 〈◊〉 3 i 1 cor x 16 Heb. x x 12 Hebru 9 12 m Heb. x 18 n Rom. 6 10 o Hebr. 5 4 5 p Ioh. 15. 1 2 q Math 15 13 r Heb. 9 22 s Roma 4 25 t Iohn 19. 30 u 1 〈◊〉 2 9 a Hebr 6. 20. Psal. 110 4 b The Masse is no propitiatory sacrifice for the dead c Eccle. 9. 10 d Iohn 9. 4 11 9. 10 Vse 4 Against priuate mastes in the church of Rome Conc. Trid. ses 22. cap. 6 g Math. 26 26 h Arist. li. 1. de coel cap. 1 i Luke 22 19 k 1 cor xi 23 m 1 cor xi 20 xxi n 1 cor 11 28 vse 5 o It is no precept of Christ to receiue the Lords supper fasting p August epist 118. q 1 Cor. xi 36 r Rom. 14. 17 s Rom. 14 3 5 19 a Book 1. ca. 8 b consecration what c The vse of the elements is changed the substance is not changed d Num. 20 〈◊〉 e Matt. 23 16 f Act. 17 28 g Two meās of consecration to wit the word and praier h 1 Tim 4 4 5 i Iust in in Apol. 2 k Gene. 1 31 l Genes 2 17 m Gene 7 2 n Leuit. 11. 3 o Rom. 14 15 p Leuit. xi 7 q Ierem. 20 7 vse 1 r Gal. 3. 1 s we offer vp as much as christ coman ded vs t 2 Sam 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 2 King 1839 〈◊〉 u Gal. 3 2 〈◊〉 vse a Hosich in leuit lib. 2 c. 8 b Euagri lib. 4 cap. 8 Niceph. lib. 17 cap 25 c hieron com in 1 Cor. XI d Numb 20 〈◊〉 1 cor X. 4 e Matth. 3. 6 f Iohn 3 23 Vse 3 g 1 cori x 16 h Hovv the signes in the Sacrament are blessed Vse 4 i We ought often to receiue the lords supper k 1 cor xi 25 l Reasons rédred to moue vs to frequét the Lo. table m Exo. 20 13 n Gene. 14 12 o Mal. 1 6 p Num. 21. 9 q Math 26. 26 28. r Num 23. 19 s Gai. 4 4 t Heb 4. 15 u Math 1 21 a What are the inwarde partes of the Lo. Supper b august cont maximin li. 3. c The agreemēt between the outward and inward partes d Iohn 6 〈◊〉 e Galath 1 4 f Hebru 5 5 g Luke 4 18 h Iohn 4 10 vse 〈◊〉 i Rom 5 5 k Rom. 〈◊〉 16 l Eph. 4 30 m Deut 8 3 Math 14 4 n Ezek 4 13 Lenit 26 26 vse 3 o Math. 17. 5 3. xvii p Eph 3. xvi i xix q Rom. 32. r Psal. 85 10 s 1 Iohn 4. xi vse 4. Obiection t Exod. xii 46 Answere u Esay 53. 4. 5 a Math. 27 46 a The second inward part of the Lords supper is the holy spirit b Roma 8 15 Galat. 3 2 5 vse 1. c Iam. 1 21 vse 2 d Iohn 8 56 e aug tract in Iohn 26. 27 Obiection Answer f 1 Ioh. 17 20 Deut. 4 193 h 1 Iohn r 3 i Math. 28 20 a The third inward part of the Lords supper is the body and blood of 〈◊〉 b Ioh. 6 48. 50 c How the sacramentall rites do serue to strengthē our faith Vse 1 d Against the real presence e The true state of the question set downe f confess Gal lic art 37. confel Anglic art 12 Cal instit lib 4. cap. 17 g Col. 3 1 2 3 h conc Trid. 〈◊〉 13 cap. 1 l De con dist 2 ego Bereng k aug tract 25 in Iohan l Sundry reasons rendred to 〈◊〉 the real presence m Luk. 22 19 n Luk. 22 19 o arist lib de memoria p Rom. 8 24 q Heb. 4 15 r Luk. 24 39 s act 1 9 3 22 t Catechism Trident. in exposit Simbo apostol u Ioh 6 60 63 a What it is to eate the body of christ spiritually b 1 cor xv 44 c Sadeel de spirit mand cap. 1. d Comparisō between the bodily spiritual eating e Matth. 7 xv f Matt. 24 23 g 1 cor x 1 〈◊〉 h Aug. tom 6 tract in Ioh. 26. in psal 77 Gratian can inquit 80. i Math. 9 15 Iohn 13 a Acts 1 xi l Matt. 〈◊〉 26 m Iohn 6 50 n Psalm 12 6 19 9 o Cyril 〈◊〉 xi p Leuit. 17 〈◊〉 q acts 15 〈◊〉 r Hom. Odis lib x Virg. aeneid lib. 3 Plin. nat hist lib. y cap 〈◊〉 Ouid Met. lib. 3. t 1 cor xv 54 u Rom. 6 9 x a Math. 26 26 b 1 Sam 17 x c conference day 3. d Pighi Hierar li 3. cap. 3 censur colon dial 4 p2 112 Cusan epist. 2. 7. e Obiections alledged to maintain the real presence are answered f Bellar tomo primo Obiection 1 Answer g 〈◊〉 17 11 h Math. 5 13 i Iohn x 9 k Iohn 15 1 l Iohn 14. 6 m L●k xix 22 k Iohn 15 1 n Fish cont capti Babilō o Lindan panopl lib 4. p Tonst lib 1 de Sacr p. 46. q Gab Biel. in 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 p Iohn 6 53 Obiection Answere q Ioh. 6 54 r Iohn 6 32 s Ioh 6. 35. 44 t Biel. sect 84 super cā niis u Hos conses de Euchar a Two rules to be obserued concerning Gods omnipotēcy b Math. 3 9 c Math. 26 53 d Matt. 22 29 e Aug. de tēpo serin 119 f No contradiction is in God g 2 cor 1 19 h Aug. de trincap 15 lib. 15 Confes lib. 12 cap. xv i Arist. de interp li. 1 ca. 5 k Thom. contra gent. lib. 〈◊〉 cap 84. 1. 2 cap 25 Obiect Answer l Iohn 2. xviii m Exo 4 5 c. n Iohn 2 9 o No miracle in the lordes Supper p 〈◊〉 in 1
cor cap 2 〈◊〉 6 q 〈◊〉 de 〈◊〉 3. c x r 2 Thes. 2. 9 s The error of Eutiches 〈◊〉 t Deut 28 53 57 2 King 6. 29 Lam. 4. 10 u Esay 55 1 a Num. 11 5 c. b Heb. xii 16 c Mat. 16 26 d Iohn 6 27 a The fourth inward part of the supper is the faithful receiuer b Iohn 1 xii c Faith is like the mouth of a vessel d Concil Nicean ex Biblio vatican vse 1 e Leuit. 11 4 f Gal 2. 3 g Bph 2 11 h Act. 16. 3 i 〈◊〉 sortes of receiuers k Iohn 6 56 l Ioh. 6 29. 33 35 m Ioh. 6. 54. 40 Obiect Answer n Act. 10 2. 44 o Rom. 4. 18 10 18 p Luk. 23 40 q Lumb sent lib 4. dist c. 1 r Rom. 10 10 s Habac. 2 4 t 10. xi 25 26 u Rom 8 35 a Act. 8 13 b Colos. 1 19 2 3 c Mat. 15 26 d Aug. tract 59 in Iohan. e 〈◊〉 2 16 Luk 19 46 f Ezek 44 9 Leuit 10 10 Math 7 6 g Leuit 13 3 45 46 Numb 5 2 3 2 King 15 5 h 1 cor 5 6 i Hesiod 〈◊〉 oper 〈◊〉 dier Eustath in 〈◊〉 lib. 1 k Chris. hom 83. in Mat. cap 37 l Zeph. 3 4 m 1 Cor. 5 7 vse 3. o Reue xiii 8 p Iohn 13 2 q Ioh. xiii 30 r Luk. 22 〈◊〉 s Hil. in Mat. c 30. lib. 8 de Trinitate s Hil. in Matt c. 30 lib 8 de trinitate Clem. Rom. const l 2 c. 61 t Zanch de redemp lib 1 cap XIX 16 Beza in 10. 13 tractat de excom u Gen 3 22 1 Sam. 4 3 c 1 Sam 4 X e Mercer in 3 cap. Genes analys Frāci Iunij in Gen d Gen 3 22 vse 4. f Wicked mē do not receiue Christ. g Iohn 6 14 h Aug. tract in Iohan XXV i Iohn 4 〈◊〉 k 2 Cor. 14 4 l Luk xi 21 m 2 cor 6. 14 n Rom. 8. 9 o Rom. 8. 31 p 2 cor 13 5 q 1 cor X XX r Bel. de sacr Euch. li. 1. c. 14 Lumb lib. 4 sen. dist 9. c 2 g Bellar. de sacr euch lib 1 cap. 13 a Three ends of the iordes Supper b The false ends of this sacrament rehearsed and refelled c conc cabil can 33 e Num. 5 19 f Gen 9 14 g Exo. 13 1 2 h Exod. 16 32 Luke 22 19. k Heb. 2 14 l Zach. 12 X Iohn xix 37 m Who they are that profit 〈◊〉 by christs pastiō n 1 Iohn 3 6 Esay 53 5 6 1 cor x 16 b Mat. 26 26 c Galat. 2 20 d Ephes 5 32 Rom. 5 19 f Math. xii 44 g Heb. 2 16 Vse 1 g Gen. 20 16 vse 2 a The lordes supper is the band of charity b 1 Cor. x 17 c 1 cor 12. 13 Vse 1 c 1 Pet. 4 10 1 cor 12 7 d 〈◊〉 16 12 vse 2. e Aug. tract 26 in Iohan. p Eph. 4 1 2 3 Ruth 1 16 17 g Phil. 2 1. 2. 3 h Act. 4 32 a Examination necessarie before wee come to the Lords table b Cicer. de offic lib. 1 c Ierem. 4 4 d Exod. 19 10 e Math. 25 13 p 2 Chr. 35. 6 g Reasons of this duty of Examination h Gen. 41 14 i Matth. 16 3 k Math 9 20 l Hag. 2 14 m Tit. 1 i5 n 1 Cor. 〈◊〉 27 o Rens Iae sae Maiestatis p Math. 27 45 q Exod. 12 3 vse 1. r Rom. 3 20 s Roman 7 7 t Iohn 5 39 u Colo 3 16 Iam 1 23 24 vse 2 b Exod 12 26 c This ouerthroweth the opinion of Innocentius Augustine Musculus others who teach it to be 〈◊〉 and needfull that children be admitted to the Supper Innocent 1. epift ad patr concil Mile August epist. 107 ad Vitalem Muscul. loc 〈◊〉 de Euchar. d Fiue sorts of persons barred from the lords supper vse 4 e Ier. 48 10 f Matth. 22 7 g Rom. 1 16 h Num. 9 13 i Heb. 12 1 a Four points required in examination of our selues b Mat. 11 28 c Matt. 12 20 d The 1. part of examination is knowledge of gods word e Iohn 17 3 f Rom. 10 17 g What particular pointes are necessary to be known of al that cōe to the communion h Act. 17 28 i Iohn 5 7 k Deut 27 26 l Luk. 1 35 m 1 cor 1 30 n Luk. 1 74 o Ephe. 6 5 q Matth 6 9 r 1 Pet. 2 1 2 f Act. 11 13 t 1 chr 28 9 u Luk. xix 3 c. a Psa. 145 18 c. Act. 8 28 29 c Matth. 5 6 d Matth. 7 7 8 a The 2 part of examination b Mat. 15 28 c Hebr. 4 2 d 2 cor 13 5 e What a true faith is f Gal. 1. 4 g The hands of faith what they are h 2 Thes. 3. 2 i Gal. 3 14 k Iob. 19 25 l Iohn 20 28 m Luk. 1 47 n Luke 1 43 o Matth. 9 2 p Psal. 32 4 q Math. 7 24 r Iob. 13 15 s Roma 4 17 c. t Genes 15 5 u Titus 1 〈◊〉 a Gal. 2 20 b 2 Tim. 4 7 c Iam. 2 19 d 2 Pet. 1 4 1 Cor. 3 22 f Eph. 4 8 g Reuel 1 6 h There are 2 degrees of true faith i what a weak faith is k What a strōg faith is l Roma 8 38 m Roma 4 20 n 1 cor 3 1 2 o Mar. 4 28 p Rom 1 17 q Psal. 23 6 r Ephe. 3 17 s Num. 21 8 t Luk. 24 25 u Luke 17 5 6 a Mark 2 23 b Math. 7 7 8 c Reuel 21 6 .c d Phil. 1. 6 c Reuel 21 6 .c a Repentance from dead works required of al that come to the 〈◊〉 table b Ephe. 4 24 c Esay 1 12 d Esay 66 3 e Gen. 35 2 3 f 2 cor 7 x xi g Signs wher by to examin our repentance h Act 2 37 38 i In examining our selues we must follow the order of the cōmaundementes Command 1 Command 2 Command 3 Command 4 commaund 5 commaund 6 commaund 7 Command 7 Command 8 Command 9 Command 〈◊〉 k Exod. xx 1 l 1 Ioh. 3 m Psal. 130 3 n 1 Cor 11. 29 30 32. o Psa. 78. 30 31 p Iohn 13 27 q Mat. 22. 22 13 r 2 cor 6. 2 s Renewed faith and renewed repentance required of vs. t Luke 22. 32 u Mat. 3. 1 a Luke 4. 18 b Math. 5. 3 c 2 Sam. 12 13 d Luk. 22. 62 7 38. e Math 8 8 f Luk. 8 xiii a Loue toward their brethren is required of al that come to the table b Math. 5 23 c Iohn 13 35 d Colos. 3 12 e Matt. 18 23 f 1 corin x. 17 g Esay 9 21 h Math. 6 12 i Luke 11 4 k Mark 11 25 l 1 Cor. 13 4 m Luk. 23 35 n Rom 12 18 o 2 chr 305 18 p The sacrament is not honoured by abstaining from it q 1